= ee s ~~ Pe / NS NC, f Za) sy : is s> eet eusee® Bee Te ee Spent: eee ne eo a4 ey tx. 5 mM at MISS LESLIE'S ‘NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING.’ Fa NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING: BY MISS LESLIE. COMPRISING ALL THE NSW AND APPROVED METHODS FOR PREPARING ALL KINDS OF SOUPS, MEATS, CAKES, FISH, POULTRY, CONFECTIONERY, OYSTERS, GAME, PUDDINGS, TERRAPINS, SAUCES, CORN-MEAL, TURTLE, PICKLES, PIES, “VEGETABLES, SWEETMEATS, RICE,.ETC. WITH LISTS OF ARTICLES IN SEASON SUITED TO GO TOGETHER FOR BREAKFASTS, DINNERS, AND SUPPERS; AND MANY NEW RECEIPTS, AND MUCH USEFUL AND VALUABLE IN FORMATION ON ALL SUBJECTS WHATEVER CON- NECTED WITH GENERAL HOUSEWIFERY. —_ & All the receipts in this book are new, and have been fully tried and tested by the author since the publication of her former book, and none of them whatever are contained in any other work but this. It is the most.complete Cook Book published in the world, and also the latest and best, as in addition to Cookery, of all kinds and descriptions, its receipts for making cakes and confectionery are unequalled by any other work extant. In it there will be found One Thousand and Eleven new Receipts—all useful—some ornamental —and all invaluable to every lady, miss, or family in the world. In it will also be found popular and useful suggestions,—of immense value in every household, adding greatly to its convenience, its comfort and economy. Ne woman ought to be without this book.—Ladies’ National Magazine. PPR Ree Philadelphia: T. B. PETERSON, NO. 102 CHESTNUT STREET. (a ee Futered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1852, by A. HART im the Clerk’s Office of the District Court of the United States in and for the Eastern District of Pennsylvania. Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1854, by T. B. PETERSON, {m the Clerk’s Office of the District Court of the United States in and for the Eastern District of Pennsylvania, — PREFACE. Tu1s volume is entirely different from my former work of ‘Di- rections for Cookery,” though sometimes strangely mistaken for it; an error which no person can commit after seeing both. These new receipts form a continuation or sequel to the other book, but are in no instance the same, even when their titles are similar. A large number have been obtained from the South, and from ladies noted for their skill in housewifery. Many were dictated by colored cooks, of high reputation in the art, for which nature seems to have gifted that race with a peculiar ‘capability. Some very fine receipts in this collection are of French origin: their titles are translated into our own language. A large number are designed for elegant tables, and an equal proportion for families who live well, but moderately, and for such as find it expedient to keep house in a manner very plain and economical. The corn-meal preparations will be found un- usually good, embracing every method in which this most valua- ble staple can be prepared; and particularly that for Indian mush, an article which, simple as it is, is seldom made properly, or rather wholesomely. I must call the attention of my young readers to a chapter, (page 865,) comprising lists of articles for breakfasts, dinners, and suppers, to suit small and large families respectively ; desig- nating such things as are proper to go together, and are in season at the same time. Since the first appearance of my other book of ‘ Directions (8) 4. | PREFACH. for Cooking,” I have obtained new and fresh accessions of vale uable knowledge, and new receipts for cooking not embraced in my former book, connected with the domestic improvement of my countrywomen, all of which I have been careful to note down, as they presented themselves, and to carefully try and have them fully tested, and have now given them all in this work—minutely explaining them in language intelligible to all persons. ; Let these new receipts be fairly and faithfully tried, and I trust that few, if any, will cause any disappointment whatever in the result. The utmost I need hope for the present volume, is equal suc- cess with its predecessor. To prevent misapprehension of their titles, it may be well to state that my three present chief works on domestic economy are the present work, named ‘‘ NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOK- ING,” which contains all my newest and latest receipts on the subject, the ‘‘ Directions for Cookery,” and the ‘‘House Book,” the last being a manual»for all other branches of housewifery, excluding that of the table. . ELIZA LESLIE. Philadelphia, May 1st, 1854. & : : GENERAL CONTENTS. mg MeO sc cw icin! ees» A car genes Re kG gees eine! yan 19 VWeerTapers, &C) «. 0 «6 we 06 os oe 8S NIOATSOUEGs cats ait ae: ee ae A 58 Sere w, CHAME, GC.) +s oe Her es) ett eo Se ay ot ei er-pas 8a ae LOT Bre eMeAre GOl Se Ree ee ene EOS BREAKFAST AND Tea CakEs. . oe 186 ind delle 6" 0 coal 193 DomustieLiquors, &F PR. 6 ei we , 230 Prrrumery, Remeviss, &. . 2 1 ee. 252 Launpry-work, Nreepire-work, &C. .« « . 297 Breaxrasts, DinNERS, SUPPERS, &e. o + » 365 AppiTIonaL REcEIPTS.. . . . » « « « 395 Tue Inp1an Meat Book .:. . «6 « » 455 PRE oie 8. eeepc anda sg (0 + ae 495 InpEX TO ADDITIONAL REcEIPTS. «© Mee. 503 1* 5 % * WEIGHTS AND MEASURES Originally Tested and Arranged by Miss Leslie in the Year 1834. WHEAT FLouUR . - - one pound of 16 ounces. is one quart. Indian meal. . «. « one pound 2 ounges - « is one quart. Butter, when soft, . . one pound1l ounce . . is one quart. Loaf-sugar, broken up, one pound .. . . . is one quart. Whi 49. add to the stew half a pint of cream. Let it continue camies five minutes longer. Then send it to table. | ; — % PLAIN LETTUCE PEAS.—Cover the bottom and sides of a stew-pan with large fresh leaves taken froin lettuces. Have ready the peas, which should be young and green. To each quart of shelled peas allow two table-spoonfuls of fresh butter, and a lump of loaf sugar. Add a very little pepper and salt, and a sprig of green mint. Cover the pan closely, and let it stew for half an hour, or till the peas are thoroughly done. Then take them out from the lettuce leaves, and send only the peas to table. tes TO STEW CARROTS.—Half-boil the carrots; then scrape them nicely, and cut them into thick slices. Put them into a stew-pan with as much milk as will barely cover them, a very little salt and pepper, and a sprig or two of chopped parsley. Simmer them till they are per- fectly tender, but not broken. When nearly done,add a piece of fresh butter rolled in flour. Send them to table hot. Carrots require long cooking. « Parsnips and salsify may be stewed in the above man-' - ner, substituting a little chopped celery for the parsley. a ee ¢ STEWED BEANS, (French way.)—Take ’ fresh young green beans, and string them. Do not split them;. but merely cut them in half. It destroys the flayour of string-beans to divide them into small pieces. ‘If very voung, do not even cut them in half, but merely string them and leave them whole. Have by you a pan of cold water to drop the beans in, as you proceed. Then, hav: ing washed and drained them, put them into a stew-pan of boiling water, and let them boil twenty minutes or 5 50 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. — more, till they are all tender. ‘Then drain them well. Afterwards melt two ounces of butter in a stew-pan, and then stir smoothly into it a tea-spoonful of flour, adding a little powdered mace and a salt-spoon of salt, When it comes to a boil, add a tea-cup of rich cream. Then put in the beans, and stir or shake them over the fire till they are all thoroughly heated. A moment before you _ take them from the fire, stir in the beaten yolks of ‘two eggs, and send them hot to table. For this dish, you must have beans enough to absorb — nearly all the liquid. They must on no account float about in it, as it is intended for a seasoning, not a gravy.” Stewed beans will be improved by adding a small piece of cold ham, to be removed before they go to table. If-ham is used, omit any salt in the seasoning, as the ~ ham will make it quite salt enough. - —-o——_ TO STEW COLD POTATOES.—Take gold pota- toes, (either white or sweet ones ,) and cut them into round or circular slices. Have ready some nice gravy of roast beef, veal, or fresh pork, that has been left from the pre- ceding day, and well skimmed. Care should every day be taken to save whatever gravy is left of roast meat, . kimming off all the fat from the surface, and putting away the gravy in a covered vessel set in a cool place. The gravy of cold mutton or lamb is so like tallow that it is unfit to use in any sort of cookery, and should al- ways be consigned to the crock of soap-fat. Season the sliced potatoes slightly with pepper, and putting them into a skillet with the cold gravy among them, stew them in that only, without a drop of water. wet them stew but a quarter of an hour. They are nice: at breakfast, done in this manner; sweet er especially. SALAD-DRESSING OF ALL KINDS, ETO. 51 TO IMPROVE OLD POTATOES.—In the spring when the potatoes of the preceding autumn have become old, and deteriorated in quality, they will be greatly im- proved if, previous to boiling, a piece about the size of a shilling or a twelve-cent-piece, is cut off from each end; like “topping and tailing’? them. Afterwards boil these potatoes with the skins on, and see that they are thoroughly done. Old potatoes require very long boil- ing, and are unfit to eat if hard in the centre, being then extremely indigestible. Their specks and blemishes make them so unsightly when sent to table whole, that it is best when sufficiently boiled, to peel and mash them. Mash them with milk or cream, if you cannot obtain good fresh butter. Salt butter will spoil their flavour instead of improving it, and all bad butter (whether salt or fresh) is unwholesome, as well as unpalatable, and should never be used for any purpose. —o— SYDNEY SMITH’S SALAD-DRESSING.—Have ready two well-boiled potatoes, peeled and rubbed through | a sieve; they will give peculiar smoothness to the mix- ture. Also, a very small portion of raw onion, not more than a quarter of a tea-spoonful, (as the presence of the onion is to be scarcely hinted,) and the pounded yolks of — two hard-boiled eggs. Mix these ingredients on a deep plate with two small tea-spoonfuls of salt ; one of made mustard ; three table-spoonfuls of olive oil; and one table- spoonful of vinegar. Add, lastly, a tea-spoonful of essence of anchovy ; mash, and mix the whole together (using a boxwood spoon) and see that all the articles are thoroughly amalgamated. Having cut up a sufficiency of lettuce, (that has been well washed in cold water, and drained,) add to it the dressing immediately before dinner, mixing the lettuce through it with a boxwood fork. 52 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. This salad dressing was invented by the Rev. sydney Smith, whose genius as a writer and a wit is well-known ‘on both sides the Atlantic. If exactly followed, it will be found very fine on trial; no peculiar flavour predominat- ing, but excellent as a whole. The above directions are taken from a manuscript receipt given by Mr. Smith to an American gentleman then in London. In preparing this, or any other saladedriidiieg take ‘are not to use that excessively pungent. and deleterious combination of drugs which is now so frequently imposed upon the public, as the best white wine vinegar. In reality, it has no vinous material about it, and it may be known by its violent and disagreeable sharpness, which overpowers and destroys the taste (and also the substance) of whatever it is mixed with. And ‘it is also very unwholesome. Its colour is always very pale, and it is nearly as clear as water. No one should buy or use it. The first quality of real eg vinegar is good for all purposes. The above receipt may be tried for lobster-dressing. ——— LETTUCE CHICKEN SALAD.—Having skinned a pair of cold fowls, remove the fat, and carve them as if for eating, cut all the flesh entirely from the bones, and either mince it or divide it into small shreds. Mix with it a little smoked tongue or cold ham, grated rather than chopped. Have ready one or two fine fresh lettuces, picked, washed, drained, and cut small. Put the cut Jettuce on a dish, (spreading it evenly,) or into a large bowl, and place upon it the minced chicken in a close heap in the centre. For the dressing, mix together the following ingredients, in the proportion of the yolks of four eggs well beaten; a tea-spoonful of powdered white ~ sugar; a salt-spoon of cayenne ; (no salt if you have ham ITALIAN SALAD, TARRAGON SAUCE, ETC. 53 or tongue with the chicken 7 two tea-spoonfuls of made mustard ; two table-spoonfuls of vinegar, and four table- spoonfuls of salad oil. Stir this mixture well: put it into a small sauce-pan, set it over the fire, and let it boil three minutes, (not more,) stirring it all the time. Then set it tocool. When quite cold, cover with it thickly the heap of chicken in the centre of the salad. To ornament it, have ready half a dozen or more hard-boiled eggs, which after the shell is peeled off, must be thrown directly into a pan of cold water to prevent their turning blue./ Cut each egg (white and yolk together) lengthways into four long pieces of equal size and shape; lay the pieces upon the salad all round the heap of chicken, and close to it; placing them so as to follow each other round in a slanting direction, something in the form of a circular wreath of leaves. Have ready, also, some very red cold beet, cut into small cones or points all of equal size; ar- range them in a circle upon the lettuce, outside of the circle of cut egg. ‘To be decorated in this manner, the salad should be placed in a dish rather than a bowl. In helping it, give each person a portion of every thing, and they will mix them together on their plates. This salad should be prepared immediately before dinner or supper, as standing long will injure it. The colder it is the better. | —— ITALIAN CHICKEN SALAD.—Make a dressing in the proportion of the yolks of three hard-boiled eggs, - mashed or pounded fine; a salt-spoon of salt; and the same quantity of mustard, and of cayenne; and a salt- spoon of powdered white sugar; four table-spoonfuls of salad-oil; and two table-spoonfuls of vinegar, (tarragon vinegar will be best.) Simmer this dressing over the fire, but do not Jet it come to a boil. Stir it all the time. | , 5* 54 MISS. LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ct ae ca adil ga ssa Saal Take a sufficiency of the white meat of cold fowls, and pull or cut it into flakes. Pile it in the middle of a dish, and pour the salad-dressing over it. Have ready two fine fresh lettuces that have been laid in cold water. Strip off the outside leaves; cut up the best part of the lettuces, and arrange it evenly in a ridge, or circular heap all round the pile of chicken in the centre. On the top of the ridge of lettuce, place the whites of the eggs, cut into rings and laid round so as to form a chain. Of course, a portion of the lettuce is to be helped with the chicken. A lobster salad may be made as above ; also a salad of minced prawns or crabs. te : . ~ Persons who have no dislike to a very P Mich flavour of garlic, will find this-chicken-salad improved, by a clove of garlic being lightly rubbed over the dish while empty. In dressing and helping eyery sort of salad, use a box- wood spoon and fork. SE OSE TARRAGON SAUCE.—Take a large handful of tarragon. leaves, stripped from the stalks: put them into a small sauce-pan with half a pint of boiling water, and four blades of mace. Cover the sauce-pan, and let it stew slowly till the liquid is reduced to one half, and the flavour of the tarragon is well drawn out. Then strain it; and put the liquid into a clean sauce-pan. Mix together a table-spoonful of flour, and six ounces of butter, and when it has been well-stirred, and beaten smoothly, stir it into the tarragon water. Place the sauce-pan over the fire, and watch it closely. When it has simmered well, and is just beginning to boil, take it off immediately and transfer it to a sauce-boat. Eat it with any sort of boiled meat or poultry, or with boiled fish. The tarragon will give it a fine flavour. ~“ LEMON PICKLE, PEACH PICKLES, ETC. 55 You may add to the tarragon, while stewing, a small white onion cut in slices. This sauce may be coloured a fine green, by pounding in a mortar a sufficient quantity of young parsley or spinach. Then take some of the juice, and add it to the liquid after you have strained it from the tarragon leaves, and before you put in the butter. Tarragon is an herb well worth cultivating. It grows from a slip or root, and is easily raised. The leaves are fit to gather in July and August. They impart a fine and peculiar flavour to sauces, soups, and salad; and are indispensable in making French mustard. Tarragon may be kept a year or more by drying it in bunches. Also by filling a bottle half with tarragon leaves, and half with | good vinegar. —g— FINE LEMON PICKLE.—Take some fresh ripe lemons, and (having first rolled each one under your hand upon the table) cut them into quarters, and remove all the seeds. Put the pieces of lemon, with all the juice, into a stone jar. Have ready a sufficient quantity of excellent vinegar to cover the lemon well; the vinegar being boiled with a clove or two of garlic; some blades of mace; a broken up nutmeg; whole pepper, (the white or peeled _pepper-corns will be best;) some cayenne or bird-pepper; and a very little salt. The proportion of these ingre- dients may be according to your taste, but the seasoning should be high, yet not so as to overpower the lemon- flavour. Having boiled the vinegar, with all these arti- _cles, about ten minutes, pour the whole boiling hot upon the lemon in the jar, and immediately cover it closely. ‘Let the jar stand three weeks in the chimney-corner, stirring it frequently, and setting it occasionally in the oven after the baking is done. ‘Then roll a sheet of ~— 5G MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. _ blotting paper into a cone, pinning up the side, and. fold- ing the cone so as to close up the pointed end. Have ready some small clean black bottles. Set the paper cone into the mouth of the bottle, and through it filter the | liquid. Seal the corks. This will be found an excellent sauce for fish, or any sort of white meat; and will keep for years. ——e— PEACH PICKLES.—Stir two pounds of white sugar into two quarts of the best cider vinegar. Boil it ten minutes, skimming it well. Have ready some large fully- ripe peaches; rub them with a clean flannel to take off the down, and stick four cloves into each. Put them into glass or white-ware jars, (rather more than half-full,) and pour on them the vinegar boiling hot. Cover them closely, set them in a cool place, and let them rest for a week. Then pour off the liquid, and give it another boil- ing. Afterwards pour it again on the peaches; cover them closely, corking the jars, and tying leather over each, ~ and put them away till wanted for use. Instead of cloves you may stick the peaches with blades of mace, six blades to each peach. _ : Apricots may be pickled as above. Morella eho also, using mace instead of cloves. If you find a coat of mould on the top of a jar of ‘pickles, remove it carefully, and do not throw away the pickles, as they may still be quite good beneath. 3 ——+-— CUCUMBER CATCHUP.—For a small quantity, take twelve fine full-grown cucumbers, and lay them an * hour in cold water. Then pare them, and grate the down into a deep dish. Grate also ‘six small onions, and mix them with the grated cucumber. Season the mixture” to your taste, with pepper, salt, and vinegar; making it of the consistence of rich marmalade or jam. When ONION CUSTARDS, CUCUMBER CATCHUP, ETC. 57 —— thoroughly incorporated, transfer it to a glass jar, cover it closely, tying down over the top a piece of bladder} so as to make it perfectly air-tight. ~ Tt will be found very nice (when fresh cucumbers are not in season) to eat with beef or mutton, and if properly made and tightly covered will keep well. It should be erated very fine, and the vinegar must be of excellent quality—real cider vinegar. as -~ ONION CUSTARD.—Peel and slice some mild onions, (ten or twelve, in proportion to their size,) and fry them in fresh butter; draining them well when you take them up. ‘Then mince them as fine as possible. Beat four eggs very light, and stir them gradually into a pint of milk, in turn with the minced onions. Season the whole with plenty of grated nutmeg, and stir it very hard. Then put it into a deep, white dish, and bake it about a quarter of an hour. Send it to table asa side dish td be eaten with meat or poultry. It is a French prepa- ration of onions, and will be found very fine. —--—- TO GIVE A BACON FLAVOR TO BEANS.— You may do this when you have not bacon at dinner, by cutting a small bit of that meat, and boiling it with green string-beans; which beans should never be cut into more than two or three pieces. Season them with a little pepper, but no salt. Skim the pot well. Re- move the bit of bacon before the beans are dished. Drain them thoroughly. In the same way you may ‘communicate a bacon taste to cabbage or young poke. a - 58 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. MEATS, ETC. STEWED LAMB.—Take a fine quarter of lamb, and for a large dish, cut the whole of it into steaks; for a small dish, cut up the loin only; or slice only the leg. Remove the skin, and all the fat. Place at the bottom of a large stew-pot a fresh lettuce split into long quarters. Having seasoned the steaks with a little salt and cayenne, and some powdered nutmeg and mace, lay them upon the lettuce, pour on just sufficient water to cover the whole, and let it stew gently for an hour, skimming it occasionally. ‘Then put in a quart or two of young green peas,(in proportion to the quantity of meat,) a sprig of fresh green mint, a lump of loaf-sugar, and some bits of fresh butter. Let it cook slowly about half an hour longer, or till the peas are all soft and well-done. In sending it to table, place the meat upon the lettuce, and the peas round it. Cold ham shced, and stewed in this manner, will be found excellent. ‘The ham having been already cooked, half an hour will be sufficient to stew it with the lettuce, and another half-hour after the peas are in. —_— ts LAMB CUTLETS, (a French dish.)—Cut a loin of lamb into chops. Remove all the fat, trim them nicely, scrape the bone, and see that it is the same length in all the cutlets. Lay them ina deep dish, and cover them with salad oil. Let them.steep in the oil for an hour. Mix together a sufficiency of finely grated bread-crumbsy and a little minced parsley, seasoned with a very little pepper and salt, and some grated nutmeg. Having drained the cutlets from the oil, cover them with the mix- ture, and broil them over a bed of hot, live coals, on a MEATS—LAMB, MUTTON, ETC. 59 previously heated gridiron, the bars of which have been rubbed with chalk. The cutlets must be thoroughly cooked. When half done, turn them carefully. You may bake them in a dutch-oven, instead of broiling them. Have ready some boiled potatoes, mashed smooth and stiff with cream or butter. Heap the mashed potatoes high ona heated dish, and make it into the form of a dome or bee-hive. Smooth it over with the back of a.spoon, and place the lamb cutlets all round it, so that they stand up and lean against it, with the broad end of each cutlet downward. In the top of the dome of potatoes, stick a handsome bunch of curled parsley. , —+— FILLET OF MUTTON.—Cut a fillet or round from a leg of mutton; remove all the fat from the outside, and take out the bone. Beat it well on all sides with a meat- beetle or a rolling-pin, to make it more tender, and rub it slightly all over with a very little pepper and salt. Have ready a stuffing made of finely-minced onions, bread-crumbs, and butter; seasoned with a little salt, pepper, and nutmeg, and well-mixed. Fill, with some of this stuffing, the place of the bone. Make deep in- cisions or cuts all over the surface of the meat, and fill them closely with the same stuffing. Bind a tape round the meat to keep it in shape. Put it into a stew-pan, with just water enough to cover it, and let it stew slowly and steadily during four, five, or six hours, in proportion to its size; skimming it frequently. When done, serve it up with its own gravy. Tomato sauce is an a aC get to stewed mutton. A thick piece of around of fresh beef will be found very good, stuffed and stewed in the above manner. It will require much longer stewing than the mutton, fe 60 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. 4 STEWED MUTTON CUTLETS.—Having removed all the fat and the bone, beat the cutlets to make them tender, and season them with pepper, salt, and nutmeg. Put them into a circular tin kettle, with some bits of fresh butter that have been rolled in flour. Set the kettle (closely covered) upon a trivet inside of a flat-bottomed pot or stew-pan. Pour boiling water all round, but not so as to come up to the top of the inner kettle. Set the . pot over a slow fire, and let the stew simmer for two hours. Then lift up the meat, and put under it a lettuce cut in four; and three cucumbers, pared, split, and quar- tered; two onions sliced; and four young turnips cut small. Add a few blades of mace, a salt-spoon of salt, and a little more butter rolled in flour. Set it again in boiling water, taking care that the water does not reach the top of the inner kettle, the lid of which must be kept very tight. Let it boil slowly, or rather simmer, two hours longer. Then dish it, placing the meat upon the vegetables, and laying all round a ridge of green peas that have been boiled in the usual way. The bone (nicely trimmed and scraped) may bes left in each cutlet; in which case, when dishing them, stand them up inacircle, with the ends of the bones leaning against each. other at the top, somewhat as we see poles placed in circles for lima-bean vines. | i tS VEAL LOAF.—Take a cold fillet of veal, and (omit- ting the fat and skin) mince the meat as fine as possible. Mix with it a quarter of a pound of the fattest part of a cold ham, also chopped small. Add a tea-cupful of grated bread-crumbs ; a grated nutmeg; half a dozen blades of’ mace powdered ; the grated yellow rind of a lemon; and two beaten eggs. Season with a salt-spoon of salt, and half a salt-spoon of cayenne. Mix the whole well together, and make it into the form of a loaf. Then glaze it over ” “MEATS—VEAL, CALF’S HEAD, ETC. 61 with beaten yolk of egg; and strew the surface evenly, all over, with bread raspings, or with pounded cracker. Set the dish into a dutch-oven, and bake it half an hour, or till hot all through. Have ready a gravy made of the trimmings of the veal, stewed in some of the gravy that was left when the fillet was roasted the day before. When sufficiently cooked, take out the meat, and thicken the gravy with beaten yolk of egg, stirred in about three minutes before you take it from the fire. Send the veal loaf to table ina deep dish, with the gravy poured round it. Chicken loaf, or turkey loaf, may be made in this manner. ——— STEWED CALF’S HEAD.—Take a fine, large calf’s head; empty it; wash it clean, and boil it till it is. quite tender, in just water enough to cover it. Then carefully take out the bones, without spoiling the appear- ance of the head. Season it with a little salt and cay- enne, and a grated nutmeg. Pour over it the liquor in which it has been boiled, adding a jill of vinegar, and two table-spoonfuls of capers, or of green nasturtian-seeds, that have been pickled. Leet it stew very slowly for half an hour. Have ready some force-meat balls made of minced veal-suet, grated bread-crumbs, grated lemon-peel, and shred sweet-marjoram,—adding beaten yolk of egg to bind the other ingredients together. Put in the force- meat balls, and stew it slowly a quarter of an hour longer, _ adding some bits of butter rolled in flour to enrich the gravy. Send it to table hot. —_+— CORNED FILLET OF VEAL.—Take a large fillet of veal, and make deep incisions or cuts all over it with - a sharp knife, and insert a slip of the fat into each, press~ ing it down well to keep it in. Mix a table-spoonful 6 62 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. of powdered saltpetre with half a pound of fine salt, and rub the meat all over with it. Make a brine of salt and water strong enough to swim an egg on its surface, add- | ing a lump of saltpetre about the size of a walnut. Put the veal into the brine, (of which there must be enough to more than cover it,) and let it remain ten days; turn- ing it every day. Then take it out, wash off the brine, and boil the veal till thoroughly done and tender all through. It is best to eat it cold, and sliced thin. Ne pee) St FRENCH WAY OF DRESSING A SHOULDER OF VEAL.—Cut the veal into nice square pieces or mouthfuls, and parboil them. Put the bone and trim- mings into another pot, and stew them slowly a long time, ‘in a very little water, to make the gravy. ‘Then put the meat into the dish in which it is to go to table, and season it with a very little salt and cayenne pepper, the yellow rind of a large lemon grated, and some powdered mace and nutmeg. Add some bits of fresh ‘butter rolled in flour, or some cold dripping of roast veal. Strain the gravy and pourit in. Set it in a hot dutch-oven, and bake it brown. When nearly done, add two glasses of white wine, and serve it up hot. Any piece of veal may be cooked in this way. pe EXCELLENT MINCED VEAL.—Take three or four pounds of the lean only of a fillet or loin of veal, and mince it very finely, adding’ a slice or two of cold ham, minced also. Add three or four small young onions, chopped small, a tea-spoonful of sweet-marjoram leaveg rubbed from the stalks, the yellow rind of a small lemon ~ grated, and a tea-spoonful of mixed mace and nutmeg powdered. Mix all well together, and dredge it with a little flour. Put it into a stew-pan, with sufficient gravy - MEATS—TURKEY, CHICKEN, VEAL, ETC. 63 of cold roast. veal to moisten it, and a large table-spoonful or more of fresh butter. Stir it well, and let it stew till thoroughly done. If the veal has been previously cooked, a quarter of an hour will be sufficient. It will be much improved by adding a pint or more of small button mush- rooms, cut from the stems, and then put in whole.. Also, by stirring in two table-spoonfuls of cream about five mi- nutes before it is taken from the fire. ——¢—— MINCED TURKEY OR CHICKEN.—Take a cold turkey, or one or two cold fowls; remove all the skin, and cut the flesh from the bones. Then mince it fine, with two or three thin slices of cold smoked tongue, and from half a pint to a pint of button mushrooms well chopped. Add some mace arid nutmeg, and put the whole into a stew- pan, with a piece of fresh butter rolled in flour, and suf-” ficient cream to moisten gt well. Let it stew ten minutes. Then serve it up in a deep dish. Instead of mushrooms, you may mix two or three dozen oysters, chopped, and seasoned with pepper and powdered mace. aaa ey See VEAL WITH OYSTERS.—Take two fine cutlets of about a pound each. Divide them into several pieces, cut thin. Put them into a frying-pan, with boiling lard, and let them fry awhile. When the veal is about half done, add to it a quart of large, fine oysters,—their liquor thickened with a few grated bread-crumbs, and seasoned with mace and nutmeg powdered. Continue the frying till the veal and oysters are thoroughly done. Send it to table in a covered dish. : I ae TERRAPIN VEAL.—Take some cold roast veas (the fillet or the loin) and cut it into very small mouthfuls Put into a skillet or stew-pan. Have ready a dressing 64 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. made of six or seven hard-boiled eggs minced fine; a small tea-spoonful of made mustard; a salt-spoonful of salt; and the same of cayenne pepper; a large tea-cup- full (half a pint) of cream, and two glasses of sherry or Madeira wine. The dressing must be thoroughly mixed Pour it over the veal, and then give the whole a hard stir. Cover it, and let it stew over the fire for ten mi nutes. Then transfer it to a deep dish, and send it te table hot. Cold roast duck or fowl may be drest as above. Also venison. VEAL OLIVES.—Take some cold fillet of veal and cold ham, and cut them into thin square slices of the — same size and shape, trimming the edges évenly. Lay a - “slice of veal on every slice of ham, and spread some “beaten yolk of egg over the veal. Have ready a thin - force-meat, made of grated bread-crumbs, sweet-marjoram rubbed fine, fresh butter, and grated lemon-peel, seasoned with nutmeg and a little cayenne pepper. Spread this over the veal, and then roll up each slice tightly with the ham. Tie them round securely with coarse thread or fine twine; run a bird-spit through them, and roast them well. For sauce, simmer in a small sauce-pan, some cold veal gravy with two spoonfuls of cream, and some mush room catchup. ied VEAL RISSOLES.—Take as much fine wheat bread ~as will weigh one pound, after all the crust is cut off. Slice it; put it into a pan and pour over it as much rich mill as will soak it thoroughly. After it has soaked a quarter of an hour, lay it in a sieve and press it dry Mince as finely as possible a pound of veal cutlet with six ounces of veal suet; then mix in gradually the bread; adding a salt-spoonful of salt, a slight sprinkling of _ VEAL OLIVES, RISSOLES, SWEETBREAD, ETC. 65 cayenne, and a small tea-spoonful of powdered mace and nutmeg mixed; also the yellow rind of a lemon grated. Beat two eggs, and moisten the mixture with them. Then divide it into equal portions, and with a little flour on your hands roll it into oval balls rather smaller than anegg., Strew over them some dry bread-crumbs; then fry them in lard or fresh butter—drain them well, and send them to table hot. For gravy (which should be commenced before the rissoles) put some bits and trim- mings of veal into a small sauce-pan, with as much water as will cover them; a very little pepper and salt; and three or four blades of mace. Cover the sauce-pan closely, and let the meat stew till all the strength is ex- tracted; skimming it well. Then*strain it; return the liquid to the sauce-pan; add a bit of butter rolled in flour; and squeeze in the juice of alemon. Give it a “boil up; and then, at the last, stir in the beaten yolk of anegg. Serve up this gravy in a sauce-boat, to eat with the rissoles. _ Instead of stewing meat for the purpose you may make this gravy with the drippings of roast veal saved from the day before. You have then only to melt it over the fire; adding the seasoning; and giving it one boil. _ Similar rissoles may be made of minced chicken or . turkey. Se SWEETBREAD CROQUETTES.—Having trim med. some sweetbreads nicely, and removed the gristle, _parboil them, and then mince them very fine. Add _ grated bread, and season with a very little salt and pep- per; some powdered mace and nutmeg; and some grated lemon-rind. Moisten the whole with cream, and make them up into small cones or sugar-loaves; forming and _ smoothing them nicely. Have ready some beaten egg, _ mixed with grated bread-crumbs. Dip into it each G* 7 66 - MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. croquette, and fry them slowly in fresh butter. Serve them hot; standing up on the dish, and cms a sprig of parsley in the top of each. Sweetbreads should never be used unless nerfeely fresh. They spoil very rapidly. As soon as they are brought from market they should be split open, and laid in cold water. Never attempt to keep sweetbreads till next day, except in cold weather. Similar croquettes may be made of cold boiled chicken; or cold roast veal; -or of oysters, minced raw, and season- ed and mixed as above. Peon ae FRICASSEED SWEETBREADS.—Take half a dozen sweetbreads ; clean them thoroughly, and lay them for an hour or two in a pan of water, having first removed the strings and gristle. Then put them into a stew-pan “with as much rich milk or cream as will cover them well, and a very little salt. Stew them slowly, till tender , throughout, and thoroughly done, saving the liquid. Then take them up; cover them; and set them near the fire to keep warm. ‘Prepare a quarter of a pound of fresh butter, divided into four pieces, and rolled in flour. Put the butter into the milk in which the sweetbreads were boiled, and add a few sprigs of parsley cut small ; five or six blades of mace; half a nutmeg grated; and a very little cayenne pepper. Have ready the yolks of three eggs well-beaten. Return the sweetbreads to the gtavy; let it just come toa boil; and then stir in the beaten egg immediately before you take the fricassee from the fire, otherwise it will curdle. Serve it up ina deep dish with a cover. Chickens, cut up, may be fricasseed in this manner. Sore Aa TOMATO SWEETBREADS.—Cut up a quarter of a peck (or more) of fine ripe tomatoes; set them over | SWEETBREADS, CAULIFLOWERS, ETC. 67 rr * the fire, and let them stew with nothing but their own juice till they go entirely to pieces. Then press them through a sieve, to clear the liquid from the seeds and skins. Have ready four or five sweetbreads that have been trimmed nicely, cleared from the gristle, and laid open to soak in warm water. Put them into a stew-pan with the tomato-juice, seasoned with a little salt and cayenne. Add two or three table-spoonfuls of -butter rolled in flour. Set the sauce-pan over the fire, and stew the sweetbreads in the tomato-juice till they are thoroughly done. A few minutes before you take them off, stir in two beaten yolks of eggs. Serve up the sweet- breads in a deep dish, with the tomato poured over them. ——_—— SWEETBREADS AND CAULIFLOWERS.— Take four large sweetbreads, and two fine cauliflowers. Split open the sweetbreads and remove the gristle. Soak them awhile in lukewarm water. Then put them into a sauce-pan of boiling water, and let them boil ten mi- nutes over the fire. Afterwards, lay them in a pan of very cold water. The parboiling will render them white; and putting them directly from the hot water into the cold will give them firmness. Having washed and drained the cauliflowers, quarter them, and lay them in a broad stew-pan with the sweetbreads upon them, seasoned with a very little cayenne, two or three blades of mace, and some nutmeg. Add as much water as will cover them; put on closely the lid of the pan; and let the whole stew for about an hour. Then take a quarter of a pound of fresh butter, and roll it in a table-spoonful of flour. Add it to the stew with a tea-cupfull of rich milk or cream; and give it one boil up—not more, or the milk may cur- dle. Serve it hot ina deep dish; the sweetbreads in the middie with the gravy poured over them, and the quar- 68 Miss LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. raee cauliflowers laid rere round, ‘This stew will be found delicious. Broccoli may be thus stewed with sweetbreads. | es STEWED SWEETBREADS WITH OYSTERS. —Take four fine sweetbreads; cut them open; extract the gristle, and lay them in warm water till all the blood is soaked out. Then transfer them to another vessel, and scald them with boiling water, to render them white and ~ firm.’ Cover them closely, and let them boil ten minutes in the hot water. Then throw them directly into a pan of cold water. Take them out when quite cold; drain them; and put them into a stew-pan with the liquor of three dozen large fine oysters seasoned with half a grated nutmeg, or more; and eight or ten blades of mace. Add two ounces of fresh butter, mixed very smoothly with a tea-spoonful of flour. Cover the pan; and let them stew gently for half an hour or more. ‘Then put in the oysters, and let them stew with the sweetbreads a little more than five minutes. Lastly stir in a jill (two wine-glasses) of cream, immediately before you take the stew from the fire. Send it to table in a deep dish with a slice of but- * tered toast at the bottom. a eee CLAM SWEETBREADS may be stewed exactly as above, only that clams must be substituted for oysters ; the clams being cut up very small, and put in at the beginning along with the liquor, &c. The flavour they impart to the stew is by many persons considered supe- rior to that of oysters. - In stewing sweetbreads you may either divide them into halves or quarters. When cooked with oysters or clams they reqitire ho salt. Sweetbreads should be large, fine, of a delicate cca SWEETBREAD OMELETS, CLAMS, OYSTERS) ETc. 69 and perfectly fresh; otherwise they are unfit to eat. Lhey spoil sooner than any part of the calf. 3 Ca rr aa h SWEETBREAD OMELET.—For an omelet of six or seven eggs, take two fine sweetbreads. Split them; take out the gristle; and soak them in two lukewarm waters, to extract all the blood. Then put them into very hot water; boil them ten minutes; take them out ; set them away to cool; and afterwards mince them small, and season them with a very little salt and cayenne pep- per, and some grated nutmeg. Beat the eggs (omitting the whites of two) till very light. Then mix in the chopped sweetbreads. Put three ounces or more of fresh butter into a small frying- pan, and place jt over the fire. Stir the butter with a spoon, as it melts; and when it comes to a boil, put in the mixture, stirring it awhile after itis allin. Fry ita rich brown. Heat the plate or dish m which you turn it-out of the pan. An omelet should never be turned while frying. The top may be well browned by holding above it a salamander or a red-hot shovel. If you wish it very thick have three sweetbreads. While frying the omelet, lift the edge occasionally by slipping a. knife-blade under it, that the butter may get well beneath. If omelets are cooked too much they will become tough, and leather-like. Many persons prefer having them sent to table as soft omelets, before they have set, or taken the form of a cake. In this case, serve up the omelet in a deep dish, and help it with a spoon. sam as ahha r A ROUND OF BEEF STEWED BROWN.—Take a round of fresh beef; the larger it is the more tender it win be: a small round is always, comparatively, hard and tough. Remove the fat; with a sharp knife make 70 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. deep cuts or incisions all over the meat, and stuff into them a seasoning of finely minced onions, mixed with powdered mace, nutmeg, and a little pepper and salt. Then go all over the meat with the drippings or cold gravy of roast beef, and dredge it slightly with flour. Have ready an iron dutch-oven and its lid, well heated by standing up both lid and oven before the fire. Then put the meat into the oven, cover it, and let it brown on all sides. Have ready, cut into small pieces, two turnips; four carrots ; four oyster plants or salsify ; three stalks of celery ; two small onions; and two large tomatoes, or a large table-spoonful of tomato catchup. After the meat is browned, raise it up, and place the vegetables underneath it, and pour on three half-pints of water, or more if the round is very large. Let it coolc slowly in the oven, with a regular fire, for several hours, till it is entirely done all through; taking care to keep it closely covered. After the meat is taken out, place it on a large hot dish, wih the vegetables. round it. Cover it, and keep it hot while you thicken the gravy with a small tea-spoonful of flour, and the beaten yolk of an egg. Simmer this gravy a few minutes, then put it into a sauce-boat, and serve it up with the meat. What is left will be very good stewed over again the next day, with fresh vegetables; letting the meat cook no longer than till the vegetables are sufficiently done. Observe this rule with all stews, soups, hashes, &c., when cooked the second time. abies STEWED BEEF STEAKS.—Take beef steaks from the sirloin. Cut them thin; remove the fat and bone, and trim them nicely. Beat them well with a beetle or a rolling-pin. Season them slightly with pepper.and salt, and spread over them some finely minced onions, or some chopped mushrooms. Lay among them some bits of fresh BEEF STEAKS STEWED, POT-PIE, ETO. T1 butter rolled in flour. Put them into a stew-pan with a very close cover, and without any water. Set the pan not on the fire, but before it or beside it, (turning it round frequently,) and let them stew slowly for two or three hours, or till they are thoroughly done. ‘Then serve them up in their own gravy. ; A BEEF STEAK POT-PIE.—Remove the fat and bone from two pounds or more of fine, tender beef steaks, and cut them into small pieces. Season them slightly ~ with a very little saltand pepper; put them into a pot with a piece of fresh butter rolled in flour, and just water enough to cover them. Let them stew slowly (skimming. -hem as soon as the water comes toa boil) for an hour. Boil in another pot some white potatoes, (a dozen small or eight large ones,) cut into quarters. While the steal is stewing, make a paste of finely minced beef-suet and flour, in the proportion of a pound anda half of suet to three pounds of flour. For a large pot-pie, you should have more than the above quantity of paste; the paste being always considered the best part of the pie, and much liked by those who eat it at all. Having rubbed the minced suet into the pan of flour, add a very little salt, and as little water as will suffice to make it into a lump of dough. ‘Too much water mixed in any sort of paste will render it tough, heavy, and unwholesomeé. Divide the dough into two portions; roll out one sheet thicker than the other. Line the sides of a clean iron pot about half-way or two-thirds up with the thin paste. Then, having poured a little of the gravy into the bottom of the pot, put in a layer of the half-stewed beef; then a layer of the thick paste, cut into long squares. Thena layer of the quartered potatoes ; then meat; then paste ; then potatoes, and so on till the whole is in. Pour on the remainder of the gravy, and add also a pint of warm ty, ofr 72 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. water. Cover the whole with a sheet of thin paste for a top crust, which must not fit closely round the edge, as there must be room for the gravy to boil up over it. Then place the pot over a moderate fire, and boil it for an hour and a half. Send it to table on a large dish,—the - . meat, and potatoes, and soft crust in the middle, and the hard crust cut into pieces and laid round. Serve up the gravy in a boat. °« a This pie will be much improved by a few fresh mush- rooms, cut from the stalls, peeled, and put in when the stewed meat is transferred to the pie-pot. A pot-pie of fowls or rabbits may be made as above. If you prefer butter to suet for making the paste, allow half a pound of fresh butter to each pound of flour. Cut up the butter into the pan of flour, rub it fine with your hands, wet it with as little water as possible, beat and roll it out as above. wie BEEF STEAKS WITH MUSHROOMS.—Take four pounds of the best sirloin steaks, cut thin. Season them with black pepper, and a very little salt. Put four table-spoonfuls of butter into a frying-pan, and set it over the fire. When itis quite hot, put in the steaks and let them brown. Have ready a quart of mushrooms, stemmed and skinned, and*moistened with a pint of water, seasoned with a little pepper and salt, and thickened slightly with a good dredging of flour. Pour it over the steaks in the frying-pan, and then let them cook till tho- roughly done. _ Venison steaks will be found excellent dressed in this taanner, but the venison must be fresh. MINCED BEEF.—Take the lean of some cold roast beef. Chop it very fine, adding a small minced onion; and season it with pepper and salt, Put it into a stew- _ STEW COLD, CORNED. »EEF,ETC.. =... ‘7% ee a an, with some.of the gravy that has been left fromthe day before, and let it stew for a quarter of an hour. Then put it (two-thirds full) into a deep dish. Fill up the dish with mashed potatoes, heaped high in the centre, smoothed on the surface, and browned with a salamander or a red- _ hot shovel. | Cold roast mutton or lamb may be minced as above, adaing some sweet- -marjoram to the seasoning, and filling up the dish with mashed turnips instead. of potatoes. Also, cold roast pork ; flavouring the seasoning with a ttle chopped sage. Cover the top with sweet potatoe, boiled and mashed, or with apple-sauce, that has beer stewed as thick as possible. ——¢—— TO STEW COLD CORNED BEEF.—Cut about four pounds of lean from a cold round of beef, that tastes but little of the salt. Lay it in a stew-pan, with a quarter of a peck of tomatoes quartered, and the same quantity. of ochras sliced; also, two small onions peeled and sliced, and two ounces of fresh butter rolled in flour. Add . a tea-spoonful of whole pepper-corns, (no salt,) and four or five blades of mace. “Place it over a steady but mode- rate fire. Cover it closely, and let it stew three or four hours. The vegetables should be entirely dissolved.. Serve it up hot. : This is an excellent way of using up the remains of a cold round of beef at the season of tomatoes and ochras, particularily when the meat has been rather under-boiled the first day of cooking it. A few pounds of the lean of a fr ee round of beef, will be still better cooked in this manner, increasing the quan- tity of ochras and tomatoes, and stewing it six hours. Cold fillet of veal is very good stewed with tomatoes, ochras, and an onion or two. Also, the thick or upper part of a cold leg of mutton; or of pork, either fresh or corned. 7 74 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. TO STEW SMOKED BEEF.—The dried beef, for this purpose, must be fresh and of the very best quality. Cut i: (or rather shave it) into very thin, small slices, with as little fat as possible. Put the beef into a skillet, and fill up with boiling water. Cover it, and let it soak or steep till the water is cold. Then drain off that water, and pour on some more, but merely enough to cover the chipped beef, which you may season with a little pepper. Set it over the fire, and (keeping on the cover) let it stew for a quarter of an hour. Then roll a few bits of butter in a little flour, and add it to the beef, with the yoll of one or two beaten eggs. Let it stew five minutes longer. Take it up on a hot dish, and send it tothe breakfast or tea-table. Cold ham may be sliced thin, and stewed in the same " manner. Dried venison also. —_+—. FRENCH BEEF.—Take a circular piece from the round, (having removed the bone,) and trim it nicely from che fat, skin, &c. Then lard it all over with long slips of fat pork or bacon. The place from whence the bone was taken must be filled with a force-meat, made of minced suet; grated bread-crumbs ; sweet-marjoram rub- bed fine ; and grated lemon-peel ; add a little salt and pep- per, and mix in the beaten yolk of an egg to bind together the other ingredients. Tie a twine or tape closely round the outside of the beef, to keep it compact, and in shape. Put it into a broad earthen jar with a cover; or into an iron bake-oven. Add some whole pepper; a large onion stuck over with a dozen cloves; a bunch of sweet herbs; three bay-leaves ; a quarter of a pound of butter, divided into small bits, (each piece rolled in flour,) and half a pin of claret, or port-wine. Bake or stew it thus in its own liquor, for five, six, or seven hours, (in proportion to its size,) for it must be thoroughly done, quite tender, and BEEF OLIVES, PLAIN STEW, FRENCH BEEF, ETC. 75 brown all through the inside. Serve it up hot with the gravy round it. It is also-very good when cold. A fillet of veal may be cooked in this manner. Also a fillet of fresh pork, cut from the upper part of a hind ‘leg; ora fillet of fresh venison. —_~— BEEF OLIVES.—Take the lean of some cold roast beef; cut it into slices about half an inch thick, and four inches square. They must all be of the same size and shape. Trim the edges nicely. Make a force-meat of grated bread-crumbs, finely-chopped beef-suet; minced onion; grated nutmeg or powdered mace; sweet-marjo- ram leaves rubbed fine; a very /2ttle salt and pepper; and some beaten yolk of ege. Having mixed all thoroughly together, spread very thickly a portion of the force-meat upon each slice of the cold beef. Then roll them up, and tie every. one securely round with coarse thread or fine twine. Have ready some roast- beef gravy left from the day before, or make a fresh gravy by boiling, or rather stewing the beef bones with as little water as possible. When the gravy is ready, strain it into a clean stew-pan; put in the beef olives; cover the pan, and let them stew slowly for half an hour. Serve them up with their gravy. Remove the strings before the olives go to table. Veal olives may be made in the above manner, with a cold roast fillet of veal, and veal gravy. A PLAIN STEW.—Cut steaks from a sirloin or a - tender round of beef, omitting the fat and bone. Season them,with pepper and a little salt. Put them into a pot, and to three pounds of meat allow a quart of water. When it has simmered for an Héur, and been well skim- med, mix among it a dozen potatoes, and half a dozen turnips, all pared and quartered ; and (if you like them) > 76 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. two onions sliced thin. If the stew appears too dry, pour in a little boiling water from a kettle. Let itstew slowly with the vegetables another hour, or till the whole is per fectly tender. Serve it up with the vegetables round it on a large dish. | bland. seal Beef stewed with parsnips only is very good. ne Lamb or veal cutlets may be stewed in this manner. A fillet-or round of fresh pork is.excellent stewed with sweet potatoes, which must be scraped or pased, and spit in half. BEEF’S TONGUE STEWED.—Take a fresh beef’s tongue of the largest size. Remove the little bones, skin, &c., from about the root, and trim it nicely. Take a table-spoonful each of salt, pepper, and powdered cloves, and mix them all together. Rub the tongue well all over with this seasoning Lay it in a deep earthen pan, cover it with the best cider vinegar, and let it stand three days, turning it frequently, and keeping it closely covered. Then (having wiped off all the seasoning) put the tongue into a stew-pot, and add half a pint of water—not more— and stew it slowly till quite done. Have ready some force-meat balls, made with minced veal, mixed with the ingredients usual in force-meat. Put in the balls about twenty minutes before you take up the tongue. it is thoroughly done, and tender all through, = e _and send it to table with the force-meat balls round i it. ~ — oe BAKED TONGUE.—Take a large smoked tongue, put it into warm water and soak it all day. Change the water in the evening, and then let it remain in soak all night. Before you cook it, trim the root handsomely. Make a coarse paste or dough, merely of flour and water, as it is not to be eaten. © Roll it out thin, and enclose the FILLET OF PORK, BAKED TONGUE, ETC. 17 tongue init. Put it into an oven, and bake it slowly. It will require four hours or more. When you think it is done, break a little of the paste just over the thickest part, and try it by sticking a fork through it. If not per- fectly tender, let it bake a while longer. When quite done, remove the paste, and either serve up the tongue, or set it away to get cold. This is the best way of cook- ing a tongue to be eaten cold. If to be eaten warm, send it to table surrounded with mashed potatoes, and the root concealed with parsley sprigs. The best way to carve a tongue, is to cut it across in round slices, beginning at the middle. If cut lengthways the flavour will be impaired. Nevertheless, if you have two tongues, and wish to make a large handsome-looking dish of them, (having first re- moved the root,) split one lengthways, and lay the two halves spread open and near together on a bed of mashed potatoes; and cut the other tongue into circular slices. Arrange these slices in a handsome form or pattern all round ‘the split tongue that occupies the centre of the mashed potatoe; and decorate the whole with sprigs of double parsley. If the tongues are cold, instead of mashed potatoe, lay them on a bed of salad-dressed lettuce, cut or chopped very small; or on chopped celery, dressed as lettuce. —_e¢—. FILLET OF PORK.—Cut a fillet or round, hand- somely and evenly, from a fine leg of fresh pork. Re- move the bone. Make a stuffing or force-meat of grated bread-crumbs; butter; a tea-spoonful of sweet-marjoram or tarragon leaves; and sage leaves enough to make a small table-spoonful, when minced or rubbed fine; all well mixed, and slightly seasoned with pepper and salt. Add some beaten yolk of egg to bind the whole together, then stuff it closely into the hole from whence the bone was taken. Score the skin of the pork in circles to go 7* "8 MISS LESLIN’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. all ¢ound the fillet. These circles should be very close together, or not quite half an inch apart. Rub into them, slightly, a little powdered sage. Put it on the spit, and roast it well, till it is thoroughly done throughout; as pork, if the least-underdone, is not fit to eat. Place it for the first hour not very close to the fire, that the meat may get well heated all through, before the skin begins to harden so as to prevent the heat from penetrating suffi- ‘ciently. Then set it as near the fire as it can be placed without danger of scorching. Keep it roasting steadily with a bright, good, regular fire, for two or three hours, or longer still if it is a large fillet. It may require near four hours. Baste it at the beginning with sweet oil (which will make the skin very crisp) or with lardy Afterwards, baste it with its own gravy. When done, skim the fat from the gravy, and then dredge in a little flour to thicken it. Send the pork to table with the gravy Ina boat; anda small tureen of apple-sauce, made very thick, flavoured with lemon, and sweetened well. A fillet of pork is excellent stewed slowly in a very little water, having in the same stew-pot some sweet potatoes, peeled, split, and cut into long pieces. If stewed, put no sage in the stuffing; and remove the skin of the pork. This is an excites fii dish in the autumn. By , Me coe en - ITALIAN PORK.—Take a nice leg of fresh pork ; rub it well with fine salt, and let it lie in the salt for a week or ten days. When you wish to cook it, put the pork into a large pot with just sufficient water to cover it ; and let it simmer, slowly, during four hours; skimming’ it well. Then take it out, and lay it on a large dish. Pour the water from the pot into an earthen pan; skim it, and let 1t cool while you are skinning the pork. \Then. put into the pot, a pint of good cider vinegar, mixed with — = td PORK OLIVES, PIGS FEET FRIED, ETC. 79 half a pound of brewn sugar, and a pint of the water in , which the pork has been boiled, and from which all the fat has been carefully skimmed off’ Put in the pork with the upper side towards the bottom of the pot. Set it again over the fire, (which must first be increased,) and heat the inside of the pot-lid by standing it upright against the front of the fire. Then cover the pot closely, and let the pork stew for an hour and a half longer; basting it frequently with the liquid around it, and keep- ing the pot-lid as hot as possible that the meat may be well browned. When done, the pork will have somewhat the appearance of being coated with molasses. Serve up the gravy with it. What is left of the meat ak be sliced cold for breakfast or luncheon. You may stew with it when the pork is put into the pot a second time, some large chesnuts, previously boiled and peeled. Or, instead of chesnuts, sweet potatoes, scraped, split, and cut into small pieces. . —~¢— PORK OLIVES.—Cut slices from a fillet or leg of éold fresh pork. Make a force-meat in the usual manner, only substituting*for sweet herbs some sage-leaves chopped fine. When the slices are covered with the force-meat, and rolled up and tied round, stew them slowly either in cold gravy left of the pork, or in fresh lard. Drain them well before they go to table. Serve them up on a bed of mashed turnips or potatoes, or of mashed sweet pota- toes, if in season. : Dae Sab ere PIGS’ FEET FRIED.—Pigs’ feet are~ frequently used for jelly, instead of calves’ feet. They are very good for this purpose, but a larger number is required (from eight to ten or twelve) to make the jelly suffi- ciently firm. After they have been boiled for jelly, extract the bones, and put the meat into a deep dish; «= 80 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKYNG. cover it with some good cider-vinegar, seasoned with. sugar and a little salt and cayenne. ‘Then cover the dish, and set it away for the night. Next morning, take out the meat, and having drained it well from the vine- gar, put it into a frying-pan in which some lard has just come to a boil, and fry it for a breakfast dish. —_+—. COMNECTICUT SAUSAGE-MEAT.—To fifteen pounds of the lean of fresh pork, allow five pounds of the fat. Having removed the skin, sinews, and gristle, chop both the fat and lean as fine as possible, and mix them well together. Rub to a powder sufficient sage- leaves to make four ounces when done. Mix the sage with three ounces of fine salt, two ounces of brown sugar, an ounce of powdered black pepper, and a quarter of an ounce of cayenne. Add this seasoning to the chopped pork, and mix it thoroughly. Pack the sausage-meat down, hard and closely, into stone jars, which must be kept in a cool place, and well covered. When wanted for use, make some of it into small, flat cakes, dredge them with flour, and fry them well. The fat that exudes from the sausage-cakes, while frying, ~rill be sufficient to cook them in. ae A FINE VENISON PIE.—-Cut steaks from a or haunch of venison, which should be as freshly ki as you can get it. The strange prejudice in favour of hard, black-looking venison, that has been kept till the juices are all dried up, is fast subsiding; the preference is now given to that which has been newly killed, when- ever it can be obtained. Those who have eaten venison fresh from the. woods, will never again be able to relish it in the state in which it is brought to the Atlantic cities. Having removed the bones, and seasoned it with a little salt and pepper, put the venison into a pot, with barely VENISON PIE, SAUSAGE-MBAT, ETC. 81 as much water as will cover it, and let it stew till perfectly tender, skimming it occasionally. Then take it out, and set it to cool, saving the gravy ina bowl. Make a light paste, in the proportion of three quarters of a pound of fresh butter toa pound anda half of flour. Divide the paste into two portions, and roll it out rather thick. But- ter a deep dish, and line it with one of the sheets of paste. Then put in the venison. Season the gravy with a glass of very good wine, either red or white, a few blades of mace, and a powdered nutmeg. Stir into it the crum- bled yolks of some hard-boiled eggs. Pour the gravy over the meat, and put on the other sheet of paste as the” lid of the pie. Notch it handsomely round the edges, and bake it well. Ifa steady heat is kept up, it will be done in an hour.’ Send it to table hot. Instead of wine, you may put into the gravy a glass of currant-jelly. ® Any sort of game may be made into a anes in the above manner. —¢—. A VERY PLAIN VENISON PIE.—Cut from the bone some good+pieces of fresh venison; season them a Tite e with salt and pepper, and put them into a pot, with lenty of sliced potatoes, (either white or sweet ye and barely as much water as will cover the whole. Set it over the fire, and let it stew slowly, till the meat is s tender, and the potatoes also. Make a paste of flour shortened with cold gravy, or drippings saved from roast venison. The fat must be removed from the surface of the cold gravy, of which you may allow half a pint to each pound of flour. Mix half the shortening with the flour, using a broad knife or a spoon for the purpose, and adding gra- dually sufficient cold water to male it into a stiff dough. Beat the lump of dough well on all sides, with the roll- ing-pin. Then take it out of the pan, roll it into a thick 94 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. . » it stand in a hot place, or ina kettle of boiling water for ten minutes. Then send it to table in a covered dish. ~ To the taste of many persons, this fricassee will be 1 im- proved by adding to the chicken, while stewing, some small, thin slices of cold boiled ham. : iy Rabbits or veal may be fricasseed in the above manner. —— BROWN FRICASSEE.—Half roast a pair of ducks. Then cut them apart, as for carving. If they are wild- ducks, parboil them with a large carrot (cut to pieces) in- side of each, to draw out the fishy or sedgy taste. Having thrown away the carrot, cut the ducks into pieces, as for | carving. Put them into a clean stew-pan, and: season them with- pepper and salt. Mix ina deep dish a very small onion minced fine, a table-spoonful of minced or powdered tarragon-leaves, (for which you may substitute sage and sweet-marjoram, if you cannot procure tarra- gon,) and two or three large tomatoes, scalded, ‘peeled, and quartered, or two large table-spoonfuls of thick to- mato catchup. Put in, also, two table-spoonfuls of fresh butter rolled in grated bread-crumbs, and a elass of port wine, claret, or brandy, with a small 'tea-spoonful of pow- dered mace. Cover the pieces of duck with this mixture, and then add barely as much water as will keep the whole’ from burning. Cover the pan closely, and let the fricas- see stew slowly for an hour, or till the duck, &c., are’ thoroughly. done. bck ~ Venison or lamb cutlets may be fricasseed in this man- ner. . Likewise, tame fat pigeons, which must previously be split in two. This, also, is a very nice way of dress- ing hares or rabbits. a © eee STEWED WILD DUCKS.—Having rubbed them’ slightly with salt, and parboiled them for about twenty minutes with a large carrot (cut to pieces) in each, to take’ z WILD DUCKS, CANVAS-BACK, ETC. = 95 off the sedey or fishy taste, remove the carrots, cut up the ducks, and put.them into a stew-pan with just suffi- cient water to cover them, and some bits of butter rolled slightly in flour. Cover the pan closely; and let the ducks stew for a quarter of an hour or more. Have ready a mixture in the proportion of a wine-glass of sherry or madeira; the grated yellow rind and the juice of a jarge lemon or orange, and one large table-spoonfu) of powdered loaf-sugar. Pour this over the ducks, and let them stew in it about five minutes longer. Then serve them up in a deep dish with the gravy about them. Eat the stewed duck on hot plates with heaters under them. — : Cold roast duck that has been under-done is very fine stewed as above. Venison also, and wild geese. ere TO ROAST CANVAS-BACK DUCKS.—Having trussed the ducks, put into each a thick piece of soft bread that has been soaked in port wine. Place therm before a quick fire and roast them from thfee quarters to an hour. Before they go to table, squeeze over each the juice of a lemon or orange; and serve them up very hot with their own gravy about them. Eat them with cur- rant jelly. Have ready also a gravy made by stewing slowly in a sauce-pan the giblets of the ducks in butter rolled in flour and as little water as possible. Serve up this additional gravy in a boat. ’ a CANVAS-BACK DUCKS DRESSED PLAIN.— Truss the ducks without washing; but wipe them inside and out with a clean dry cloth. Roast them before a rather quick fire for half an hour. Then send them to table hot, upon a large dish placed ona heater. There must also be heaters under each plate, and currant jelly on both sides of the table, to mix with the gravy, on your >. . 96 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. plate ; claret or port wine also, for thosé who bishtliine it ¢ as an improvement to the gravy. —_+— TO STEW CANVAS-BACK DUCKS.—Put the giblets into a sauce-pan with the yellow rind of a lemon_ , pared thin, a very little water, and a piece of butter — rolled in flour, and a very little salt and cayenne. Let’ them stew gently to make a gravy; keeping the sauce- pan covered. In the mean time, half roast the ducks, saving the gravy that falls from them. Then cut them up; put them into a large stew-pan, with the gravy (having first skimmed off the fat) and merely water enough to keep them from burning. - Set the pan over a moderate fire, and let them stew gently till done. Towards the last (having removed the giblets) pour over the ducks the gravy from the small sauce-pan, and stir in a large glass of port wine, and a glass of currant jelly. Send them to table as hot as possible. . Any ducks may be stewed as above. The common wild-ducks, teal, &c., should always be parboiled with a large carrot in the body to extract the fishy or sedgy taste. On tasting this carrot before it is thrown away, it will be found to have imbibed strongly that disagreeable flavour. © pee Sete PARTRIDGES IN PEARS.—Cut off the necks’ of she partridges close to the breast. Truss them very tight and round, and rub over them a little salt and cayenne pepper mixed. Cut off one of the legs, and leave the other on. Make a rich paste of flour, butter, and beaten yolk of egg, with as little water as possible. - Roll it out thin and evenly, and puta portion of it nicely round each partridge, pressing it on closely with your hand, and forming it into the shape of a large pear. Leave one leg © sticking out at the top to resemble the stem. Set them © PARTRIDGES, PIGEONS, QUAILS, ETC. - 97 = in a pan; and bake them in a dutch oven. In the mean time, make in a small sauce-pan, a rich brown gravy of the livers, and other trimmings of the partridges, and some drippings of roast veal or roasted poultry. It will be better still if you reserve one or two small partridges to cut up, and stew for the gravy# Season it with a little salt and cayenne. When it has boiled long enough te be very thick and rich, take it off, strain it, and put the liquid into a clean sauce-pan. Add, the juice of a large orange or lemon, made very sweet with powdered white sugar. Set it over the fire; and when it comes to a boil, stir in the beaten yolks of two eggs. Let it boil two or three minutes longer; then take it off, and keep it hot till the partridges and their paste are thoroughly well-baked. When done, stand up the partridges in a deep dish, and serve up the gravy in a sauce-boat. Ornament the par- tridge-pears by sticking some orange or lemon leaves into the end that represents the stalk. This is a nice and handsome side dish,of French origin. Pigeons and quails may be dressed in this manner. se SALMI OF PARTRIDGES, (French dish.\—Having covered two large or four small partridges with very thin slices of fat cold ham, secured with twine, roast them ; but see that they are not too much done. Remove the ham, skin the partridges, cut them into pieces, and let them get quite cold. Partridges that have been roasted’ the preceding day are good for this purpose. Cut off all the meat from the bones, season it with a little cayenne, and put it into a stew-pan. Mix together three table- spoonfuls of sweet oil; a glass of excellent wine (either ted or white) and the grated peel and juice of a lemon. Pour this gravy over the partridges, and let them stew in it during ten minutes; then add the beaten yolk of an egg, and stew it about three or four minutes longer. 9 98 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. All the time it. is stewing, continue to shake or move the pan over the fire. Serve it up hot. wale A NICE WAY OF COOKING GAME,.—Phea- sants, partridges, quails, grouse, plovers, &c., are excellent stuffed with chesnuts: -boiled, peeled, and mashed or - pounded. Cover the birds with very thin slices of cold ham; then enclose them in vine-leaves*tied on securely so as to keep in the gravy. Lay them in a deep dish, and bake them in a close oven. that has nothing else in it, (for instance an iron dutch oven,) that the game may imbibe no other flavour. When done, remove the ham and the vine leaves, and dish the birds with the gravy that is about them. > Pheasants are unfit to eat after the first snow, as they then, for want of other food, are apt to feed on wild laurel berries, which give their flesh a disagreeably bitter taste, and are said to have sometimes produced deleterious effects on persons who have eaten it. ——_¢— BIRDS WITH MUSHROOMS.—Take two dozen reed-birds, (or other nice small birds,) and truss them as if for roasting. Put into each a button-mushroom ; of which you should have a heaping pint after the stalks are all re- moved. Put the birds, and the remaining mushrooms into a stew-pan. Season them with a very little salt and pep- per, and add either a-quarter of a pound of fresh butter (divided into four, and slightly rolled in flour) or a pint of rich cream. If cream is not plenty, you may use half butter and half cream, ~vell mixed together. Cover the stew-pan closely, and set it over a moderate fire, to stew gently till the birds and mushrooms are thoroughly done and tender all through. Do not open the lid to stir the stew; but give the pan, occasionally, a hard shake. Have ready on a dish a thin slice of buttered toast with \ THATCHED HOUSE PIE, BIRDS, ETC. 92 the crust all cut off. When done, lay the birds on the tuast with the mushrooms all round. If you cannot get button-mushrooms, divide large ones into quarters. Plovers are very nice stewed with mushrooms. BIRDS IN A GROVE, (French dish.) — Having roasted some reed-birds, larks, plovers, or any other small birds, such as are usually eaten, mash some potatoes with butter or cream. Spread the mashed potatoe thickly over the bottom, sides, and edges of a deep dish. Nick or crimp the border of potatoe that goes round the edge; or scollop it with atin cutter. You may, if you choose, brown it by holding over it a salamander, or a red-hot shovel. ‘Then lay the roasted birds inthe middle of the dish, and stick round them and among them, very thickly a sufficient number of sprigs of curled»or deuble parsley. ae eey awe: THATCHED HOUSE PIE, (French dish.)—Rub the inside of a deep dish with two ounces of fresh butter, and spread over it two ounces of vermicelli. Then line the dish with puff-paste. Have ready some birds sea- soned with powdered nutmeg and a very little salt and pepper. Place them with their breasts downward. They will be much improved by putting into each a mushroom or an oyster chopped fine. Lay them on the paste. Add some gravy of roast veal, (cold gravy saved from veal roasted the preceding day will do very well,) and cover the pie with a lid of puff-paste. Bake it in a mo- derate oven, and when done, turn it out carefudly upon a flat dish, and send it to table. The vermicelli which was originally at the bottom, will now be at the top, covering the paste like thatch upon a roof. Trim off the edges so as to look nicely. You may, if you choose, use a larger f 100 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. quantity of vermicelli. The yellow sort will be best for this purpose. aia RICE PIE.—Pick clean a quart of rice, and wash it well through two or three waters. ‘Tie it in a cloth, put — it into a pot of boiling water, and boil it till perfectly soft. Then drain and press it till as dry as possible, and mix with it two ounces of fresh butter, and two table-spoonfuls of mild grated cheese. Take a small tin butter-kettle 5 wet the inside, put in the rice, and stand it in a cool place. iil quite cold. Then turn it carefully out of the kettle, fof which it will retain the form,) rab it over with the yeaten yolk of an ego, and sét it in an oven till lightly arowned. Cut out from the top of the mass of rice an aval lid, about two inches from the edge, so as to leave a lat rim or border all round. Then excavate the mould f rice; leaving a standing crust all round and at the ‘ottom, about two inches thick. Have ready some hot -tewed oysters or birds, or brown or white fricassee. Fill «p the pie with it—adding the gravy. Lay on the lid, eid decorate it with sprigs of green curled parsley, stuck iv all round the crack where the lid is put on. This pie may be filled with curried chickens. —+— A RAISED FRENCH PIE.—These pies have stand- ing crust or walls, and may be filled with game or poul- try, previously boned, seasoned, and stewed. ‘They are generally made very large, and in winter will keep a week: or two if closely covered. They are frequently sent a considerable distance, as Christmas presents 5 well packed in a close tin box. . To make the paste for a large pie :—Sift three pounds of fiour into a pan, and make a hole in the centre. Cut up a pound of fresh butter, and two pounds of beef-suet, finely chopped. Put them into a clean pot, with as much ? J % RAISED FRENCH PIE, RICE PIE, ETC. 101 eet —— boiling water as will cover them. Set them over the fire; and when the butter and suet are entirely dissolved, stir the whole with a spoon, and pour it into the hole in the middle of the flour; mix it with a spoon into a stiff paste, till it becomes cold enough for you to knead with your hands into a lump of dough. Sprinkle some flour on your paste-board, and on your hands; make the dough into the form of a cone or sugar-loaf, and with your hands smooth and flatten the sides of it. Then squeeze or press down the point of the cone; straighten the sides; and flatten the top, so as to give it the shape of a hat crown. Next, cut off from the top a thick, round slice, and lay it aside for the lid, and anotlier slice for the ornaments. With one hand make a hollow in the large mass of dough, and with the other shape out and smooth the sides, leav- ing enough fora crust at the bottom. In this manner, hollow it into the shape of a straight-sided pan, leaving the wall or crust so thick that it will stand alone. Then fill it with the bones of the poultry or game, and some crusts of bread to keep it in shape. The portion of dough reserved for the lid must then be moulded on the inverted bottom of a deep plate, previously buttered. The lid may be a little larger than the top of the pie. The paste re- served for the ornaments should be rolled out, and cut with tin cutters into the form of leaves and flowers, or ‘ vine-leaves and grapes. ‘These should be carefully placed in a wreath round the middle of the standing crust of the pie. A smaller wreath may be laid like a border round the lid, at the top of which place a large flower of paste, to look like a handle by which to lift it. Before you put on the ornaments, have ready the beaten yolks of two eggs; and dipping in a clean brush, glaze with it the whole outside of the pie, including the lid Then stick on the decorations. Put the pie into a mode- rate oven, and bake it brown. The lid must be baked G* 102 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. separately. When both are done, remove the bones, &c., from the inside of the pie, and fill it with the ingredients prepared, which must be previously stewed in their own gravy, with the addition of some bits of .butter rolled in flour. Put on the lid, and cement the edges by glazing them with a little beaten egg. These pies are usually made with slices of ham or smoked tongue at the bottom ;_ then partridges, pheasants, moor-fowl, and other large ' game, all boned; and the spaces between filled up with - force-meat, or with mushrooms stewed and chopped. They may be made with venison, wild turkeys, or wild ducks. Whatever is put into these pies must have no bone about it, and should be well seasoned. The ingredients may be put into the pie, and the lid laid on at once,—pinching the edges together. In this case, it must bake three or four hours, in proportion to its size. | —_o— PIGEONS WITH HAM.—Take fine fat tame pigeons. For stuffing, boil some chesnuts till quite soft; and having peeled them, mash or pound them smooth. Mix with them a little fat of cold ham, finely minced and pounded, For chesnuts, may be substituted boiled sweet potatoe, mashed with butter. Fill the pigeons with the stuffing, having first slightly peppered their insides. Cover them with very thin slices of cold ham, (fat and lean together,) and wrap them in fresh vine-leaves, tied round with twine. Put them on a spit, and roast them three quarters of an hour. When done, carefully remove the strings, and serve up the pigeons, still°wrapped in the, ham and vine-leaves. They will be found very nice. Partridges and quails may be drest in this manner. Wild pigeons are so seldom fat, and have so little meat upon their bones, that except for soups and gravies, they are scarcely worth buying. In places where they abound, ~ GIBLET PIE, GROUSE PUDDING, ETC. 163 they may be turned to good account by catching them in nets; clipping their wings; and keeping them in an en- closure till they are fattened by feeding them well with corn, or Indian meal moistened with water When managed thus, they will be found quite equal, if not su perior, to tame pigeons. . icc le _A GIBLET PIE.—Clean, very nicely, the giblets o two geese or fourducks. Put them into a stew-pan, witi a sliced onion; a bunch of tarragon, or sweet-marjoran and sage; half a dozen pepper-corns; and four or five blades of mace. Adda very little water; cover the pan closely, and let them stew till the giblets are tender Then take them out, and save all the gravy; having strained it from the seasoning articles. Make a rich paste, and roll it out into two sheets. With one shee cover the bottom and sides of a deep dish. Put in the giblets,—mixing among them a few cold boiled potatoes sliced, the chopped yolks of some hard-boiled eggs, and some bits of butter rolled in flour. Pour the gravy over the giblets, &c. Cover the pie with the other sheet of paste, and notch the edges. Bake it brown, and send it to table hot. A pigeon pie may be made in a similar manner: also, a rabbit pie. —+ MOOR-FOWL OR GROUSE PUDDING.—Having skinned the moor-fowls, cut them up as for carving, and season them slightly with salt and pepper. Have ready +a sufficient quantity of paste, made in the proportion of a pound of fresh butter to two pounds of sifted flour. Roll it out thick, and line with ita pudding mould, which must first be buttered; reserving sufficient paste for the lid. ‘Then put in the pieces of moor-fowl, and place be- tween each layer a layer of small mushrooms, or of fresh _ 104 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. oysters cut small. Next pour in a little water, (anout halt a pint,) and adda piece of fresh butter rolled in flour. Then cover it priih the remaining paste, pressing it down very closely round the edge. Dipa strong clean cloth into boiling water, dredge it with flour, and tie it tightly over the mould or pudding-basin. Put it into a pot of boiling water, and boil it three hours or more, according to its size. A simvlar pudding may be made of pheasants, par- tridges, or quails; and is a delicious way of cooking game of any sort: rabbits, also, are very nice, cut up and put into a crust for boiling. 4 9 ? A BONED TURKEY.—For this purpose you must have a fine, large, tender turkey ; and after itis drawn, _ and washed, and wiped dry, lay it on a clean table, and take a very sharp knife, with a narrow blade and point. Begin at the neck; then go round to the shoulders and wings, and carefully separate the flesh from the bone, scraping it down as you proceed. Next loosen the flesh from the breast, and back, and body; and then from the thighs. It requires care and patience to doit nicely, and to avoid tearing or breaking the skin. ‘The knife should always penetrate quite to the bone; scraping loose the flesh rather than cutting it. When all the flesh has been completely loosened, take the turkey by the neck, give it a pull, and the whole skeleton will come out entire from the flesh, as easily as you draw your hand out of a glove. The flesh will then fall down, a flat and shapeless mass. With a small needle and thread, carefully sew up any holes that have accidentally been torn in the skin. Have ready a large quantity of stuffing, made as fol- lows :—Take three sixpenny loaves of stale bread ; grate tne crumb; and put the crusts in water to soak. When quite soft, break them up small into the pan of grated + BONED TURKEY, BONED PIG, ETC. 105 bread-crumbs, and mix in a pound of fresh butter, cut into little pieces. ‘Take two large bunches of sweet-marjo- ram ; the same of sweet-basil; and one bunch of parsley. Mince the parsley very fine, and rub toa powder the leaves of the marjoram and basil. You should have two large, heaping table-spoonfuls of each. Chop, also, two very small onions or shalots, and mix them with the herbs. Pound to powder a quarter of an ounce of mace ; a quarter of an ounce of cloves; and two large nutmegs. Mix the spices together, and add a tea-spoonful of salt and a tea- spoonful of ground black pepper. .Then mix the herbs, ~ spice, &c., thoroughly into the bread-crumbs ; and add, by degrees, four beaten eggs to bind the whole together. — Take up a handful of this filling; squeeze it hard, and. proceed to stuff the turkey with it,—beginning at the wings; next do the body; and then the thighs.’ Stuff it very hard, and as you proceed, form the turkey into its " natural shape, by filling out, properly, the wings, breast, body, &c. When all the stuffing is in, sew up the body and skewer the turkey into the usual shape in which they are trussed; so that, if skilfully done, it will look almost as if it had not been boned. Tie°it round with tape, and bake it three hours or more; basting it occa- sionally with fresh butter. Make a gravy of the giblets, chopped, and stewed slowly in a little water. When done, add to it the gravy that is in the dish about the turkey, (having first skimmed off the fat,) and enrich it with a glass of white wine, and two beaten yolks of eggs, stirred in just before you take it from the fire. If the turkey is to be eaten cold at the supper-table, drop table-spoonfuls of currant or cranberry jelly all over it at small distances, and in the dish round it. A very handsome way of serving it up ‘cold is, after making a sufficiency of nice clear calves’-foot jelly, (season- ed, as usual, with wine, lemon, cinnamon, &c.,) to lay the 106 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. turkey in the dish in which it is to go to table, and set- ting it under the jelly-bag, let the jelly drip upon it, so as _ to form a transparent coating all over it; smoothing the jelly evenly with the back of a spoon, as it congeals on the turkey. Apple jelly may be substituted. - Large fowls may be boned and stuffed in the above manner: also a young roasting pig. | ROASTED KID.—While a young kid is sucking, it is very fat and white, and the flesh is tender and ~ delicate. If more than three months old, the meat becomes dark and tough, and is no longer eaten. It should be cooked as soon as possible after killing. Stuff it with plenty of nice forcemeat, made of bread soaked in milk, and mixed with fresh butter, hard- | boiled yoke of egg grated; sweet-marjoram, and sweet basil minced finely ; powdered nutmeg and mace; and the juice and grated yellow rind of a large fresh lemon ; all united with beaten white of egg, and seasoned slightly with salt and pepper. Or you may stuff it in the oriental manner, with chopped almonds or pistachio nuts, mixed with raisins seeded and cut in half; sweet- ened with sugar and moistened with orange juice. Having trussed the kid, put it to roast before a good fire, and baste it well with butter; dredging it at the last with flour.—Or you may cover it while roasting, with sheets of fat bacon. Serve it up with its own gravy; eat it with currant jelly. You may cook a young fawn in ge same manner. This stuffing is delicious. 4 i COLUMBIAN PUDDING, ETC. “107 PUDDINGS, ETC. COLUMBIAN PUDDING.—Tie up closely in a bit cf very thin white muslin, a vanilla bean cut into pieces ; and a broken-up_stick of cinnamon. Put this bag with its contents into half a pint of rich milk, and boil it a long time till very highly flavoured. Then take out the bag ; sét the milk near the fire to keep warm in the pan in which it was boiled, covering it closely. Slice thin a pound of almond sponge-cake, and lay it in a deep dish. Pour over it a quart of rich cream, with which you must mix the vanilla-flavoured milk, and leave the cake to dis- solve in it. Blanch, in scalding water, two ounces of shelled bitter almonds or peach-kernels ; and pound them (one at a time) to a smooth paste in a marble mortar, pouring on each a few drops of rose-water or peach- water to prevent their oiling. When the almonds are done, set them away in a cold place till wanted. Beat eight eggs till very light and thick ; and having stirred together, hard, the dissolved cake and the cream, add them, gradually, to the mixture in turn with the almond, and half a pound of powdered loaf sugar, a little at a time of each. Butter a deep dish, and put in the mixture. Set the pudding into a brisk oven and bake it well. Have ready a star nicely cut out of a large piece of candied citron, a number of small stars all of equal size, as many as there are states in the Union: and a sufficiency of rays or long strips also cut out of citron. The rays should be _ wide at the bottom and run to a point at the top. As soon as the pudding comes out of the oven, while it is smoking, arrange these decorations. Put-the laige star in the centre, then the rays so that the y will diverge frow - & 108 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. it, widening off towards the edge of the pudding. —_ the edge place the small stars in a circle. ‘ Preserved citron-melon will be still better for this pur pose than the dry candied citron. | This is a very fine pudding; suitable for a dinner party, or a Fourth of July dinner. ——__+-— a A MARIETTA PUDDING.—Take a teacup-full of loaf-sugar broken up. On some of the largest lumps rub off the yellow rind of a large lemon. Then put all the sugar into a pint of rich cream; when the sugar is melt- ed, set it over the fire, and when it comes to a boil, pour it hot over half a pound of fresh savoy biscuits or lady-fingers, (maccaroons will be still better,) laid in a deep dish. Cover the dish, and when the cakes are quite dissolved, stir the cream well among them. Beat eight eggs very light ; and when the mixture s quite cold, stir the beaten eggs gradually into it. Add, by degrees, four peels 6f candied ‘citron, cut into slips, and dredged with flour to prevent their sinking to the bottom. Put the mixture into a deep dish, and bake it. When done, sift sugar over the top. It may be eaten warm or cold. Send to table with it a sauce, made of fresh butter and white sugar, beaten together till very light, and flavoured with the juice of the lemon, whose rind was rubbed on. the lumps of sugar, and also with some grated nutmeg. Instead of citron you may put into this pudding a pound of Zante currants, (picked, washed, dried, and floured,) stirred gradually in at the last. | : ——o AN ORLEANS PUDDING.—Half fill a deep dish with almond sponge-cake sliced thin, or with sliced lady- cake. Grate the yellow rind of a lemon, and mix it © t.mong the cake; adding also the juice of the lemon, and sufficient white wine to moisten the cake, so that after HANOVER AND ORLEANS PUDDINGS, ETC. 109 standing awhile it can be easily mashed. For wine you may substitute brandy ; or wine and brandy mixed. Beat six egos very light, and stir them gradually into a pint of cream or rich milk; adding four table-spoonfuls of powdered white sugar, and half a nutmeg grated. Mix the eggs, &c., by degrees, with the dissolved cake ; stir- ring it very hard. The dish should be full. Set.it into _the oven, and bake it brown. When cold, have ready a meringue, made of beaten white of egg thickened with powdered loaf-sugar, and flavoured with lemon-juice or . rose-water. Spread this evenly over the top of the pud- ding, putting one layer of the meringue over another till itis very thick. Then set it for a few minutes into the oven to brown slightly on the top. Any very nice baked pudding will be improved by covering the surface with a meringue. —+— HANOVER PUDDING.—Cut up half a pound of, fresh butter in half a pint of milk. Set them over the fire till the butter is soft enough to mix thoroughly with the milk. Then take it off, and let it stand till lukewarm. _ Have ready four well-beaten eggs. Stir them hard into the butter and milk. Then add very gradually a pound of sifted flour. Last stir in two large table-spoonfuls of strong fresh yeast. Beat the whole very hard. Cover the pan, and let it stand near the fire for three hours or till the mixture is quite light. Have ready half a pound of Zante currants, picked, washed, and dried; or half a pound of fine raisins, seeded and cut in half. Dredge the fruit thickly with flour to prevent its sinking. Then mix it, gradually, into the pudding with two large table-spoon- fuls of sugar, and a tea-spoonful of powdered cinnamon ; and a salt-spoon of sal-eratus, or small tea-spoonful of bi- carbonate of soda, dissolved in a very little lukewarm water. Stir the whole very hard. ‘Transfer it to a deep 10 110 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. tin pan, well-buttered, and bake it thoroughly. Before i: . goes to table, turn it out on a dish, and serve it up warm with any sort of nice sweet sauce. : TURKISH RICE PUDDING.—Pick and wash half a pound of rice. Prepare also half a pound of Zante currants, which must be carefully picked clean, washed through two waters, drained well, and then spread out to dry on a flat dish before the fire. Put the rice into a sauce-pan, with a quart of rich milk. Having dredged the currants with flour, stir them a few at a time into the rice and milk. Then add four ounces of broken up loaf- sugar, on which you have rubbed off the yellow rind of a large ripe lemon or orange, and squeezed the juice. Stir in two ounces of fresh butter divided into bits. When the rice is well swollen and quite soft, take it from the fire, and mix with it gradually eight well-beaten yolks — of eggs. ‘Transfer it to a deep china dish, and put it into ~an oven for half an hour. ‘Then sift powdered sugar thickly over the top, and brown it by holding above it a red-hot shovel or salamander. Serve it up warm. This pudding may be made with ground rice, or rice flour. Seow ee CREAM COCOA-NUT PUDDING.—Take two cocoa-nuts of large size. Break them up, and pare off the brown skin from the pieces. Then grate them very fine. Stir together a quarter of a pound of the best fresh butter, and a quarter of a pound of finely-powdered loaf- sugar, till perfectly light. Beat six eggs till very thick and smooth: afterwards mix them, gradually, with a pint of rich cream. Add this mixture, by degrees, to the . beaten butter and sugar, in turn with the grated cocoa- nut; a little at a time of each, stirring very well as you proceed. Then give the whole a hard stirring. Put the ae _ PINE APPLE, CREAM COCOA-NUT PUDDINGS, ETC. 111 mixture into a deep white dish and bake it well. Sena it to table cold, with loaf-sugar sifted over the top. You may season the mixture by stirring in, at the last, a "tea-spoonful of mixed nutmeg and cinnamon finely pow- dered. And you may add a table-spoonful of rose-brandy. - This pudding may be baked in puff-paste in two deep plates, with a broad border of paste round the edge, handsomely notched. Or it may be done without any paste beneath the mixture; but merely a paste border round the.edge of the dish, which last is the better way. Paste at the bottom of these soft pudding-mixtures is usually tough and clammy, from the almost impossibility of getting it thoroughly done; and therefore it is best omitted, as is now generally the case. If there is no paste under it, the pudding should be baked in the dish in which it is to goto table. Unless the oven is so hot as to burn the pudding, no dish will be injured by baking. No pie or pudding should be sent to table in any thing inferior to white-ware. —_4+— PINE-APPLE PUDDING.—Take half a pound of grated pine-apple; half a pound of powdered white sugar, and a quarter of a pound of fresh butter. Put the sugar into a deep pan, cut up the butter among it, and stir them together till very light. Then add, by degrees, the grated pine-apple. Grate a small two-penny sponge-cake, and mix it with a large tea-cup of rich cream, and grate into it a small nutmeg, or half a large one. Add this to the pine-apple mixture in the pan. Beat six eggs very light, and stir them in gradually a little at a time. Stir the whole very hard, after all the ingredients are put . together. Butter a deep dish, put in the mixture, and bake it well. If your dish has a broad rim, lay round the edge a border of puff-paste, cut into leaves resembling a wreath 112 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. _—————— rh O_O OE oro AN ALMOND RICE PUDDING.—Blanch, ‘in boiling water, three ounces of shelled bitter almonds, afterwards throwing them into cold water. Pound them, one at a time, in a mortar, till they become a smooth paste; adding frequently, as you pound them, a few drops of rose-water, to make them white and light, - and to prevent their oiling. Take a quart of rich, un- skimmed milk, and stir into it, gradually, three large, heaping table-spoonfuls of ground rice flour, alternately with the pounded almonds, and four heaping table-spoon- fuls of powdered loaf-sugar. Set the mixture over the fire, and boil and stir it till very thick. Then put it into a deep dish, and set it away to cool, When cold, have ready the whites of two eggs beaten to a stiff froth, and thickened with powdered sugar, that has been melted in rose-water. Cover with this the surface of the pudding. Set it in an oven just long enough to be slightly coloured of a light brown. Send it to table cold. —_+— BOILED _ ALMOND PUDDING.—Blanch, in boil- ing water, a quarter of a pound of shelled sweet almonds, - and two ounces of shelled bitter almonds. Throw them into a pan of cold water, as you blanch them. After- wards pound them, one at a time, in a mortar; adding to them, as you proceed, the beaten whites of two or three eggs, a little ata time. They must be pounded till they become a smooth paste; mixing together the sweet and the bitter almonds, and removing them, as you go on, from the mortar to a plate». Then set them in a cool place. Boil slowly a quart of cream, or rich, unskimmed * milk, with six blades of beaten mace, and half a nutmeg, powdered. It may simmer half an hour, and when it boils, stir in four table-spoonfuls of white sugar, and set the milk to cool. Beat eight eggs very light, (omit ting the whites of three,) and then add to them a heapec MARMALADE, BISCUIT, ALMOND PUDDINGS, ETO. 113 table-spoonful of flour.” Stir the beaten eggs and the ~ pounded almonds, alternately, into the pan of milk, (after it has become quite cold,) add a table-spoonful of orange- flower or rose-water, and stir the whole very hard. Have ready, over the fire, a pot of boiling water. Dip into ita thick pudding-cloth, shake it out, spread it open in a large empty pan, dredge it well with flour, and pour the pudding-mixture into it. Tie it very closely, leaving sufficient space for the pudding to swell, and plug the tying-place with a small lump of flour-and-water dough. Lay an old plate in the bottom of the pot of boiling water. Put in the pudding, and turn it over in a quarter of an hour. Boil it very fast for an hour, or more, after it has commenced boiling; replenishing the pot from a kettle of botling water. When the pudding is done, dip ita moment into cold water; then turn it out on a dish. Send it to table immediately, with a sauce of sweetened cream, flavoured with rose or orange-flower water. eS ; BISCUIT PUDDINGS.—Grate some stale milk-bis- cuits, till you*have six heaping table-spoonfuls of fine crumbs. Then sift them through a coarse sieve. Beat six eggs very light, and stir them into a pint of cream, or rich, unskimmed milk, alternately with the biscuit crumbs, a little of each at a time. Beat the mixture very hard, and then butter some large breakfast-cups, such as ‘hold near half a pint. Nearly fill them with the batter. Set them immediately into a brisk oven, and bake tnem half an hour, or more. This quantity will make five puddings. Serve them up hot in the cups, and eat them with wine-sauce, or with sauce of butter and sugar, stirred toa cream, and flavoured with nutmeg and lemon. Me ga MARMALADE PUDDINGS.—Make the above mix- ture, and, when they are baked, turn the puddings out 10* 114 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. of the cups, make a slit or opening in the side of each, and fill up the inside or cavity of each pudding with any sort of nice marmalade or jam; taking care to fill them well. Then close the slit with your fingers. They may be eaten warm or cold, and require no other sauce than sweetened cream. —¢— AN EXCELLENT CORN-MEAL PUDDING.— Boil a quart of rich milk, and pour it scalding hot into a large pan. Stir in,! gradually, a quart of sifted Indian meal, and a quarter of a pound of fresh butter; adding the grated -yellow rind of a lemon or orange. Squeeze the juice upon a quarter of a pound of brown sugar, and stir that in also. Add a large tea-spoonful of powderea cinnamon. Have ready a pound of raisins, seeded, and cut in half, and dredged thickly with wheat flour, to pre- vent their sinking. Beat six eggs very light, and stir them gradually into the mixture. Lastly, stir in the rai- sins, a few at a time, and stir the whole very. hard. Have ready a large pot of boiling water; dip into ita square pudding-cloth, shake it out, and dredge it with flour. Spread out the cloth in a deep, empty pan, and pour into it the pudding-mixture. Tie it firmly, leaving room for the pudding to swelf. Put it into the pot of hot water, and boil it four hours, or five; turning it several times, while boiling; and replenishing the water, as it boils away, with water kept hot, for the purpose, ina kettle. When done, take out the pudding from the pot; dip it, for a minute into cold water, before you untie the cloth; then turn it out into a dish, and send it to table. It should not be taken out of the pot tilla minute ortwo before it is wanted. Eat it with wine-sauce ; or with butter, white sugar nutmeg, and lemon or orange-juice, beaten together toa hight cream. PEACH INDIAN, CORN MEAL PUDDINGS, ETC. 136 What is left, may be tied again in a cloth, and boilea for an hour, next day. Instead of butter, you may use a quarter of a pound of beef-suet, minced as fine as possible. ~ sitll uy | PEACH INDIAN PUDDING.—Wash a punt, or ~more, of dried peaches; then dyain them well; spread them on a large dish, and set them in the sun, or near the fire, till all the water that remains about them is en- tirely exhaled. Boil a quart of rich milk; mix it, while hot, with a pint of West India molasses, and then set it away to cool. Chop, very fine, a quarter of a pound of beef-suet, (veal-suet will do,) and stir it gradually into the milk, a little at atime. Beat six eggs very light, and stir them, by degrees, into the mixture, in turn with as much yellow Indian meal (sifted) as will make a mode- rately thick batter. Having dredged the peaches thickly with wheat flour, to prevent their sinking, add them, one at a time, to the mixture, stirring it well; and, lastly, stir ‘in a table-spoonful of ground ginger, or a tea-spoonful of powdered cinnamon. Dip a thick, square pudding-cloth inte boiling water, then shake it out, spread it open in a large pan, dredge it with flour, and pour in the pudding- mixture. Tie it fast; leaving room for it to swell; and plaster the tying-place with a bit of dough, made of flour and water. Put the pudding into a large pot of boiling water, with an old plate laid at the bottom, and boil it from four to five or six hours, filling up the pot, as it boils away, with hot water from a tea-kettle, and turning the pudding frequently. When done, dip it in cold water, lay it in a pan, and turn it out of the cloth, - Eat it with butter and sugar, beaten to.a cream, ia seasoned with powdered nutmeg. If there is not time to boil the pudding several hours, on the day you want it for dinner, prepare it the day before; om / 116 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. boil it then all the afternoons and boil it again the following day. Indian puddings can scarcely be boiled too long. They will be the better, indeed, for eight hours’ boiling. — A FINE INDIAN PUDDING.—Take a pound of raisins, and cut them in half, having first removed the seeds. Then spread them on a large dish, and dredge them thickly with fine wheat flour, turning them about, that both sides may be well floured. Boil a quart of rich milk, and when it has come to a boil, take it off the fire, and set it to cool. -Transfer the half of this milk (one pint) to another pan, and, while it 1s still warm, stir into it a quarter of a pound of butter, cut into bits; a quar- ter of a pound of brown sugar, (or else a half pint of West India molasses,) mixed with the grated yellow rind of a large lemon or orange, and also the juice. Add a large tea-spoonful of powdered cinnamon and nut- meg, mixed, and a glass of brandy. Beat eight eggs very light; and, when it is quite cold, stir the eggs, gradually, into the ofher pint of milk. Then mix the ingredients of both pans together; adding eight large table-spoonfuls of Indian meal, or enough to make a thick . batter. Lastly, mix in the floured raisins, a few at a time, stirring the whole very hard. Have ready, over the fire, a large pot of boiling water. Dip a square pudding- cloth into it; shake it out; spread it open over the inside of an empty pan, and dredge it with fear ape the batter into it, and tie it firmly ; leaving room for the pud- > ding to swell. Plaster a small lump of flour-and-water _ dough upon the crevice of the tying-place, to assist in keeping out’ the water, which, if it gets in, will render the pudding heavy. Put it into the pot of hot water, and boil it steadily for four, five, or six hours, turning it frequently in the water. It can scarcely be boiled too long. Keep at the fire a kettle of hot water, to replenish” RASPBERRY, COTTAGE, INDIAN PUDDINGS, uTC. 117 the pudding-pot, as it boils away. Do not take up the pudding, till immediately before it is to go te table. Dip it into cold water, and then turn it out of the cloth upon adish. Eat it with wine-sauce, or with butter, sugar, and nutmeg. If enough of the pudding is left, it may. next day, be tied in‘a cloth, and re-boiled for an hour. —_+— RASPBERRY PUDDING.—Fill a deep dish with a quart of ripe raspberries, well mixed with four or five large table-spoonfuls of powdered sugar. As you put in the raspberries mash them slightly with the back of a spoon. Beat six eges as light as possible, and mix them with a pint of cream or rich unskimmed milk, and four more spoonfuls of sugar, adding some grated nutmeg. Pour this over the raspberries. Set the dish immediately into a moderate oven, and bake the pudding about half an “hour. When done, set the dish on ice, or where it will become quite cold before it goes to table. A similar pudding may be made with ripe currants, picked-from the stalks; or with ripe cherries stoned. A pine-apple pudding made in this way is excellent. There must be as much pine-apple as will+measure a quart, after it is pared, sliced, and grated fine. Sweeten it well with loaf-sugar. “ pare sli We meals A COTTAGE PUDDING.—Take ripe currants, and having stripped them from the stalks, measure as many as will make a heaping quart. Cover the bottom of a deep dish with slices of bread, slightly buttered, and with the crust cut off. Puta thick layer of currants on the bread; and then a layer of sugar. Then other layers of bread, currants, and sugar, till the dish is full; finishing at the top with very thin slices of bread. Set it into the oven, and bake it halfan hour. Serve it either warm or cold; and eat it with sweetened cream. 118 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ee ews Instead of currants you may take cherries, (first stoning them all,) raspberries, ripe blackberries, or barberries, plums, (first extracting the stones,) stewed cranberries, or stewed gooseberries. If the fruit is previously stewed, the pudding will require but ten minutes’ baking. When it is sent to table have sugar at hand in case it should not be sweet enough. 7 et , RIPE CURRANT PUDDING.—Take two quarts of fine ripe currants, strip them from the stalks, and mix with them a quarter of a pound of sugar, Make a paste of a pound and a half of sifted flour, and three-quarters of a pound of the best fresh butter. Cut up half a pound of the butter into the pan of flour, and rub the butter into the flour with your hands till it is thoroughly mixed all through. Mix with it barely as much cold water as will make it intoa stiffdough. If you use too much water the’ paste will be tough. Beat the lumps of dough on both sides with the rolling-pin. hen transfer it to your paste- board; roll it out into a thin sheet, and spread over it with a knife another quarter of a pound of butter, Then flour it, fold it up, and beat it again with the rolling-pin. - Afterwards roll it out thicker. Put the currants into it, You may make the paste of minced suet inste butter | * OHERRY.PUBDING may sbe: made nsinbousatiat stoning the cherries, which should be ripe and red, and made very sweet with sugar. - a GOCSEBERRY PUDDING.—Take a quart or more cf full-grown green gooseberries. Pick off the tops and a ; ‘' GOOSBERRY, CHERRY, CURRANT PUDDINGS, ETO. 119 tails, and as you do so, lay the gooseberries in a pan. Then pour on sufficient boiling water to scald them tho- roughly, cover the pan, and let the gooseberries stand till they grow cold. Next put them into a sieve and drain off the water. While the gooseberries are cooling, pre- pare a paste for them. ‘Take six ounces of fresh beef- suet; weighed after you have trimmed it, and removed the strings. Mince itas finely as possible. Sift a pound of flour into a pan, and rub the minced suet into it; adding half a pint of cold water, or barely enough to make it into a dough, and a small salt-spoon of salt. Beat the lump of dough on all sides with the rolling-pin; this will add to its lightness. Then transfer it to your paste-board, and roll it out very evenly into a circular sheet. When the gooseberries are cold, mix with them half.a pound of the best brown sugar, and lay them ina heap in the ’ middle of the sheet of paste. Close the paste over them in the manner of a large dumpling. Have ready a pot of boiling water. Dip your pudding cloth into it; shake it out; spread it open in a broad pan; and dredge it with flour. Then lay the pudding in it, and tie the cloth very firmly, but leaving room for the pudding to swell. Stop up the:crevice at the tying-place with a small lump of stiff dough made of flour and water. Put the pudding into the pot, (which should be boiling hard at the time,) having place sd an old plate at the bottom as a preventive to the pudding sticking there, and scorching. After it has been in fiifteen minutes, turn it with a fork. If _ the water boils away replenish it with more hot water from a kettle. Boil the pudding thtee hours or more. Then take it up, dip it into cold water and turn it out into a dish. Send it to table hot, and eat it with additional sugar. If too much sugar is put in with the gooseberries at first, and boiled with them, it will render them tough It is best to depend chiefly on sweetening them at table. 120 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COURENG. A similar pudding may be made of currants either green or ripe. They will not require scalding. ‘The paste may be of fresh butter instead of suet. ans —+— ‘ | A RAISIN PUDDING.—Stone a pound of large fine fresh raisins, and cut them in half. If using the sultana, or seedless raisins, you may leave them whole. Spread the raisins on a large flat dish; and mix with them the yellow rind of a large fresh lemon, or orange. This rind must be pared off as thin as possible, and cut into very small slips. Dredge the raisins and peel thickly with flour to prevent their sinking or clodding, tumbling them about with your hands that they may be well floured all over. Mix the juice of the lemon or_ orange with five or six large table-spoonfuls of sugar heaped up. Mince, as finely as possible, half a pound of beef-suet. Beat six eggs very light, and then stir into them, gradually, the suet and the sugar, in turn with ° six heaped table-spoonfuls of sifted flour. ‘Then add by degrees the fruit and a powdered nutmeg. Lastly, stit in gradually a pint of rich milk. Stir the whole very hard. Scald a large square pudding-cloth ; shake it out; spread it open ina deep pan; dredge it with flour; put in the pudding-mixture, and tie the cléth firmly. It should be little more than three-quarters full, that the pudding may have room to swell. Mix with flour and water a small Jump of stiff dough, and plaster it on the tying-place to prevent the water getting inside. Have ready a pot full of boiling water; and put in the pudding, — _ having laid an old plate at the bottom of the pot, to keep it from burning if it should sink. Turn the pudding ~ several times while boiling. It should boil hard at least four hours, (five will not be too long,) and if the water boils away so as not entirely to cover the whole of the bag it must be replenished from a boiling kettle. Take MINCE, PLUM, RAISIN PUDDINGS, Ere. 121 up the pudding immediately before it is to go to table. Dip it in cold water for an instant, then turn it out of the cloth into a dish, and serve it up hot. Eat it with wine- sauce; or with butter and sugar beaten toa cream. MINCE PUDDING.—Take a pound and a half .of mince-meat, and sift three-quarters of a pound of flour. Beat six eggs very light, and stir into them, alternately, the mince-meat and the flour, a little at a time of each. Stir the whole very hard.. Have ready a pudding-cloth dipped into a pot of boiling water, then shook out, and dredged with flour. Spread out the cloth in a large pan, and pour into it the pudding. ‘Tie-it tightly, leaving room for the pudding to swell; and stop up the tying- place with a small bit of dough made of flour and water. Put it immediately into a large pot of boiling water, hav- ing an old plate at the bottom to keep the pudding from scorching. Boil it steadily five or six hours, turning it in the pot every hour. As the water boils away, replen- ish it from a kettle of water that is kept boiling hard. Do not turn out the pudding till immediately before it is sent to table. Eat it with wine-sauce. This pudding is excellent. The mince-meat is the same that is prepared for mince-pies. —+— A TEMPERANCE PLUM PUDDING.—Take a pound of the best raisins, and cut then. ‘n half, after re- moving the seeds. Or use sultana raisins that have no seeds. Pick, and wash clean, a pound of currants, and iry them before the fire, spread out ona large flat dish. Cut into slips half a pound of citron. ‘Then mix together, on the same-dish, the currants, the raisins, and the citron, and dredge them thickly with flour to pre- yent their sinking or clodding in the pudding; tumbling them about with your hands till they are all over well- Yu 122 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. covered with the flour. Mince very fine a pound of beef- suet. Mixa pint of West India molasses with a pint of rich milk. Sift into a pan a pound of flour. . In another pan beat eight eggs very light. Stir the beaten eggs, gradually, into the mixed molasses and milk; alter- nately with the flour, and half a pound of sugar, (which should previously be crushed smooth by roiling it with a rolling-pin,) a little at a time of each. Then add, by de- grees, the fruit and the suet, a little of each alternately. Beat and stir the whole very hard, till all the ingredients are thoroughly mixed. ‘Take a large clean square cloth of coarse strong linen, dip it in boiling water, shake it, spread it out ina large pan, and dredge it with flour to prevent the pudding from sticking to it when boiled. Then pour the pudding-mixture into the cloth; leave ~ room for it to swell, and tie it firmly, plastering up the ty.ing-place with a bit of coarse dough made of flour and water. Have ready a large pot full of water, and boiling hard. Put in the pudding, and boil it well from six to eight hours. Less than six will not be sufficient, and eight hours will not be too long. ‘Turn it several times _ while boiling, and keep at hand a kettle of hot water to replenish the pot as it boils away. Do not take it up till immediately before it is wanted on the table. Then dip it for a moment into cold water, untie the cloth, and turn out the pudding. Se:ve it up with a sauce-boat of sweet- ened cream, seacwned with nutmeg; or with butter and sugar beaten together till light and white, and flavoured with lemon. What is left of the pudding may be tied up ina cloth and boiled again next day for an hour or more. It will be equally as nice as on the first day. This is a much better way of re-cooking than to slice and fry it. This pudding may be made with sifted yellow Indian meal, instead of wheat flour. — MARROW, TRANSPARENT, TAPIOCA, ETC. 123 MARROW PUDDING.—Grate a quarter of a pound of sponge-cake, and mix with it a quarter of a pound of beef-marrow, finely minced. Add the grated peel and the juice of a large lemon or orange; half a grated nutmeg; and four table-spoonfuls of sugar. Stone half a pound of very good fresh raisins, cut them in half, and dredge them well with flour. Beat four eggs very light, and stir them gradually into half a pint of cream or rich milk. Mix it, by degrees, with the other ingredients. Lastly add the raisins, a few at a time; and stir the whole very hard. Butter a deep dish ; put in the mixture; bake it an hour or more, and send it to table warm, with slips of candied citron stuck all over the top, so as tostand upright. For sauce have white wine, mixed with sugar and lemon juice. This pudding may be boiled inacloth. It will require three hours’ boiling. ——_——_ - TRANSPARENT PUDDING.—Warm half a pound of fresh butter, but do not allow it to melt. Mix with it half a pound of powdered loaf-sugar, and stir them to- gether till they are perfectly light. Adda small nutmeg grated, or half a large one. Beat eight eggs a slight as possible; and stir them gradually into the butter and sugar. Finish with sufficient extract of roses to give it a fine flavour. Stir the whole very hard; butter a deep dish, put in the mixture, and bake it half an hour. Serve it up cold. ce You may bake this pudding in puff-paste. a TAPIOCA PUDDING.—Put four large table-spoon- fuls of tapioca into a quart of milk, and let it stand all night. Inthe morning put-half a pint of milk into a small sauce-pan, and boil in it a large stick of cinnamon broken up, and a handful of bitter almonds or peach 124 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. kernels broken small. Keep it covered and boil it slowly, till highly flavoured with the cinnamon and almond, which must then be strained out, and the milk mixed with that which has the tapioca in it. Put it into a tin vessel or one lined with porcelain, and boil it till it becomes very — , thick with the dissolved tapioca; stirring it frequently down to the bottom. Add a piece of fresh butter as large as an egg; a quarter of a pound of sugar, and four well- beaten eggs stirred in gradually; a table-spoonful of brandy; and a grated nutmeg. Stir the whole well together, put it into a deep dish, and bake it an hour. Instead of boiling bitter almonds with the cinnamon in — the extra half pint of milk, you may boil the cinnamon only. And when you are afterwards finishing the whole. mixture, stir in a table-spoonful of peach-water at the last. Tapioca is to be boughi at the grocer’s, and also at the druggist’s. pnt Gute EXCELLENT GROUND RICE PUDDING.— Take half a pint froma quart of rich milk, and boil in ita large handful of bitter almonds or peach kernels, blanched and broken up ; also half-a dozen blades of mace, keeping the sauce-pan closely covered. When the milk is highly flavoured and reduced to one half the quantity, take it off and strain it. Stir, gradually, into the remaining pint and a half of milk, five heaping table-spoonfuls of ground rice ; set it over the fire in a sauce-pan, and let it come to.a boil. Then tale it off, and while it is warm, mix in gradually a quarter of a pound of fresh butter and’ a quarter of a pound of white sugar. Afterwards, beat eight eggs as light as possible, and stir them, gradually, into the mixture. Add some grated nutmeg. Stir the whole very hard; put it into a deep dish; and set it im- mediately into the oven. Keep it baking steadily for an SOUEFLE, GROUND RICE PUDDINGS, ETC. 125 nour. It should then be done. It may be eaten either warm or cold. j To ornament it, have ready some sweet almonds blanched whole, and then split mm half. Place six of them on the centre of the pudding, so as to form a star. Lay others in lines like rays diverging from the star, and place the remainder in a circle near the edge of the pudding. Any pudding may be ornamented as above. —— $—_— A SOUFFLE PUDDING.—Take eight rusks, or soft sugar-biscuits, or plain buns. Lay them in a large deep dish, and pour on a pint of milk, sufficient to soak them thoroughly. Cover the dish, and let them stand, undis- turbed, for about an hour and a half before dinner. In the mean time, boil half a pint of milk in a small sauce-pan with _ a handful of bitter-almonds or peach-kernels, broken small ; or a small bunch of fresh peach-leaves, with two large sticks of cinnamon broken up. Boil this milk slowly, (keeping it covered,) and when it tastes strongly of the flavouring articles, strain it, and set it away to cool. When cold, mix it into another pint of mill, and stir in a quarter of a pound of powdered loaf-sugar. Beat eight eggs very light, and add them gradually to the milk, so as to make . arich custard. After dinner has commenced, beat and stir the soaked rusk very hard till it becomes a smooth mass, and then, by degrees, add to it the custard. Stir the whole till thoroughly amalgamated. Set the dish into a brisk oven, and bake the pudding rather more than ten minutes. The yeast, &c., in the rusk will cause it to puff up very light. When done, send it to table warm, with white sugar sifted over it. You may serve up with It as sauce, sweetened thick cream flavoured with rose- water, and grated nutmeg. Or powdered loaf-sugar and 11* 126 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. fresh butter stirred together in equal portions, and ‘sea- soned with lemon and nutmeg. Another way in making a soufilé pudding, sonnel of | boiling the flavouring in a separate half pint of milk, is, after making the custard of cold milk, sugar, and eggs, to stir into it a wine-glass of peach-water, rose-water, or orange-flower water; or else two table-spoonfuls of Oliver’s extract of vanilla. Or you may flavour it with ethe yellow rind of a large lemon rubbed off upon some lumps of the sugar before it is powdered. 3 —¢—. , A CHARLOTTE PUDDING.—Have ready a suffi- * ciency of dried peaches that have been stewed very soft, and flavoured, while stewing, with the yellow rind of one ~ or two oranges, pared very thin and cut into smail slips. The stewed peaches must be mashed very smooth. Take ~ _a deep dish, and cover the inside with a layer of brown sugar mixed with powdered cinnamon or nutmeg. Upon this put a layer of thin slices of bread and butter with all the crust pared off; turning the buttered side downward. Next put on a thick layer of the stewed peaches. Then more sugar and spice; then more bread and butter, and then another layer of peach. Proceed thus till the dish is full ; and cover the top slightly with grated bread-crumbs. Put it into a moderate oven; and bake it brown. It may be eaten either warm or cold. Instead of peaches, you may make this suddiane of stewed apple flavoured with lemon;- or with stewed goose-berries made very sweet with brown sugar. If you use goose-berries, the spice aboule be nutmeg, not cinnamon. —_@——_- A NOVICE’S PUDDING.—Beat to a stiff froth the whites only of eight eggs. Then beat into them half a pound of powdered white sugar—a tea-spoonful at a time CHOCOLATE, CHARLOTTE PUDDINGS, ETC. 127 Stir into a pint of rich cream or unskimmed milk a wine- glass of rose-water, or a table-spoonful of extract of roses. You may substitute two table-spoonfuls of extract of va- nilla; or two of peach water. Stir the beaten egg and sugar into the milk, alternately with four ounces of sifted flour, a spoonful at.a time. Beat the whole very hard; put it into a deep dish, well-buttered, and set it immediately into a rather quick oven, and bake it well. Serve it up cold; and eat it with butter and white sugar beaten to a cream, and flavoured in the same manner as the pudding. © This pudding will be found very white and delicate It is peculiarly excellent made with melted ice-cream tha.’ ‘has been left. . —_+—_ ° CHOCOLATE PUDDING.—Have the best and strongest American chocolate or cocoa. Baker’s pre- pared cocoa will be found excellent for all chocolate pur- poses; better indeed than any thing else, as it is pure, and without any adulteration of animal fat, being also very strong, and communicating a high flavour. Of this, scrape down, very fine,two ounces or more. Add to ita tea-spoonful of mixed spice, namely, powdered nutmeg and cinnamon. Put it into a very clean sauce-pan, and pour on a quart of rich milk, stirring it well. Set it over the fire, or on hot coals; cover it; and let it come to a boil. Then remove the lid; stir up the chocolate from the bot- tom, and press out all lumps. Then return it to the fire, and when thoroughly dissolved and very smooth, it 3s «done. Next stir in, gradually, while the chocolate is still boiling-hot, a quarter of a pound or more of pow- dered loaf-sugar. If you use such white sugar as is bought ready powdered, you must have near half a pound, as that sugar has very little strength, being now adulterated with ground starch. When the chocolate is 128 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. well sweetened, set it away to cool. Beat eight eggs very light, and pour them through a strainer into the pan of chocolate, when it is quite cold. Stir the whole very hard. Then put it into the oven, and bake it well. Try it when you think it done, with the twig from a broom. If on putting the,twig into the middle of the pudding, and sticking it quite down to the bottom, the twig comes out clean, and with nothing clammy adhering to it, the pudding is then sufficiently baked. It should be eaten cold. Sift white sugar tae orgs over it before it goes to table. It will be found very nice. This pudding will bake best by sitting the pan ina dutch oven half-filled with boiling water. ee fab MACCARONI PUDDING.—Boil a quarter of a pound of maccaroni in a pint of rich unskimmed milk, with a handful of blanched bitter almonds or peach- kernels, and two sticks of cinnamon broken into pieces. It must boil till the maccaroni is soft, and dissolving. Then remove the bitter almonds and the cinnamon; stir in, while it is hot, a quarter of a pound of fresh butter, a quarter of a pound of powdered sugar, and half aspint of rich cream. Mix all well, and beat it hard. “Then beat four eggs till very thick and light, and stir them gradually into the mixture after it has cooled. Adda grated nutmeg, and a table-spoonful of brandy. Butter a deep dish; put in the mixture; set it directly into the oven, and bake it. Vermicelli pudding may be made as above. Also a ground rice pudding. =o ; A LADY’S PUDDING.—-Rub off on lumps of loaf sugar the yellow rind of one large lemon, or two small ones. Then crush that sugar, and add more to it till you have four heaped table-spoonfuls. Beat to a stiff froth | LEMON, MACCARONI, LADY'S PUDDINGS, ETc. 129 *the whites only of four eggs. Then gradually add the sugar (a little ata time) to the beaten white of egg. Have ready ina pan, a pint of cream or rich unskimmed milk. Stir into it by degrees the mixture of white of egg and sugar, alternately with four heaped table-spoonfuls or four ounces of sifted flour. When the whole is mixed, stir it long and hard; and then transfer it to a deep dish, the inside of which must be slightly buttered. Bake it from half an hour to three quarters; and when done sift powdered sugar over the top. Send it to table cool, with a sauce of equal quantities of fresh butter and pow- dered white sugar stirred together to a light cream, and flavoured with lemon-juice and grated nutmeg. ‘ This pudding will be found very delicate. For a large one, take the whites of eight eggs, the rind of two large lemons, half a pound of sugar, a quart of cream or rich milk, and eight heaped table-spoonfuls of flour. —+— BOILED LEMON PUDDING.—Grate very fine as many bread-crumbs as will weigh half a pound. Take half a pound of broken up loaf-sugar, and on some of the lumps rub~eff the yellow rind of two large lemons, or three small ones, having first rolled the lemons under your hand upon a table to increase the juice. Then powder finely all the sugar, including the lumps on which the lemon-rind has been rubbed. Cut up in a deep pan a quarter of a pound of fresh butter. Add to it half the powdered sugar, and stir them hard together till very light and thick. Beat six eggs till as light as possible ; and then (having stirred in two table-spoonfuls of sifted flour) add them gradually to the beaten butter and sugar, in turn with the bread crumbs, a little at a time of each. Squeeze the juice of the lemons through a strainer, and mix it with the remaining sugar. Then add that sugar, gradually, to the other ingredients, and stur 180 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. the whole very hard. Have ready a pudding-cloth dipped in boiling water, shaken out, spread open over a pan, and then dredged with flour. Put in the pudding-mixture, and tie it firmly, leaving room for it to swell, and not forgetting to stop up the little aperture at the tying-place with a bit of flour-and-water dough. Put the pudding into a large pot of boiling water, and keep it boiling steadily for two. hours or more, turning it several times in the pot. Serve it up hot, accompanied by a cold sauce of equal portions of powdered white sugar and fresh butter, beaten together to a cream, and flavoured with lemon-juice and nutmeg. You may boil it in a pudding-mould, with a hole or cavity in the centre. After turning it out on the dish, _ fillup the hole with the above-mentioned sauce, heaping high in the middle. For this purpose the sauce should be made rather stiff, allowing more sugar and less butter. A boiled orange pudding may be made in the same manner. —— 9 POTATOE-FLOUR PUDDING.—Boil a quart of rich milk ; and while boiling, stir in gradually a quarter — of a pound of potatoe-flour well pulverized ; add a quarter of a pound of sugar, three ounces of butter, and a tea- spoonful of powdered nutmeg and cinnamon. When it has thoroughly boiled, set it to cool, When cold, stir in, by degrees, four eggs well beaten. Put it into a deep ’ dish, and bake it half an hour. Send it to table cold with white sugar sifted over the top. ——_¢-— GREEN CUSTARD.—Pound in a marble or white- ware mortar a sufficient quantity of fresh spinach, till you have extracted as much green juice as will half fill a half-pint tumbler, or two common-sized wine-glasses. | Mix this quantity of spinach juice-with a quart of rich unskimmed milk, and a quarter of a pound of loaf-sugar, RED AND GREEN CUSTARD PUDDINGS, ETC. 131 broken very small. Flavour it with a wine-glass of peach water, or with the yellow rind of two large lemons grated off on some of the largest lumps of the sugar. Or, for the flavouring, you may use a vanilla bean, or a handful of bitter almonds or peach-kernels, boiled a long time in half a pint of milk, which must then be strained, and mixed with the other milk. . Beat very light eight eggs, or the yolks only of sixteen; mix them with the milk, &c., (having first strained the beaten eggs,) and having stirred the whole very hard, pour it into a white- ware pitcher, and set it into a pot rather more than half- full of boiling water. Place it on a stove or a bed of hot coals on the hearth, and stir it to the bottom, and watch it continually till it has almost come to a boil. When very near boiling, take it off the fire immediately ; for if it guife boils, it will curdle. Set it away to get cold. When lukewarm it will be an improvement to stir into it two fable-spoonfuls or more of rose-water. Cover the bottom of a large glass-bowl or a deep dish, with slices ef sponge-cake or Naples biscuit. Then put on green sweetmeats, such as preserved goose-berries, green gages, green grapes, or green citron melon. When the custard is quite cold pour it on, and fill up the bow] with it. If made as above, this will be found both delicious and ornamental for a dessert, or supper table. It may be served up in glass cups; putting into the bottom of each cup a portion of sponge-cake, then a por- tion of green sweetmeats, and then filling up with the ereen custard after it has become cold. | Pistachio-nuts pounded in a mortar will give a fine green colour. ae gee RED CUSTARD—May be made according to the fore- zoing receipt, only colouring it red by adding a teacup-full of milk, in which has been steeped a small thin muslin ae 132 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. bag filled with alkanet. Instead of green sweet-meat# use preserved cherries, strawberries, or raspberries. | Alkanet is to be bought at the druggists, is very cheap, perfectly innoxious, and is now much used for colouring confectionary. The colour it imparts is more beautiful than any other red. . You may obtain a good red colouring by pounding boiled beets in a mortar. Pounded beet-leaves will also” furnish a juice for colouring red. ——4— GELATINE CUSTARD.—Soak half an ounce of ge- latine for three or four hours in a pan of cold water. . Have ready a quart of milk. Boil in half a pint of ita bunch of peach-leaves, or a handful of» bitter almonds broken up; also, a stick of cinnamon broken in pieces. When it is highly flavoured, strain this milk into the pan that contains the rest. Beat four eggs very light, and mix them gradually with the milk, adding, by degrees, the gelatine, (well drained,) and four heaping table-spoon- fuls of sugar. Set it over a slow fire and boil it, stirring it frequently. As soon as the gelatine is entirely dis- solved, and thoroughly mixed, the custard will be done. Transfer it to a deep dish or to cups, and set it on ice or ina cold place till wanted. —+—. INDIAN PUFFS.—Boil a quart of milk; and when it has come toa oil, stir into it, gradually, eight large " table-spoonfuls of Indian meal ; four large table-spoonfuls of powdered sugar; and a grated nutmeg. Stir it hard; letting it boil a quarter of an hour after all the Indian meal isin. Then take it up, and set it to cool. While cool- ing, beat eight eggs as light as possible, and stir them, grauually, into the batter when it is quite cold. Butter some large tea-cups; nearly fill them with the mixture ; set them into a moderate oven; and bake them well - SWEETMEAT DU.APLINGS, FRITTERS, ETC. 133 Send them to table warm, and eat them with butter and molasses; or with butter, sugar, lemon-juice, and nutmeg stirred toacream. They must be turned out of the cups. : Hi plal | SWEETMEAT DUMPLINGS.—Make a paste of half a pound of fresh butter, or finely minced suet, and a pound of flour, moistened with a very little cold water. Beat the lump of paste on all sides with a rolling-pin. Then roll it out into a sheet, and divide it into equal portions. Lay on the middle of each two halves (laid on each other) of preserved peaches, or quinces, or large preserved plums. Then close the paste round the sweet- meat, so as to form a dumpling. Have ready a pot of boiling water. ‘Throw the dumplings into it, tied up in little cloths, and let them boil twenty-five minutes or half an hour. Try one first, to see if they are done. When quite done, take them up, dip them in cold water, turn them out of the cloths, and send the dumplings to table immediately. Eat them with sugar only, or with sweetened cream. ; | These dumplings may be made with jam or marma- lade, formed into a heap or lump, and laid in the centre . of each piece of paste. —_¢— ALTONA FRITTERS.—Pare some fine pippin or bell-flower apples that are quite ripe, and of the largest size. ‘Then extract the cores with a tin apple-corer, so © as to leave the hole in the centre smooth and even. Spread the sliced apples on a large flat dish, and squeeze on each slice some lemon-juice. Then sprinkle them thickly with powdered white sugar. Prepare a batter, made in the proportion of eight eggs to a quart of rich milk, and a pint and a half of sifted flour. Having beaten the eggs till very light and thick, add them gradually to the milk in turn with the flour, a little at a time of each, 12 134 MISS LESLIE’S NRW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. and stir the whole very hard. Have ‘ready, over hot coals, a skillet with a’plentiful portion of the best fresh butter, melted and boiling hard. Dip the slices of apple twice into the batter, and then put them into the skillet of butter; as many at a time as it will contain without danger of running into each other as they spread. While they are frying, keep shaking the skillet about, holding it by the handle. ‘They will puff up very light, and must be done of a bright brown. Take them out with a perforated skimmer, that will drain off the butter. Have ready some powdered sugar, flavoured with nutmeg or cinnamon. Roll the fritters in this, and send them to’ table hot. ‘This is a German preparation of fritters, and will be found excellent on trial. They may be made of large peaches instead of apples; paring the peaches, and cutting them in two, having removed the stones. Allow half a peach (well sugared) to each fritter. : You may fry these fritters in lard, but they will not be so nice as if done in fresh butter. , ae . WASHINGTON FRITTERS.—Boil four large po- tatoes; peel them; and, when cold, grate them as fine as possible. Mix well together two large table-spoonfuls . of cream, two table-spoonfuls of sweet white wine, half a grated nutmeg, two table-spoonfuls of powdered sugar, and the juice of a lemon. Beat eight eggs very light, (omitting the whites of two,) and then mix them gra- dually with the cream, wine, &c., alternately with the grated potatoe, a little at a time of each. Beat the whole ~ together at least a quarter of an hour after all the ingre- dients are mixed. Have ready, in a frying-pan over the fire,'a large quantity of boiling lard; and when the bub- bling has subsided, put in spoonfuls of the batter, so as to make well-formed fritters. Fry them a light brown, and take them up witha perforated skimmer, so as to drain Sigs —-— <= aie ee ates WINE AND SWEETMEAT FRITTERS, ETC. 135 them from the lard. Lay them ona hot dish, and send them immediately to table. Serve up with them, in a boat, a sauce made in the proportion of two glasses of white wine, the juice of two lemons, and a table-spoonful | of peach-water, or a glass of rose- -water. Make the sauce very sweet with powdered white sugar, and grate nutmeg into it. . These fritters may be made with boiled sweet potatoes, grated when cold. —_o— WINE FRITTERS.—Beat six eggs till very thick and smooth; and when they are quite light, beat into them, gradually, six table-spoonfuls of sweet malaga or muscadel wine, and six table-spoonfuls of powdered white sugar. Have ready a-sufficient number of large fresh milk biscuits, split in two, soaked in a bowl of sweet wine about five minutes, and drained on a sieve. Put some — fresh lard into a frying-pan, and when it boils, and has been skimmed, dip each piece of the split biscuit into the batter of wine, eggs, and sugar, and fry them a light brown. When done, take them up with a perforated skimmer, and drain them well from the lard. Strew powdered white sugar over them. $4 SWEETMEAT FRITTERS.—Having boiled a large beet till it is tender all through, and scraped off the out- side, cut the beet into pieces, and pound them in a mar- ble mortar till you have extracted the juice. Then stir into a quart of milk enough of the beet-juice to give it a deep red colour. Beat seven eggs till very smooth and light, and stir them gradually into the milk; alternate- -ly with a pint and a half of sifted flour. The red colour will look paler after the ege is mixed with the milk. If you find it too pale, add more beet-juice. Have ready some boiling lard in a frying-pan over the fire: 186 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. and when it has ceased to bubble, and the surface has - become smooth, put in the mixture by spoonfuls, so as to form round or oval cakes of an equal size, and fry thema light brown. If you find the batter too thin, stir in a very ’ jittle more flour. As the fritters are done, take them out, oma perforated skimmer, draining the lard back into the frying-pan. Dredge the fritters thickly with powdered sugar, and lay on each some preserved peach, plum, or other sweetmeat. You may heap on every one a table- spoonful or more of marmalade. Send them to table hot. PET SE ae : GREEN FRITTERS—Are made as above; but co- loured with the juice of spinach, extracted by pounding in a mortar. —_+— - BREAD FRITTERS.—Pick, wash, and dry half a pound of Zante currants, and having spread them out on a’ flat dish, dredge them well with flour. Grate some bread into a pan, till you have a pint of crumbs. Pour over the grated bread a pint of boiling milk, into which you have stirred, as soon as taken from the fire, a piece of fresh butter, the size of an egg. Cover the pan, and let it stand an hour. Then beat it hard, and add nut- meg, and a quarter of a pound of powdered white sugar, stirred in gradually, and two table-spoonfuls of the best — brandy. Beat six eggs till very light, and then stir them, by degrees, into the mixture. Lastly, add the currants, a few at a time; and beat the whole very hard. It should be a thick batter. If you find it too thin, add — a little flour. Have ready over the fire a hot frying-pan with boiling lard Put in the batter in large spoonfuls, (so as not to touch,) and fry the. fritters a light brown. Drain them on a perforated skimmer, or an inverted sieve placed i in a deep pan, and send them to table hot. Eat them with wine, and powdered sugar. ne ae INDIAN, BREAD, GREEN FRITTERS, ETC. 187 Instead of currants, you may use sultana raisins, cut half and well floured. Tails Gad INDIAN FRITTERS.—Having beaten eight eggs very light, stir them gradually into a quart of rich milk, in turn with twelve large table-spoonfuls of yellow In- dian meal, adding a salt-spoon of salt. When all is in, stir the whole very hard. Have ready over a clear fire, in a pot or a large frying-pan,a pound of fresh lard, boil- ing fast. Drop the batter into it, a ladleful at a time. If you find the batter too thin, stir into it a little more In- dian meal. As the lard boils away, replenish it .with more. As fast as they are done, take out each fritter with a perforated skimmer; through the holes of which let the lard drip back into the pot. The fritters must all be well drained. Send them to table hot, and eat them with wine and sugar, or with molasses. In cooking these fritters, you may drop in three or four, one immediately after another; and they will not run, if the lard is boiling fast, and the batter thick enough, and made with the proper number of eggs. Cd J Par ee VERY FINE MINCE-MEAT.—Boil two beef’s tongues, (perfectly fresh,) and, when cold, skin and mince them ; including the fat about the roots. Mince, also, one pound of beef-suet, and mix it with the chopped tongues. Add four nutmegs powdered; two ounces of powdered cinnamon; and an ounce of powdered mace, with a table-spoonful of powdered cloves. Pick clean, wash, and dry three pounds of Zante currants. Seed and chop three peunds of the Gest raisins. Mix the fruit with the other ingredients, adding a pound of citron sliced, and the grated yellow rind, and the juice of three large lemons or oranges. Sweeten the mixture with two pounds of sugar, and moisten it with a quart of excellent hs hs he & 138 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECHIPTS FOR. COOKING. brandy, and a quart of sherry or Madeira wine. Having thoroughly mixed the whole, pack it down, hard, into small stone jars, covering them closely, and pasting 4 strong white paper over the lids. Do not add the ap- ples till you take out the mince-meat for use, as it keeps better without them.. Then take a sufficient number of pippins or bell-flowers, pare, core and chop them, and mix them with the mince-meat, allowing three large apples to a pint of mince-meat. Their freshness will improve the flavour. It is best. to make mince-meat two or three times during the winter; as it will not continue very good longer than five or six weeks. Whenever you take any out of the jars, put some additional brandy to the remainder. i For mince-meat, and all other purposes, use none but the best raisins. What are called cooking raisins, (like cooking butter and cooking wine,) injure instead of im- proving the articles with which they are mixed. All things of bad quality are unwholesome as well as unpa- latable. It is better to do without mince-pies, plum- puddings and plum-cakes, than to spoil them with hard, dried up, indigestible raisins ; to say nothing of the trou- ble of stoning and stemming them, when they are nearly all seeds and stems. ‘ age TEMPERANCE MINCE-MEAT.—Take three pounds of the lean of a round of fresh beef, that has been boiled. the day before. It must be thoroughly boiled, and very tender. Mince it, as finely as possible, with a chopping-knife ; and add to it two pounds of beef- suet, cleared from the skin and filaments, and minced very small. Mix the suet and the lean beef well to- gether; and add a pound of brown sugar. Pick, wash, and dry before the fire, two pounds of Zante currants, TRANSPARENT PASTE, MINCE-MEAT, ETC. 139 Seed and chop two pounds of the best raisins. Sultana raisins have no seeds, and are therefore the most conve- nient for all cookery purposes. Grate the yellow rind of three large lemons. or oranges into a saucer, and squeeze upon it their juice, through a strainer. Mix this with the currants and raisins. Prepare a heaped- up table-spoonful of powdered cinnamon; the same - quantity of powdered ginger; a heaped tea-spoonful of powdered nutmeg; the same of powdered cloves; and the same of powdered mace. Mix all these spices into a quart of the best West India molasses. Then mix well together the meat and the fruit; and wet the whole with the spiced molasses ; of which you must have enough to make the mixture very moist, but not too thin. If you want the mince-meat for immediate use, add to it four pounds of minced apple. The apples for this purpose should be pippins or bell-flowers, pared, cored, quartered, and chopped fine. Add, also, half a pound of citron, not minced, but cut into long slips. - If you intend the mince-meat for keeping, do not add the apple and citron until you are about to make the pies, as it will keep better without them. Mix all the other articles thoroughly, and pack down the mince- meat, hard, in smal] stone jars. Lay upon the top of it, a round of thin white paper, dipped in molasses, and cut exactly to fit the inside circumference of the jar. Secure the jars closely with flat, tight-fitting corks, and then with a lid; and paste paper down over the top on the outside. West India molasses will be found a good substitute for the wine and brandy generally used to moisten mince-meat mom > “ae TRANSPARENT PASTE.—Take twelve ounces (ora pint and a half) of the best fresh butter. Wash and squeeze it through several cold waters, and press ut ses 140 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. whatever milk may remain about it. Then set it over the fire to soften all through; but do not allow it to melt, so as to become liquid or oily. Beat two eggs till very light and smooth ; and when the butter is cool, stir the eggs into it, adding, very gradually, a pound of sifted flour that has been dried before the fire. Mix the whole into a lump of soft dough, and beat it well on all sides with the rolling-pin. Then transfer it to a paste-board, and roll it out thin. As quickly as possible butter some tart-pans, and line them with the paste; then brush it lightly with a little cold water, and sift on, thickly, some powdered sugar. They must be baked empty. Set them imme- diately in a rather brisk oven, and bake them a light brown. When cool, turn them out, and fill them with marmalade, jam, or any very nice sweetmeats. If pro- perly made and baked, this paste looks very handsome. It may be baked in large patty-pans the size of soup- plates. . —+~— LIGHT PASTE.—Sift into a pan three quarters of a pound of flour, and another quarter on a plate. Beat the whites of two eggs to a stiff froth, and mix them with a wine-glass or more of cold water. With this wet the flour to a sti paste; and when it is formed into a lump, beat it on all sides with the rolling-pin. Then lay it on the paste-board, and rollit out into a thin sheet. Use the extra quarter of flour for sprinkling and rolling. Have eady three quarters of a pound of the best fresh butter, divided. into three portions. Cover the sheet with one portion of the butter, placed all over it in bits of equal size, and laid on at equal distances. Then sprinkle on a little flour; fold up the sheet of paste; flour it slightly when folded ;: roll it out again; and put on in the same manner another portion of the butter; then flour it slightly; fold it up; roll it out again; and add the third division of ay ORANGE AND LEMON TARTS, ETC. 141 butter. Then fold it, flour it, and give it a hard final rolling, always moving the rolling-pin from you instead of fowards you. The paste will then be ready for any nice purpose. | Sa ORANGE TARTS.—Take six or seven fine large sweet oranges; roll them under your hand on a table to increase the juice, and then squeeze them through a strainer over half a pound or more of powdered loaf-sugar. Mix the orange-juice and the sugar thoroughly together. Use none of the peel. Break twelve eggs into a large shallow pan, and beat them till thick and smooth. Then stir in, gradually, the orange-juice and sugar. Have ready a sufficiency of the best puff-paste, roll it out thin, and line some. patty-pans with it, having first buttered them inside. Then fill them with the orange-mixture, and set them immediately into a rather brisk oven.. Bake the tarts a light brown; and when done, set them to cool. When quite cold, take them out of the patty-pans, put them on a large dish, and grate sugar over their tops. Lemon tarts may be made in a-similar manner, but they require double the quantity of sugar. For baking tarts it is well to use (instead of tin patty- pans) small deep plates of china or white-ware, with broad flat edges, like little soup-plates. You can then have all round the edge a rim of paste ornamentally notched. In notching the edge of a tart, (this must, of ‘course, be done before it goes into the oven,) use a sharp knife. Make the cuts at equal distances about an inch broad, so as to form squares. Turn upwards one square, and leave the next one down; and so on all round the edge. This is the chevaux-de-frize pattern. For the shell-pattern, having notched the edge of the paste into squares, turn up one half of every square, giving the cor 142 MISS LESLIn’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ~nera fold down. The paste should ore be thickest ‘round the rim or edge. All tarts are best the day they are brag ae but he should never be sent to table warm. 2 eS : A VERY FINE CHARLOTTE RUSSE.—Boil a vanilla bean and a few blades of mace in half a pint of rich milk till itis highly flavoured. Then take out the bean; wipe it; and put it away for another time, and remove the mace also. Mix the flavoured milk with a large half-pint of cream. Beat four or five eggs till very light and thick ; strain them, dnd add them gradually to the cream, (when it is entirely cold,) to make a rich cus- tard. Set this custard over the. fire, (stirring it all the time,) and before it comes to a hard boil, take it off, and set iton ice. Have ready, in another sauce-pan, an ounce of the best Russia isinglass boiled to-a thick jelly in a half pint of water. When the custard and isinglass are both cold, (but not hard,) mix them well together, and add four table-spoonfuls of powdered loaf-sugar. ‘Then take half a pound of loaf-sugar in lumps, and rub on them the yellow rind of two lemons. Mix together the Strained juice of the lemons, and two glasses of sherry or madeira, and a glass of brandy ; pour it wpon the sugar; and when the sugar is entirely dissolved, mix it with a quart of rich cream, and whip it with rods or a whisk to a stiff froth. Take off the froth as it stiffens, and add it gradually to the custard, stirring it very hard, at the time; and also after the whole is mixed. Then set it on ice. Z ae Cover the bottom of a handsome china dish or a glass bowl, with sliced almond sponge-cake cut to fit. Then place round the sides slices of the cake all of the same . shape and’ size, making them wrap a little over each other. Pour in the mixture. Cover the top with a layer of cake cut very thin. Have ready an icing made in the a CHARLOTTE RUSSE, PUDDINGS, ETC. 1438 nes ee re ee ee Ee ee usual manner of beaten white of egg and powdered Joaf- sugar; and flavoured with rose or lemon.. Spread it thickly and evenly over the surface of the top, smoothing it with a broad knife dipped in cold water. Then set it on ice till] wanted. This Charlotte Russe is not to be turned out of the dish. It may be made in two dishes. Instead of vanilla, you may flavour the custard with a handful of peach-leaves, or of broken up bitter almonds, boiled in the first half-pint of milk, and two large sticks of cinnamon brolfen in pieces.’ When the icing on the top has about half-dried, you may ornament it by sticking on ripe strawberries of equal size in circles, stars, or any fanciful figures. Or it may be decorated with white grapes, each grape standing on end, if oval or long shaped. : aA : ANOTHER CHARLOTTE RUSSE.—Take a large circular or oval lady cake, and with a sharp knife cut out nicely the inside, leaving the sides and bottom stand. . ing, (about half an inch thick,) in the form of a mould. Make a rich boiled custard, allowing eight eggs to a quart of unskimmed milk, half a pint of which has been previously flavoured by boiling ig it half a dozen blades of mace with a vanilla bean, or a handful of shelled bitter almonds or peach-kernels blanched and broken up. Strain this flavoured milk and add it tothe other. Then beat the eggs very light and stir them gradually into the milk. Set it over hot coals, stirring it all the time, but take it off before it comes to a boil, or it will curdle. Have ready an ounce of isinglass boiled to a jelly in a little water. When the custard and the isinglass are both cold (not hard) mix them well together and add sufficient powdered loaf-sugar to make it very sweet. Take a quart of rich cream that has been seasoned with extract of roses, and whip it to astiff froth. Take off the 144 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. PAE a ARTUR IME froth as it stiffens, and add it gradually to the custard, stirring it very hard after it is all in to prevent its sepa- rating. Full with the mixture the scooped-out sponge cake. Then cover the whole with an icing made in the usual way of white of egg and sugar, flavoured with rose or lemon. Then set it on ice till wanted. te | AN ITALIAN CHARLOTTE.—Take a pint of. rich cream; set it on ice, and beat and stir it till it be- comes a solid froth. 'Then-boil a vanilla bean in half a pint of rich milk till itis highly flavoured. Strain the milk, and when cold mix with it six ounces of loaf-sugar and the beaten yolks of four eggs, and set it over the fire, or rather on a bed of hot coals. Boil it ten minutes, stirring it frequently. When it comes to a boil, add half a pint of clear firm jelly-stock that has been made of calves’ feet, or else an ounce of isinglass that has been ‘melted in barely as much boiling water as will cover it. ‘Stir the mixture well, and Jet it remain five minutes over the fire. Then take it off, and place it on ice, stirring it till it begins to thicken. When it is about the consistence of very thick gruel, add the whipped cream. Have ready an almond sponge cake, baked in the form of a circular loaf. With a sharp knife cut out the inside of this cake carefully and smoothly; leaving the sides and bottom together, so as to form a mould not quite an inch thick. Fill this up to the top with the Charlotte mixture; and placing a large plate beneath it, set it on ice to congeal. In the mean time, prepare a meringue or icing of beaten * white of egg, thickened with powdered loaf-sugar, and ~ flavoured with extract of orange-flowers. Cover the top and sides of the Charlotte with this icing; spread on evenly, and smoothed with a knife dipped in cold water. Ornament it with coloured sugar-jelly rings, handsomely arranged, or any other nice bonbons. h FRENCH CHARLOTTE, SWEET OMELET, ETC. 146 EEE EE OLED LEY NEE oa ae aaa et A FRENCH CHARLOTTE.—Lay in a deep dish or pan half a pound of bitter almond maccaroons (choco- late maccaroons will be still better) and pour on sufficient white wine to cover them well, and let them stand till entirely dissolved. Whip to a stiff froth a pint of rich cream, sweetened with sugar and flavoured with rose cr Jemon. Have ready a large circular almond sponge cake with the inside cut out, so as to leave the sides and bottom standing in the form of a mould, not quite an inch thick. Ornament the edge with a handsome border of icing. In the bottom of this mould put the dissolved maccaroons ; over them a layer of thick jelly, made of some very nice fruit; and fill up with the whipped cream, heaping it high in the centre. This is a very fine Charlotte, and is easily made, no cooking being required, after the materials are collected. eee a A SWEET OMELET.—Break small in an earthen pan six maccaroons made with bitter almonds, and mix wih them a dozen orange-blossoms pounded to a paste. If the orange-flowers are not quite blown, the fragrance and flavour will be finer. If more convenient, substitute for the blossoms a large wine-glass of orange-flower water. Add six ounces of powdered loaf-sugar, and mix all well together. Separate the whites from the yolks of six eggs. Beat the yolks in a broad earthen pan till very light and smooth, and add to them, graduaily, the other ingredients. Have ready the whites beaten to a stiff froth, and stir them in at the last, a little ata time. Put four ounces of fresh butter into an.omelet pan (or a small, clean, short-handled frying-pan, tinned or enamelled inside.) Set it over hot coals, and when the butter is all melted put in the omelet-batter; which some one should continue to beat till the last minute. When the omelet has become hot and has begun to colour, transfer it to a well 13 146 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. buttered dish. Place it instantly in a rather brisk oven and bake it from five to ten minutes, till it is a light-yel- lowish brown, and puffed up high. Sift powdered sugar over it as quickly as possible, and carry it immediately to the dinner-table ; handing it round rapidly for arene one to take a piece, as it falls very soon. These omelets are served up at dinner-parties imme- diately on the removal of the meats. - ey They must be made, cooked, served up, and eaten with great celerity. Therefore it is not usual to commence mixing a sweet or soufilée omelet, till after the company has set down to dinner. If exactly followed, this receipt will be found excellent. J eS SUNDERLANDS OR JELLY PUFFS.—Take a broad pan, and put into it & pint of rich milk, and half a pound of the best fresh butter. Cut up the butter in the milk, and, if in cold weather, set it in a warm place, on the stove, or on the hearth near the fire, till the butter is quite soft; but do not allow it to melt or oil; it must be merely warmed so as to soften. Then take it off, and with a knife stir the butter well through the milk till thoroughly mixed. Have ready half a pound of fine flour sifted into a deep dish. Ina broad pan beat eight eggs, with a whisk, till they are very thick and light. Then stir the beaten egg into the pan of milk and butter, in turn with the sifted flour, a little at a time of each. Stir the whole very hard, and then put the mixture into buttered tea-cups, filling them only two-thirds. Set them immes diately into a brisk oven, and bake them twenty minutes or more, till they are well browned, and puffed up very light. Then taxe them from the oven, and with a knife open a slit in the side of each puff, and carefully put in, with a spoon, sufficient fruit jelly or marmalade to fill up . the whole inSide or cavity. Afterwards close the shit, and y RHUBARB CUPS, JELLY PUFFS, ETC. 4247 press it tovether with your fingers. As you fill them, Jay each on a large dish; and before they go to table, sift powdered white sugar over them. Eat them cold. If properly made: they will be found delicious. Instead of jelly or marmalade, you may fill the Sunder- lands with a rich boiled custard, favoured with vanilla or bitter almonds; and made with yolk of egg, omitting the whites. | Or the filling may be of thick cream, made very sweet with loaf sugar, and flavoured with rose or peach water, or with orange- -flower water, or with white wine. ee oe RHUBARB CUPS.—Take twenty stalks of green rhubarb; cut them, and boil them in a guart of water. When it comes to a hard boil, take it from the fire; strain uff the water; drain the rhubarb as dry as possible, and then mash it, and make it very sweet with brown sugar. Have ready half a pint of rice, that has been boiled in a quart of water, tili soft and dry. Mix the rhubarb and the rice well together; beating therm hard. Then mould it in cups slightly buttered, and set them on ice, or in a very cold place. Just before dinner, turn them out on a large dish. Serve up with them, in a bowl, cream and sugar, into which a nutmeg has been erated; or else a sauce made of equal portions of fresh butter and powdered white sugar, beaten together till very light, and flavoured with powdered cinnamon, or nutmeg, and oil of lemon or lemon-juice. ° —_o—. SPANISH BLANC-MANGE.—Weigh half a pound of broken-up loaf-sugar of the best quality. On one of the pieces rub off the yellow rind of a large, lemon Then powder all the sugar, and mix with it a pint of rich cream, the juice of the lemon, and half a pint (not less) of madeira or sherry. Stir the mixture very hara, \ 148 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. till all the articles are thoroughly amalgamated. .~Then stir in, gradually, a second pint of cream. Put into a small sauce-pan an ounce of the bostil isin- glass, with one jill (or two common-sized wine-glass-fulls) of cold water. Set the pan over hot coals, and boil it till the isinglass is completely dissolved, and not the smailest lump remaining. Frequently, while boiling, stir it dewn to the botfom ; taking care not to letit scorch. When the melted isinglass has become lukewarm, stir it, gradually, into the mixture of other ingredients; and then give the whole a hard stirring. Have ready two or thrée white- ware moulds, that have just been dipped and rinsed in cold water. Fill them with the mixture, and set them immediately on ice, and in about two hours (or perhaps more) the blanc-mange will be congealed. Do not remove it frorn the ice till perfectly firm. Dip the moulds fora mement in lukewarm water; then turn out the cream on glass dishes. This will be found a delicious article for a dessert, or ai evening party, provided the receipt is exactly fol- lowed. We highly recommend it, and know that if fai ly tried, precisely according to the above directions, there can be no failure. It is superior to any of the ustial preparations of blanc-mangé. The wine (which mnst be of excellent quality) gives it a delicate and beau- tiful colour, and a fine flavour. eae ae VANILLA BLANC-MANGE.—Chip fine an ounce of the best isinglass, and put it into a small ‘sauce-pan, with a jill of cold water, and boil it till entirely dissolved. In another sauce-pan boil half a pint of rich mille and a vanilla bean. Boil it, (with the lid on,) till the flavour of the vanilla is well extracted. Whip a quart of rich zream to a stiff froth. Separate the whites and yolks of foureges. Beat the whites till they standalone. Then, é MACCAROON AND VANILLA BLANC-MANGE, ETC. 149 In anosher pan, peat the yolks, and when they are very light and smooth, add to them, gradually, a quarter of a pound of powdered loaf-sugar, beaten in very hard. Then (having strained out the bean) mix with the cream the milk in which it was boiled. Then beat in, by de- arees, the yolk of egg and sugar; then the white of egg; and, lastly, the melted isinglass. When all the ingredients are united, beat, and stir the whole very hard. Rinse your moulds in cold water. Then put in the mixture, and set it on ice, for two hours or more, to congea]l. When quite firm, (and just before it is wanted,) dip each mould down into a pan of lukewarm water, (taking care that the water does not reach the top,) and turn out the blanc-mange on glass or china dishes. Keep it on ice, till the minute before itis served up. It will be found very fine. gs MACCAROON BLANC-MANGE.—Chip small an ounce of the best Russia isinglass; put it into a small sauce-pan; pour on it a jill of cold water; and boil it till the isinglass is entirely melted, stirring and skimming it well. Then strain it; cover it; and set itaway. Have ready a quart of cream, or very rich milk, boiling hot. Crush half a pound or more of bitter-almond maccaroons ; mix them well with the boiling cream; cover the vessel, and let it stand (stirring it occasionally) till the maccaroons are all dissolved. Next add the lukewarm isinglass ; stir the whole very hard, and then transfer it to blanc-mange moulds, that have been slightly rubbed on the inside with a little sweet oil. Set it on ice, (or in a very cold place,) and stir it occasionally till it begins to congeal; then let it rest. When quite firm all through, loosen it in the moulds, by slipping a knife beneath the edge of the blanc-mange, and warm aclean cloth, and lay it a minute over the top. ‘This will render it easy to turn out. Or you may loosen the blanc-mange by setting the mould in . 13* 150 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. a pan of lukewarm water. Turn it out into a glass dish. Lay on the top of the blanc-mange a sufficient number of whole maccaroons, handsomely arranged in a large star, or in a circle, and place another‘ circle on the dish, round the bottom. CHOCOLATE BLANC-MANGE.—The day before you want the blanc-mange, take four calves’ feet, (singed but not skinned,) or eight or ten pigs’ feet. Boil them slowly, (with frequent skimming,) in four quarts of water, till all the meat drops from the bones. Then strain the liquid, through a sieve, into a broad tin pan, cover it, and set itaway inacold, dry place. Next day it should be a solid cake of clear jelly. Then scrape off all the fat and sedi- ment; cut the jelly into small bits; and put if intoa porcelain kettle or preserving pan, and melt it over the fire. Have ready six ounces, or more, of cocoa or choco- late, that has been scraped fine, and melted, over the fire, in a pint of boiling cream, with six ounces of powdered loaf-sugar. When the chocolate, cream, and sugar have boiled together five minutes after coming to a boil, mix them with the melted jelly, and let the whole come to a boil again; and then boil them together five minutes ~ more, stirring it occasionally. Next put it into moulds that have set all night in cold water. Do not wipe the moulds, but leave them damp. Stir their contents well ; and when the blanc-mange is thickening, so that it is hard to stir, set the moulds on ice, or place them in the cellar, in pans of cold water. When the blanc-mange has quite congealed, and is very firm, turn it out of the: moulds, first setting them in lukewarm water, and serve it up on china dishes. Instead of calves’ or pigs’ feet, you may substitute an ounce of the best Russia isinglass, or an ounce and a half of the common sort. The isinglass must be previously COFFEE AND GELATINE BLANC-MANGE, ETC. 15i dissolved, by boiling it in as much water as will cover it, taking care not to let it burn. It must be melted quite smooth. Mix it, while warm, with the chocolate, cream, and sugar. ——-—_4—_——_ COFFEE BLANC-MANGE may be made as above, substituting, for the chocolate, six ounces of the best cof- fee, freshly roasted and ground, and boiled in a pint of rich, unskimmed milk; or of cream, into which there has been stirred an ounce or an ounce and a half of isin- glass, previously melted by boiling in water ; and, also, six “ounces of powdered sugar. Boil all together, and then strain the liquid into moulds, and set them on ice. —e— GELATINE BLANC-MANGE.—From two quarts of rich milk take a pint, and put the pint into a small sauce- pan, with the yellow rinds of three lemons, pared thin, and half a beaten nutmeg. For the lemon-rind, you may ‘substitute a handful of bitter almonds or peach-kernels, broken up; or else a vanilla bean. Having boiled the pint of milk long and slowly, till it tastes strongly of the flavouring articles, (keeping it closely covered,) strain it, . and mix it, ina larger sauce-pan, with the other three pints of milk. Add an ounce and a half of gelatine, (that has first been soaked in cold water,) and a quarter of a pound of fine loaf-sugar. Set it over the fire, and con- tinue to boil and stir it five minutes after it has come toa boil. Then strain it, and transfer it to blanc-mange moulds, first wetting the inside of each mould- with cold water. . Place the moulds on ice,-or in a very cold place, till the blanc-mange has thoroughly congealed. Then turn it out on dishes. | —_¢+— CAKE SYLLABUB.—Half fill a glass bowl with thin slices of sponge-cake or almond-cake. Pour on suf- 152 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ficient white wine to dissolve the cake. Then rub off, on pieces of loaf-sugar, the yellow rind of two lemons, and dissolve the sugar in a pint of rich cream. Squeeze the juice of the lemons on some powdered loaf-sugar, and add it, gradually, to the cream. Whip or mill the cream to a stiff froth; and then pile it on the dissolved cake in the glass bow]. It should be heaped high above the edge of the bowl. You may ornament the top of the syllabub with a circle of real roses or othet flowers,—a large one in the centre, and smaller ones placed round in a ring. —+— ORANGE FLUMMERY.—Begin the day before, by boiling four large calves’ feet or eight small ones in three quarts of water. ‘The best feet for this purpose are those that are scalded and scraped, but not skinned. After they have boiled slowly about five hours, put in the yel- low rind of four large oranges, pared very thin and cut small, and several sticks of cinnamon broken up; and, if you choose, a dozen bitter almonds or peach-kernels slightly pounded. Then let it boil an hour longer, till the meat all drops from the bones, and is reduced to shreds, and till the liquid is little more than a quart. Strain it through a sieve over a broad white pan, and set it in a cold place till next morning, when it ought to be a solid cake. Scrape off all the fat and sediment care- fully ; otherwise it will not be clear when melted. Cut the cake into pieces; put it into a porcelain kettle, with half a pound of double-refined loaf-sugar, broken up, and melt. it over the fire, adding, when it has entirely dis- solved, the juice of six large oranges. Next stir in, gra- dually, the yolks of six eggs well-beaten, and continue stirring till it has boiled ten minutes. Then take it off the fire, transfer it to a broad pan, and set it on ice or in cold water. Continue stirring till it is quite cold but not set. Wet some moulds with cold water, put the mix- “VANILLA AND ORANGE FLUMMERY, HTC. 1538 ture into them, and set it in a cold place or on ice to con- geal. When perfectly firm, wrap a cloth dipped in warm water round the moulds, and turn it out on glass dishes. Lemon flummery may be made in the same manner. 2 = VANILLA FLUMMERY.—Take two quarts of rich milk. Put a pint of it into a clean sauce-pan, and boil in it a vanilla bean, (keeping it closely covered,) till the milk is highly flavoured. Then strain it into a pan, and stir Into it, gradually, half a pound of ground rice flour, mix- ing it smoothly and free from lumps, till it becomes a - thick batter. If you find it too stiff, thin it with a little milk. Put the rest of the milk (about three pints) into a larger sauce-pan, and set it over the fire. When it comes to a boil, stir in, gradually, the rice-flour-batter, alternately with a quarter of a pound of powdered loaf-sugar. Let it continue boiling five minutes after all the batter has been put in. Then take it off; and stir in two table- spoonfuls of rose-water. Wet some moulds with cold water ; put in the flummery and set it on ice or in a very cold place to congeal. When quite firm, set the moulds for an instant into a pan of lukewarm water. Have ready a rich boiled custard, flavoured by boiling in the milk the same vanilla bean that was previously» used for the flummery. The custard should be made in the proportion of a pint of milk to four eggs, and four table-spoonfuls of sugar. Stir it all the time it is over the fire, and take it off just as it begins to boil hard. When it is quite cold, send it to table in a glass pitcher or bow! to eat with the flummery. Rice flummery may be flavoured by boiling in the first pint of milk a stick of cinnamon and a handful of bitter almonds or peach-kernels all broken up. The custard should then be flavoured also with cinna- mon and bitter almonds boiled in the custard milk. 154 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ee Flummery may ve coloured green by boiling in the. last milk, spinach juice extracted by pounding in a mor-. tar some raw spinach, or some pistachio nuts. To colour it red, mix with the milk the juice of a beet that has been boiled, scraped, cut up and pounded. Or boil in the milk a very small muslin bag with alkanet tied up in it. ed / MERINGUED APPLES.—Pare and core (with a tin apple-corer) some fine large pippin apples, but do not quarter or slice them. Wash them separately in cold water, and then with the water still remaining about the surface of the apples, stand them up in a deep baking- dish, but do not place them so near each other as to touch. Pour into the bottom of the dish just water. enough to prevent their burning, set them into a close oven, and bake them till they are perfectly tender all through, but not to’ break; as they must on no account lose their shape. When done, take them out; remove them to a flat china dish; and set them immediately to cool, clearing off any juice that may be about them. When quite cold, fill up the hole from whence the cores were extracted with thick marmalade or fruit jelly. Have ready a meringue or ‘icing “made of beaten white of egg, thickened with finely powdered loaf-sugar and. flavoured with lemon-juice, or extract of roses. In mak- ing a meringue the usual proportion is the whites of four eggs toa pound of powdered sugar. The white of egg must first be whisked to a stiff firm froth, and the sugar then beaten into it, gradually, a spoonful at a time; the flavouring being added at the last. When the apples are quite cold cover them all over with the meringue, put on in table-spoonfuls, beginning at the top of each apple and then spreading it down evenly with a broad-bladed knife dipped frequently into a bowl of cold water. The CHOCOLATE CREAM, MERINGUED APPLES, ETC. 155 meringue must be put on very smoothly and of equal thickness all over. Then dredge the surface with finely powdered loaf-sugar sifted in from a very small sieve Set them into a rather cool oven, and as soon as the _meringue is hardened, take them out. Fine large free-stone peaches may be meringued in this manner. To extract the stones of peaches loosen them carefully all round with a sharp, narrow-pointed knife. You may then easily thrust them out, without breaking the peaches, which for this purpose should not be over-ripe. Sey, > CHOCOLATE CREAM.—Scrape down a quarter of a pound of the best chocolate, or of Baker’s prepared cocoa. Put it intoa marble mortar. Pour on by degrees as much boiling water as will dissolve it, and beat it well for about a quarter of an hour. ‘Then sweeten it with four table-spoonfuls of powdered loaf-sugar. Add, gra- dually, a pint and a half of rich cream. Mill it with a chocolate mill, or a little tin churn; or beat it hard with . rods. As the froth rises, take it off and lay it on the inverted bottom of a sieve that is placed in a deep pan. When done, take the liquid that has drained through the sieve, and put a portion of it in the bottom of each glass. Then fill the glasses with the froth, heaping it high on the top, and set it in a cool dry place till wanted. —_+— ANOTHER WAY.—Boil a vanilla bean in half a pint of milk till the flavour is well-extracted. Then take out the bean, wipe it dry, and put it away. It may be used a second time for a slight vanilla flavouring. Scrape ° down a quarter of a pound of excellent chocolate, or of Baker’s prepared cocoa, and mix with it the vanilla-milk. Put it into a chocolate pot or a sauce-pan, and pour on it a pint and a half of rich milk. Set it over the fire, or on 156 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. a bed of hot coals, and boil it slowly ; stirrmg it till the chocolate 1s entirely dissolved and thoroughly incorporated with the milk. Beat six eggs very light, and stir them, gradually, into the mixture; continuing to stir, lest it should curdle. When the egg is all in, and it begins to boil up, take it off, and when cool enough transfer it to glasses, or to a bowl. =~ - PISTACHIO CREAM.—Take half a pound of pis- tachio nuts. Throw them into scalding water, and peel off the skins. Put the nuts (not more than twoata time) into a marble mortar, and pound them to a smooth paste, adding frequently, as you proceed, a few drops of rose- water. Sweeten a quart of cream with half a pound of powdered loaf-sugar, and stir into it, gradually, the pis- tachio paste. Set the mixture over the fire; and let it just come to a boil. ‘Then take it out; stir in two table- spoonfuls of rose-water or peach-water, and set on ice to cool. Either serve it up liquid in a glass bowl, or put it into a freezer, and freeze it as ice-cream. If you freeze it, you must substitute for the rose-water or peach-water, a table-spoonful of extract of roses, or the same quantity of extract of bitter almonds. were process of freezing diminishes the strength of every or of flavouring; and of sweetening also. If you serve it up as frozen, stick it all over _with slips of pistachio nut, peeled and sliced. ‘ —>— ALMOND CREAM.—Take a pound of shelled sweet almonds, and two ounces or more of shelled bitter almonds, or peach-kernels. Blanch them in scalding water, throw- ing them as you proceed into a bowl of cold water. Then pound them (one at a time) in a mortar, till each becomes a smooth paste; pouring in, as you proceed, a little rose- water to make the almonds white and light, and trans- ~ COCOA-NUT AND VANILLA CREAM, ETC. 157 ae a Ua ll Sv, ec, SAR AA il ferring tne paste to a plate as you goon. Then when they are all done, mix the almonds with a quart of rich cream, and a quarter of a pound of powdered loaf-sugar. Add half a dozen blades of mace; put the mixture intoa porcelain kettle, and boil it, slowly, stirring it frequently down to the bottom. WHaving given it one boil up, re- move it from the fire, take out the mace, and when it has cooled a little, put the cream into glass cups, grating nut- meg over each. Serve it up quite cold. You may ornament each cup of this cream with white of egg, beaten to a stiff froth, and heaped on the top. —¢— COCOA-NUT CREAM may be made as above; substituting for the almonds a pound of cocoa-nut grated finely. When it has) boiled, and is taken from the fire, stir into the cream a wine-glass of rose-water. A similar cream may be made with pounded pistachio nuts. Pecan nuts, blanched and pounded, (adding occasionally a little cold water to take off the oiliness,) may~be boiled as above, with cream, sugar, and spice. All these creams may be Appaen, and served up as ice- cream. a. ae VANILLA OREAM. —Boil a vanilla bean in half a pint ‘of rich milk, till the milk is highly flavoured with the vanilla. ‘Then (having taken out the bean) strain the milk into a pint of thick cream. Beat the yolks of five eggs till very light, and then mix gradually with the beaten egg a quarter of a pound of powdered loaf-sugar, beating it in very hard. Set the cream over hot coals, and add to it by degrees the egg and sugar. Stir it con- tinually till it is on the point of coming to a boil. It must be very thick and smooth. Cover the bottom and sides of a glass bowl or dish, with three quarters of a : 14 158 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECBIPTS FOR COOKING. - pouna of lady-cake, cut into nice even slices. Pour on the mixture, and then set the bow] on ice or snow till wanted. For lady-cake, you may substitute finger-biscuit, or slices of almond sponge-cake. You may ornament the bowl by beating to a stiff fish the whites of two or three of the eggs, and heaping it on © the top. EEE See 2 ICED JELLY.—Make calves’ feet jelly in the usual way. Then put it into a freezer, and freeze it as you would ice-cream. Serve it up ina glass bowl or in jelly- glasses. You cannot mould it this way; but the taste of jelly when broken up is much more lively than when moulded; also it sparkles and looks handsomer. oe CURRANT ICE.—Pick a sufficiency of ripe currants from their stems. Then squeeze the currants through a linen bag, and to each quart of the juice allow a pound of powdered loaf-sugar. Mix them together, and when the sugar is thoroughly melted, put it into a freezer, and freeze it in the manner of ice-cream. Serve it up in glass bowls. It will be found delicious in warm weather. = . PLUM-WATER ICE.—Take some fine ripe plums. Wash them; cut them in half, and stone them. Crack the stones, and take out the kernels. Weigh the plums, and to every pound allow a pound and a half of loaf-sugar, and the white of an egg beaten to a stiff froth. Mix, in a preserving kettle, the white of egg with the sugar, which should be finely powdered; and allow to each pound and a half of sugar, half a pint of water. Having stirred it well, set on the fire, (but not till all the sugar is me..ea,) add the plum-kernels, and boil and skim it. When the scum ceases to rise, take the syrup off the fire, pour it into a white-ware vessel, and remove the kernels. WATER ICES, ICED JELLYS, ETC. 159 _ While you are boiling the sugar, put the plums into another vessel and boil them by themselves to draw out the juice. Then put them into a linen bag, and squeeze all the jutce into a deep pan or pitcher placed beneath. Afterwards mix the plum-juice with the syrup; stirring them thoroughly together; and put it into a freezer. Freeze it well, and when done, serve it in a glass bowl, and eat it in saucers. : —+— DAMSON-WATER ICE may be made as above; _except that you boil the damsons whole and make no use of the kernels. When the damsons have all burst open, put them into a linen bag; squeeze it well, mix the juice with the syrup which you have previously prepared, and freeze it. The juice of damsons is much thicker and richer than that of plums; but it requires still more sugar. —_+—. CHERRY-WATER ICE is made nearly as above; except that the cherries must be stoned, but not boiled. Put them raw into the bag, and squeeze them. The cherries should-be of the best and most juicy red sort, and thoroughly ripe. a STRAWBERRY ICE is made of ripe strawberries put into a linen bag, and the juice squeezed out. Then measure it, and to each pint of juice allow half a pound ‘of powdered loaf-sugar. Having mixed thoroughly the juice and the sugar, put it into a freezer and freeze it. In this manner ices (without cream) may be made of currant and raspberry juice, mixed raw with sugar. oS > GOOSEBERRY-WATER ICE.—Having stewed the gooseberries, squeeze out the juice through a linen bag. ‘To every pint, allow a pound of ivaf-sugar. Mix it well, and freeze it. — 4 160 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. PEACH ICE-CREAM.—Take fine soft free-stone peaches, perfectly ripe. Pare them, and remove the stones. Crack about half the stones, and extract the kernels, which must be blanched by putting them into a bowl, and pouring on boiling water to loosen the skins. Then break them up, or pound them slightly ; put them into a little sauce-pan, and boil the kernels in a small quantity of rich milk, till it is highly flavoured with them ; keeping the sauce-pan covered. Strain out the kernels, and set the milk to cool. Cut up the peaches in a large, broad, shallow pan, or a flat dish, and chop them very small. Mix with the chopped peaches sufficient powdered loaf-sugar to make them very sweet, and then mash them to a smooth jam with a silver spoon. Measure the peach jam; and to each quart allow a pint of cream, and a pint of rich unskimmed milk. Mix the whole well together, and put it into the freezer ; adding when the mixture is about half-frozen, the milk in which you boiled the ker- nels, and which will greatly improve the peach-flavour. Vhen well frozen, turn out the cream and serve it ina glass bowl. If you wish to have it in a shape, transfer it to a mould, and give it a second freezing. Before you turn it out, wash the outside of the mould all over with cold water, or wrap a wet cloth round it. Then open it, and the ice-cream will come out easily. | Apricot ice-cream may be made as above. cae ais CHOCOLATE ICE-CREAM.—Scrape down half a pound of the best chocolate or of Baker’s ‘prepared cocoa. Put it into a sauce-pan, and pour on it a pint of boil- ing milk. ‘Stir, and mix it well,and smoothly. Then set it over the fire, and let it come to a boil. Mix together in a pan, a quarter of a pound of powdered loaf-sugar, and a pint of rich cream. In another pan beat very light the yolks of nine eggs. Afterwards gradually stir the tau Ber ial ICE CREAMS, CURDS AND WHEY, ETC 161 beaten egg into the cream and sugar, and then put the mixture into a sauce-pan; stir in, by degrees, the choco- late ; set it over the fire, and simmer it till it is just ready to come to a boil. Strain it through a sieve, transfer it to a freezer, and freeze it in the usual manner of ice cream. — BISCUIT ICE-CREAM.—Take some pieces of broken loaf-sugar, and rub off on them the yellow rind of four lemons. ‘Then pulverize the sugar and mix it with half a pound of loaf-sugar already powdered. Have ready eight small Naples biscuits or sponge-cakes, grated fine ; stir them, in turn with the sugar, into a quart of cream. Give the whole one boil up. Then put it into a freezer, and freeze it in the usual manner. Afterwards transfer it to a pyramid mould, and freeze it a second time. Similar ice-cream may be made with maccaroons broken small and dissolved in the cream, from whence half a pint must be previously taken and boiled with a handful of broken up bitter almonds. Afterwards strain this, and mix it with the rest. —+— FLAVOURED CURDS AND WHEY.—To turn two quarts of milk, take a piece of dried rennet about the size of the palm of your hand; wash it well through several cold waters to get the salt entirely off, and then wipe it dry. Put it intoa small bowl, and pour on it half a tumbler (a quarter of a pint) of lukewarm water. ‘The water must on no account be hot, as to scald rennet weakens it and diminishes its power of converting milk into curd. Cover the bowl; and let it stand to infuse at least four hours. A longer time will do no harm; there- fore, if you intend making the curd early in the day, you may put the rennet in soak over night. For lernon- 14* 162 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ee flavouring—to two quarts of milk allow two lemons, using only the yellow rind or surface of the skin, and grating it as finely as possible. Reserve the juice of the lemons for some other purpose. Mix the grated rind with the -. rennet-water, first removing the piece of rennet that has - been soaking in it. Have ready in a large china or glass bowl two quarts of rich milk, and stir into it the rennet- water and lemon-rind. Cover the bowl, and set it in a moderately warm place till the curd has become a firm, smooth, unbroken mass, and the whey looks clear and greenish. Then set the bowl on ice, and keep it there till wanted for the table. Accompany it with a small pitcher of rich cream, and a little bowl of powdered loaf- sugar and nutmeg. Send it round on saucers. Itisa delicious article for summer dessert, or fora summer tea- table. . To flavour curds and whey with vanilla—boil a vanilla bean slowly in half a pint of milk, keeping the sauce- pan closely covered. When the milk is highly flavoured with the vanilla, strain it; and when cold, mix it with the milk you intend for the curds. Afterwards add the rennet-water. Or you may use instead of the bean, extract of vanilla, allowing four table-spoonfuls to two quarts of milk. Oliver’s extract of vanilla is of excellent quality, and may be obtained in small bottles at most of the drug stores in Philadelphia. | To give curds and whey a peach-flavour—stir into the - milk some peach-water, as soon as you have added the rennet-water ; allowing two table-spoonfuls of the peach- water to each quart of milk. If you have no peach-water, take a handful of peach-kernels, (saved from the stones,) pound them, and boil them slowly in half a pint of. milk till" it tastes strongly of them. Then strain the milk, ‘and when cold, mix it with the rest, and add the rennet- water. A handful of fresh peach-leaves boiled long and RENNETS, CALVES FOOT JELLY, ETC. 168 slowly in a small portion of milk will produce a similar flavour. . For a rose taste, stir into two quarts of milk a tea- spoonful of extract of roses; or more if it is not very strong ; or add four table-spoonfuls of rose-water. Curds and whey that has not been previously flavoured, should be sent to table with a small pitcher containing white wine, loaf-sugar, and powdered nutmeg. : ats RENNETS.—Milk turned into a curd with wine, is by no means so good as that which is done with rennet- water alone. ‘The curd and whey do not separate so completely: the curd is less firm, and the whey less clear; the latter being thick and white, instead of thin and greenish as it ought, to be. Neither is it so light and wholesome as when turned with rennet. . Rennets of the best quality can be had at all seasons in Philadelphia market; particularly in the lower part, called the Jersey market. ‘They are sold at twelve, eighteen, or twenty-five cents, according to their size, and will keep a year or two; but have most strength when fresh. You may prepare excellent rennets yourself at a very trifling expense, by previously bespeaking them of a veal butcher; a rennet being the stomach of a calf. Its form isa bag. As soon as you get the rennet, empty out all its contents, and wipe it very clean, inside and out: then rinse it with cold water; but do not wash it much, as washing will weaken its power of turning milk into curd. When you have made it quite clean, lay the rennet in a broad pan, strew it over on both sides with plenty of fine: salt; cover it, and let it rest five days. When you take it out of the pan, do not wipe or wash it, for it must be stretched and dried with the salt on. For this purpose hold it open like a bag, and’slip within it a iong, thick, smooth rod, bent into the form of a large loop 164 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. wide at the top, and so narrow at the bottom as to meet together. Stretch the rennet tightly and smoothly over this bent rod, on which it will be double, and when you have brought the two ends of the rod together at the bet- tom, and tied them fast, the form will somewhat resem- ble that of a boy’s kite. Hang it up in a dry place, and cut out a bit as you want it. A piece about two inches square will turn one quart of milk, a piece of. four inches two quarts. Having first washed off all the salt in seve- ral cold waters, and wiped the bit of rennet dry; pour on it sufficient Jukewarm water to cover it well. Let it stand several hours; then pour the rennet-water into the milk you intend for the curd, and set it in a warm place. When the curd is entirely formed, set the vessel on ice. Rennet may be used with good effect. before it has quite dried. : Car Se, * HINTS ON CALVES’ FOOT JELLY.—In making - calves’ foot jelly, if you intend it for moulds, put in two or three pieces of isinglass when you are boiling the in- eredients. If you wish it a deep rch colour, put into the bottom of the straining-bag a large tea-spoonful of brown sugar, before you pour in the jelly. After all the jelly has run through the bag, (which must on no ac- count be squeezed,) let it, gradually, become perfectly cold before you remove it to a colder place to congeal. pean) ae See MOLASSES PUDDING.—Line with some nice { paste, a large bowl or pudding-mould. Flavour with the juice and grated peel of a large lemon or orange a quart of molasses or steam-syrup. Add a tea-spoonful of mixed spice, powdered nutmeg, and cinnamon. Pour some of the mixture into the paste. Then add another layer of paste cut in pieces. Then more mo- lasses. Next more paste; and so on till the mould ox bowl is filled up, finishing with paste. Boil it an hour. ' SWEETMEATS—AMERICAN CITRON, ETC. 165 ee Pf - \ SWEETMEATS, ETC. AMERICAN CITRON.—Pare a sufficient number of citron-melons, and cut each melon into four thick quarters. Weigh them, and put them over-night into a tureen, or a large white-ware pan or basin. The cus- tom of steeping sweetmeats in brine is now obsolete. It is found to answer no good purpose; it renders the citron hard and tough, and it is difficult to get out the taste of the salt. We have known sweetmeats entirely spoiled by it. Instead of brine, prepare some very weak alum water, allowing go each quart of water a bit of alum about the size of a grain of indian corn. When the citron-melons are cut up, wash every piece sepa- rately in the alum water, which will green and clear it. After it has lain half an hour in the alum-water, drain the citron, and put it into a porcelain preserving-kettle, allowing to every four pounds of the citron a large half pint of clear fresh water. There must be water enough to cover the citron, and keep it from burning. Add to every four pounds, the yellow rind of a large lemon, grated, saving the lenron juice to add to the syrup. Set the kettle over a clear fire, and boil it slowly, till the citron is tender enough to be easily pierced through with a large needle. If it seems to be boiling dry, add a little more cold water. When all are quite tender, take out each piece separately with a fork. Spread them out on a large dish. Then strain and measure the liquid; and to each pint allow a pound of the best double-refined loaf- sugar; not the sugar that is sold ready-powdered, as that is so adulterated with ground starch, that it has little or no strength, and sweetmeats made with it are sure to spoil, unless four times the usual quantity is put in. 166 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. Having broken up the loaf-sugar, add it to the liquid in the preserving-kettle, and let it boil (skimming it well) till it becomes a thick, rich, jelly-like syrup. It will most probably be boiled sufficiently in about halfan hour. Next put in the pieces of citron, one at a time, and boil them ten minutes, or more, inthe syrup, till it has thoroughly pene- trated them. Afterwards take out the citron; spread it on a dish to cool; and transfer the syrup to a large pitcher. When cold, put the citron into glass jars, and pour the syrup over it. Cover the tops with white paper, dipped in brandy, and tie closely over each another covering of bladder, that has been previously soaked in water. ‘The covers of lacquered tin, that be- long to glass jars, seldom fi perfectly tight, and are not to be trusted without another covering over them. This will be found a very fine sweetmeat. To dry it, in imitation of foreign citron, select some of the finest pieces ; spread theny on a dish ; und set them for three days in the hot sun, turning each piece several times a-day. Then make a hole near the end of each piece; run a twine string through them, and hang them on lines, across an open, sunny window. When sufficiently dry, put them into tight jars, or boxes, and keep them to use, as Citron, in cakes or mince-pies. Preserved citron may be candied, (after it has lain five or six months in the syrup,) by taking out the pieces, spreading them on a dish, and boiling the syrup again, lull it is as thick as possible. It may require some addi- tional sugar. Then pour it on the citron; and when it has grown cold, and has dried on the pieces, put them into a jar. ~ When giving the citron its first boiling, in the lemon- peel and water, you may add, to every four pounds of citron, half an ounce of root-gingez, (if green and tender, it will be better,) or else a few pieces of preserved ginger SWEETMEATS—CITRON-MELONS, ETC. 167 lo increase the iemon-flavour, rub off; upon some lumps of sugar, (before you make the syrup,) the yellow rind of two or three other lemons. —_+—- PRESERVED CITRON-MELONS.—Take some fine citron-melons ; pare, core, and cut themintoslices. Then weigh them; and, to every six pounds of melon, allow six pounds of the best double-refined loaf-sugar; and the juice and yellow rind (pared off very thin) of four large, fresh lemons; also, qr. of apound of race-ginger. Put the slices of melon into a preserving-kettle, and boil them half an hour, or more, till they look quite clear and are so tender that a broom-twig will pierce through them. Then drain them; lay them in a broad pan of cold water; cover them; and let them stand all night. In the morning, tie the race-ginger in a thin muslin cloth, and boil it in three pints of clear spring or pump- water, till the water is highly flavoured. Then take out the bag of ginger. Having broken up the sugar, put it into a clean preserving-kettle; and pour the ginger-water over it. When the sugar is all melted, set it over the fire ; put in the yellow peel of the lemons; and boil and skim it till no more scum rises. ‘Then remove the lemon-peel ; put in the sliced citrons, and the juice ot the lemons; and boil them in the syrup till all the slices are quite transparent, and so soft that a straw will go through them; but do not allow them to break. When quite done, put the slices (while still warm) into wide- mouthed glass or white-ware jars; and gently pour on the syrup. Lay inside of each jar, upon the top of the syrup, a double white tissue-paper, cut exactly to fit the surface. Put on the lids of the jars, and paste thick pa- per over them. This will be found a delicious sweetmeat ; equal to any imported from the West Indies, and far less expen- a. 168 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. sive. We recommend it highly. Citron-melons. are brought to Philadelphia market in the month of August. AN EASY WAY OF PRESERVING PINE-AP- PLES.—Take pine-apples, as ripe as you can possibly get them; pare them, and cut them into thin, circular slices. Weigh them, and to each pound of pine-apple allow a pound of the best double-refined loaf-sugar. Place. a layer of the pine-apple slices in the bottom of a large, deep dish, or white-ware pan, and sprinkle it. thickly with a layer of the sugar, which must first be bow Then put another layer of the pine-apple, and sugar? well; and so on, till the dish is full; finishing with a layer of sugar on the top. Cover the dish, and let it stand all night. In the morning remove the slices of pine-apple toa tureen. Pour the syrup into a porcelain preserving-kettle, and boil and skim it at least half an hour. Do not remove it from the fire, till the scum has entirely ceased to rise. Then pour the syrup, boiling hot, over the slices of pine-apple in the tureen. Cover it, and Jet it stand till cold. Then transfer the sliced pine-apple and the syrup to wide-mouthed glass jars, or to large tumblers. Cover them well, pasting down thick white paper over the top. és tu J —_¢— FINE PINE-APPLE MARMALADE.—Take the largest, ripest, and most perfect pime-apples. Pare them, and cut out whatever blemishes you may find. Weigh each pine-apple, balancing the other scale with an equal weight of the best double-refined: sugar, finely powdered, at home. The white sugar, that is sold ready-powdered, is generally so adulterated with finely pulverized starch, _ as to have very little strength or sweetness, and is, there- . fore, unfit for sweetmeats, as, when made with it, they "will not keep. Grate the pine-apples on a large dish: SWEETMEATS—PINE-APPLES, ETC. 169 - using a large, coarse grater, and omitting the hard core that goes down the centre of each. Put the grated pine- apple and the sugar into a preserving-kettle, mixing them thoroughly. Set it over a moderate and very clear fire, and boil and skim it well, stirring it after skimming. After the scum has ceased to appear, stir the marmalade frequently till it is done, which will generally be in an hour, or an hour and a half after it has come to a boil. But if it is not smooth, clear, and bright, in that time, continue the boiling till it is. Put it, warm, into tum- blers, or broad-mouthed glass jars. Lay inside the top of each, doubled white tissue-paper, cut exactly to fit, and press it down lehtly with your finger, round the edge, so as to cover smoothly the surface of the marma- lade. ‘Then paste strong white paper over the top of each glass, and set them in a cool, dry place. This is a very delicious preparation of pine-apple. —e—— _.THE BEST WAY OF PRESERVING PINE- APPLES.—Take six large, fine, .ripe pine-apples. Make them very clean, but do not pare off the rind, or cut off the leaves. Put them, whole, into a very large and very clean pot or kettle. Ful it up with cold water, and boil the pine-apples till they are so tender that you can penetrate them all through with a twig from a broom. Then take them out and drainthem. When cool enough to handle without inconvenience, remove the leaves, and pare off the rind. ‘The rind and leaves being left on, while boiling, will keep in the flavour of the fruit. Cut the pine- apples into round slices, about half an inch thick, extracting the core from the centre, so as to leave a round hole in the middle of every slice. Weigh them; and to each pound allow a pound of double-refined loaf-sugar, broken up and powdered. Cover the bottom ‘ofa large dish, or dishes, with a layer of the sugar. On this, place a layer of pine Te 170 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. apple; and so till the pine-apple slices are all covered ; finishing witha layer of sugar. Let them stand twenty four hours. Then drain the slices from the syrup, an lay them in wide jars. Put the syrup into a clean pre- serving-kettle, and boil and skim it till the scum ceases to rise. Then pour it hot upon the pine-apple. While still warm, cover the jars closely, and paste paper over them. They will be found very fine. “an —_— QUINCES may be presale in a similar manner: first boiling them whole, with the skin on; then peelii g them, and extracting the cores; then slicing the quinces into round, thin pieces, and letting them stand twenty-four hours in layers of sugar. Boil the syrup, and pour it over the quinces, after they are in the jars. Save the parings and cores, and also some of the water in which the quinces were boiled. Weigh the boiled cores and parings; and to each pound allow a half-pint of the quince-water, Set them over the fire, in a clean kettle, and boil them, till dissolved as much as possible. Then strain them through a linen bag. To each pint of juice allow a pound of loaf-sugar, powdered. Having washed the kettle, put in the sugar; pour on it the quince-liquor; and boil it till it becomes a jelly. Try it, by holding a spoonful in the ‘ens air, andyuf all is nace it will congeal very soon. —+—— FINE ORANGE MARMALADE.—Quarter some large, ripe oranges, and remove the rind, the seeds, and the strings, or filaments; taking care, as you do so, to save al: the juice. Pu..he pulp and juice into a porce- lain sauce-pan, and mix with it an equal quantity of strained honey. If not sweet enough, add some pow- dered loaf-sugar. Boil them together slowly, stirring it apple slices; then a layer of sugar; then one of pine- & SWEETMEATS—MARMALADES, JELLYS, ETC. 171 Ne la wee a ge frequently. Try if it is done, by taking out a spoon- ful, and placing it in the cold air. If, in cooling, il becomes a very thick marmalade, it is sufficiently boiled Put it into wide-mouth glass jars, and’ cover it closely ; first, with a double white tissue-paper, cut exactly to fit the surface of the marmalade, and then with thick white paper, pasted down, carefully, over the top of the jar. A cover of bladder, soaked in water, and put on wet, that it may contract in drying, is still better. a APPLE MARMALADE.—Break up four pounds of fine loaf-sugar. Put it into a preserving-kettle, and pour on’a quart of clear, cold water. When the sugar hag melted, stir it; set the kettle over the fire, and Jet it boil for a quarter of an hour after it has come toa boil; skim- ming it well. Have ready some fine, ripe pippin ot « bell-flower apples, pared, cored and sliced. There must © ye apple enough to weigh four pounds, when cut up. Put it into the syrup, adding the grated rinds of four large lemons. Let it simmer, stirring it well, till the apple is all dissolved, and forming a smooth mass. Then add the juice of the lemons; boil it fast; and con- tinue boiling and stirring, till 1t becomes a very thick marmalade. It will generally require simmering an hour and a half, and boiling fast half an hour, or more. When it is done, put it, warm, into deep white-ware jars; cover it closely, and paste paper over the top, or tie a piece of bladder closely ; and put it away in a dry, cool place. If you want any for immediate use, put some into a handsome mould, and, when cold and firm, turn it out on a glass dish; first dipping the mould in warm water. | eo FINE ORANGE JELLY.—Take four large calves’ feet, that have been singed, but not skinned. Boil them & . 172 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. in a gallon of clear, soft water, till the liquid is reduced to one quart, and-all the meat has dropped from the bones. Strain it into a pan, cover it, and let it stand till next morning. It should then be a firm cake. Takea knife, and carefully remove all the fat from the top of the . cake, and all the sediment from the bottom, and press some clean, soft, blotting-paper (or white paper) upon it, to clear it from all remains of greasiness. Then cut the cake of jelly into slices, and put it into a preserving-ket- tle. Add to it a pound and a half of loaf-sugar, broken up, a pint and a half of strained orange-juice, and the yellow rinds of four oranges, pared thin, and cut in pieces. Beat, slightly, the whites of six eggs, and add them to the mixture, with three of their shells, crushed small. Set the kettle over a clear fire, and stir till you see indications of the scum begin to rise. Then cease stirring, immediately, or the jelly will be cloudy. After it has come to a boil, simmer it ten minutes. Then take it off the fire. Let it stand about five minutes, and then pour the whole into a jelly-bag; place a white pan be- neath, for the jelly to drip into. Take care not to squeeze the bag, or the clearness of the jelly will be irre- coverably destroyed. If it is not clear, on first running through, empty the bag, wash it clean, and return the jelly to it, and let it drip again. Repeat this, if neces- sary, till it is quite bright and transparent. When it has congealed, and become firm, put it into a glass bowl, and break it up. If you wish it in moulds, put it into them, of course, while it is liquid; but not till it is quite clear. It will be clear much sooner, and with certainty, if you add two or three blades of isinglass, when it first begins to boil. : The oranges should be ripe, high-coloured, and obi é under the hand, to ingioese the juice SWEETMEATS—CURRANT JELLY, ETC. 178 _ EXCELLENT CURRANT-JELLY.—The currants should be quite ripe, but not over-ripe. Having picked them from the stems, put the fruit into a large stone jar, or pitcher, and tie closely over the top a very thick paper, (for instance, sugar-loaf paper, or coarse brown.) Set the jar into a kettle of boiling water, the water not quite reaching the top of the jar; and let the currants remain over a moderate fire an hour after they have begun to’ boil. Then pour them into a linen bag, and let the juice drip into a vessel beneath. Do not squeeze the bag, or the jelly will not be clear. When the juice has ceased © to drip, measure it; and to each quart allow a pound of the best double-refined loaf-sugar, broken up. Crush the sugar small, by rolling it on a clean paste-board, with a rolling-pin. Put the juice (without the sugar) into a preserving-kettle, and let it just come toa boil. Then take it off; and, while it is very hot, immediately stir into it the sugar, a handful at a time, using a wooden spoon to stir it with. If the sugar is of the best sort, it will require no skimming, and will have no sediment. Therefore, as nothing of it will be lost or wasted, it is more economical than sugar of inferior quality. Put the jelly immediately into tumblers, or white jars, and cover it at once; first, with double white tissue-paper, cut to fit exactly the in- side of the top; and then with writing-paper, cut larger, so as to turn downward, round the outside of the top. Paste the paper firmly on, and set the jelly away in a dry, cool place. Notch the edge of the paper, with scissors. White currant-jelly may be made as above. It will be a clear, bright, amber colour. Raspberry, strawberry, grape, gooseberry, and cran- berry-jelly, can be made in this manner. For the goose- berry, allow a pound and a half of sugar to every pint of juice ; for the cranberry, a pound and a half, also. 15* 4 174 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. FINE BLACK CURRANT-JELLY.—Make black currant-jelly according to the above receipt; except that when you have stemmed the black currants, and put them into the jar, to boil, you must add a little water; allowing a small half-pint of water to each quart of the stemmed currants. ‘The juice of black currants is so very thick, that, if undiluted, the jelly would be tough and ropy. ——— ee € FOUR FRUIT JELLY.—Take equal quantities of ripe strawberries, raspberries, currants, and red cherries. All should be fully ripe, and the cherries must be stoned, taking care to save the juice that comes from them in stoning. Add it, afterwards, to the rest. Mix the fruit together, and put it in a linen bag. Squeeze it well into - a tureen placed beneath. When it has ceased to drip, measure the juice; and to every pint, allow a pound and two ounces of the best double-refined loaf-sugar, finely powdered. Mix together the juice and the sugar. Put them into a porcelain preserving-kettle ; set it over the fire, and let it boil half an hour—skimming it frequently. Try the jelly by dipping out a spoonful, and holding it in the open air. If it congeals readily, it is sufficiently done. Put the jelly warm into tumblers or other wide- topped glasses. Cover it with double-tissue paper, which must be white, and cut exactly to fit the surface of the jelly. Lay it nicely and smoothly inside the top of the glass, pressing it down with your fingers all round the edge. ‘Then paste white paper over the top, and a little way down the sides of the glass, notching it round with scissors to make it fit the better. Set away the jelly in a cool dry closet. —¢— BARBERRY JAM.—Take barberries that ate per- fectly ripe. Pick them from the stems; and to each quart of berries, allow three-quarters of a pound of clean SWEETMEATS—JELLYS, JAMS, ETC, 15 tich brown sugar. Mash the barberries, and put them with all their juice into a preserving-kettle, mixing with ~ them the sugar, and stirring it wellin. Boil and skim till the. scum ceases to rise, and the jam has become a thick mass, which it will not be in less than an hour Put it warm into stone or glass jars. Cover them imme- diately and paste down paper over their tops. It is a cheap and good sweetmeat for family use, either on the tea-table or in tarts. Barberries in bunches may be put loosely into jars, and sufficient cold molasses poured in to fill up the vessels, which must be kept tightly covered. Frost grapes, also, can be kept in this homely manner. =e ey DAMSON JAM.—Fill a stone jar with fine ripe dam- sons that have been washed in cold water but not dried. Cover it, set it in an open kettle with water which must not quite reach the neck of the jar, and place it over a hot fire. Let the water boil round the jar, till the stones of the damsons are all lcose, and falling out from the pulp. Then transfer the damsons and their juice, to a broad pan, and carefully pick out all the stones. Next mash the pulp with a broad flat wooden ladle, or with a potatoe-masher, till it is all smooth and of an even con- sistence throughout. Then measure it; and to every quart of the pulp allow a pound and a half, or three large closely-packed pints of the best brown sugar. Stir the sugar and pulp well together, till it becomes a thick jam. Put the jam into a clean preserving-kettle, and boil it ‘+ slowly an hour or more, skimming it well. When done, put it into broad flat stone jars, pressing it down, and smoothing the surface with the back of a large spoon. Cover the jars closely, and put them away in a cool dry place. If more convenient, you can put the jam inte tumblers, pasting thick white paper closely over each 176 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. [f properly made it will be so firm that youymay cut it down in slices like cheese. it: Plum jam may be made as above; but damsons are better for this purpose, and also for jelly, as the anes ‘18 much thicker and richer than that of plums. It is an old-fashioned error to use unripe fruit for. 3 any sort of sweet-meat. When the fruit is. thoroughly ripe it has moreflavour, is far more wholesome, and peers better. AN EXCELLENT WAY OF. PRESERVING STRAWBERRIES.—Select the largest and finest straw- berries. Having hulled them, or removed the green tops, weigh the strawberries; and allow to each pound a pound of the best double-refined loaf-sugar, finely powdered. Divide the sugar into two equal portions. Put a layer of strawberries into the bottom of a preserving-kettle, and cover them with a layer of sugar; then a layer of siraw- berries; then a layer of sugar; until half the sugar is in. Next set the kettle over a moderate fire, and let it boil slowly, till all the sugar is melted. Then put in, gra- dually, the remainder of the sugar; and after it is all in let it boil hard for five minutes, taking off the scum with a silver spoon; but there will be little or no scum if the sugar is of the very best quality. Afterwards remove the kettle from the fire, and take out the strawberries, one at a time, in a tea-spoon. Spread out the strawberries’on large flat dishes, so as not to touch each other, and set them immediately ina cold place or onice. Hang the kettle again on the fire and give the syrup one boil up; skimming it, if necessary. Place a fine strainer over the top of a mug or pitcher, and pour the syrup through it. Then put the strawberries into glass jars or tumblers; pour into each an equal portion of the syrup. Lay at the top a round piece of white paper dipped iu SWEETMEATS—STRAWBERRIES, PEACHES, ETC. 177 alin RTE a cation cnt 3 ny eRsON AMR i brandy. Close the jars tightly, and paste paper over them. Raspberries may be preserved as above. Also large ripe gooseberries. 'T’o each pound of gooseberries allow _a pound and a half of sugar. : Tan “Ee ke VERY FINE PRESERVED PEACHES.—Take fine ripe free-stone peaches; pare them; cut them in half and remove the stones. Have ready a sufficiency of the best double-refined loaf-sugar, finely powdered. Weigh the sugar and the peaches together, putting the sugar into one scale and the peaches into the other, and balancing them evenly. Put the peaches into a large pan or tureen, and strew among them one-half of the sugar. Cover them, and let them stand in a cool place till next morning. Then take all the juice from them, and put it into a porcelain preserving-kettle with the re- - mainder of the sugar. Set it over a moderate fire, and boil and skim it. When it is boiling well, and the scum has ceased to rise, put in the peaches and boil them till they are perfectly clear, but not till they break; carefully skimming them. Boil with them a handful of fresh clean peach-leaves tied ina bunch. When quite clear take the peaches out of the syrup, and put them on a flat © sloping dish to drain into a deep dish placed below it. Take this syrup that has drained from the peaches, put it to the syrup in the kettle, and give it one more boil up. Then throw away the leaves. Lay the peaches flat in small glass jars. Pour an equal portion of the hot syrup into each jar, and put on the top a table-spoonful of the best white brandy. ork the jars, and paste down paper closely over the mouth of each. —e— COMMON PEACH JAM.—Take good ripe free- stone peaches, pare them, and cut them into small pieces, 4 178 MISS LESLIn’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COQKING.~ seeing that none are blemished in the least. Cover “the bottom of a stone jar with a thick layer of ‘pow- dered sugar, (very good brown sugar will do when strict economy is expedient,) then ‘put ina layer of the cut peaches, (without any cooking;) then another of. sugar; then one of peaches, and so on till the jar is © filled ; packing the contents down as closely as possible. The top. layer must be of sugar, spread on thickly. Cover the jar immediately, and paste paper down closely -over the cover. This jam will be found very good for children; and for family use when fresh peaches are not to be had. It may be put into plain pies, or spread over the paste of arolled-up pudding. If the peaches are free from decay-spots, and the sugar in sufficient abundance, the jam will keep many months ; always mei the air from the jar. jee TO PRESERVE GREEN GAGES.—Take gages that are perfectly ripe. Weigh them; and to each pound of fruit allow a pound of the best double-refined loaf-sugar, broken up. Put a layer of grape-leaves in the-bottom and round the sides. of your preserving kettle. Then put in the gages, interspersing them thickly with vine-leaves, and covering them witha thick layer. Pour in just enough of water to keep them from burning. Set the kettle over the fire, cover it, and let it simmer slow.y till the gages are well greened. Then take them out, and spread them on a large dish to cool. Afterwards prick them in several places with a needle. Having washed the kettle clean, put the sugar into it with a very little water,—about half a pint to each pound of sugar. Set it over the fire, and boil and skim it till no more scum rises. Then put in the gages, and boil them half an hour. When done, and cold, put them into glass jars, and pour SWEETMEATS—-BRANDY PEACHES, ETC. 179 the syrup over cree Paste paper Osea down over the lids of tke jars. _——_+— FINE BRANDY PEACHES.—Take large ripe free-stone peaches: the white ones are best for this pur- pose. Having rubbed off the wool with a clean flannel, put the peaches. whole into boiling water, just to scald, but not to boil them. Having remained in about five minutes, take them out, and put them into cold water - for an hour or more. After which, drain them in a sieve, ~ and wipe them dry. While the peaches are cooling, prepare a syrup for them; allowing two pounds of the best double-refined loaf-sugar, and the white of two eggs, and a pint of water, to two dozen large peaches. Having broken up the sugar, put it into a preserving kettle. Beat the white of egg to a stiff froth, and stir it into the water. Then pour the water on the sugar, and let it dissolve before you set the kettle over the fire; stirring it severai times. Boil and skim it well. When it is nearly up to the. top, throw in a small tea-cup of cold water. When it rises again, take it off the fire, and let it stand close to it for a quarter of an hour; then skim it well, and pour it carefully into a pitcher, taking care not to disturb any sediment that may remain at the bottom of the preserving kettle. Put the peaches into wide-mouthed glass jars, and pour into every jar an equal portion of the syrup. Then fill up the jars with the best white brandy. Cork them tightly, and paste paper closely over the tops; or tie on each a piece of bladder, that has first been soaked to make it contract and fit the closer when dry. SRE Mesa Me EXCELLENT BRANDY PEACHES.—Take fine large free-stone peaches, quite ripe, but not too soft. Put them into a pan containing a weak solution of sal-eratus t 180 MISS LESf£IE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. and water; and let them lie in it till you find, upon trial, that the wool can be easily rubbed off with a coarse clean towel. Weigh them; and to each pound of peaches allow a pound of broken-up loaf-sugar,—the best double- refined. ‘Then crush the sugar by rolling it with a roll- ing-pin. Have ready some large glass jars, with lac- quered tin covers. Puta layer of sugar into the bottom of each jar; then a layer of peaches; then sugar; then peaches; and so on till the jar is very nearly full,—the upper layer being of sugar. ‘Then pour in some of the © best white brandy till the jars are filled quite to the top. Cover them closely, and set them intoa large flat-bottomed kettle of cold water. The water must be a little below the tops of the jars. Place the kettle over a moderate fire, and keep the peach-jars boiling in it half an hour after they have come toa boil. ‘Then set them mibsd in your sweetmeat closet. As the lids of glass jars seldom fit tightly, put be- neath each lid a round of thick, soft white paper, and cover the top of the outside with a piece of bladder tied down. vel gay BRANDY PEARS may be done as above. It ‘is customary to leave the stems on. Rub off, upon some lumps of the sugar before crushing it, the yellow rind of several fresh lemons, and squeeze the lemon-juice among the crushed sugar. Allow the rind and juice of one large lemon to a small jar of pears. In whatever way pears are cooked, they should always be flavoured with lemon; otherwise they will be insipidly sweet. — To colour them a fine red, tie up a little cochineal, or some well-picked alkanet, in a very thin muslin or bobbi- net bag, and boil it with the pears. When — take out the bag. PS Fag al a SWEETMEATS—BRANDY GREEN GAGES, ETC. 181 BRANDY PEACHES THE FRENCH WAY.— Put large white peaches (a few at a time) into scalding lye. Letthem rest fora minute or two, till the skin loosens so that it can be easily peeled off. Next put the peaches into cold water, and Jet them remain till you have hot water ready to scald them. After scalding, put into a large, broad preserving kettle as many peaches as will lie side by side in the bottom. Pour on as much cold water as will rather more than cover them ; set the kettle over a clear fire; and let them boil till they are soft enough to be easily dented when pressed by your finger. Take them out ; place them with the stem end downward, on an in- verted sieve set on a large dish. Then put some more peaches into the kettle; add more cold water; boil them ; and put them to drain afterwards. Repeat this till all your peaches have had a boil. Spread them on large dishes, and let them stand all night in a cold place. Mix together some of the best white brandy and the best loaf- sugar, powdered fine,—allowing a pound of sugar to every pint of brandy. Stir it well while the sugar is dissolving; and when melted, set it also in a cold place, and let it stand all night. In the morning, put the peaches into glass jars, which should be all of the same size, and fill them up with the brandy syrup; allowing an equal portion to each jar. Cover the jars closely, and paste white paper over their tops. Sie EAL 8 BRANDY GREEN GAGHS.—Take the largest and finest green gages, quite ripe. Prick every one with a needle in several places. Spread fresh grape-leaves over the bottom, and round the sides of a preserving kettle. Put in a layer of green gages and a layer of grape-vine leaves, alternately, adding to each layer a bit of alum but little larger than a grain of Indian corn. Cover the last layer of fruit thickly with vine-leaves ; fill up the kettle 16 182 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. with cold water, and place it over a moderate fire. Sim- mer the fruit slowly, but do not let it break. When the gages are hot all through, take them out, and throw them xuto cold water. Afterwards weigh them; and to every pound of fruit, allow a pound of the best double-refined loaf-sugar, powdered. Remove the vine-leaves from the preserving-kettle, and put into it the sugar, with barely sufficient water to keep it from burning. Stir the sugar well with the water till it is dissolved, adding to every three pounds the beaten white of an egg. Place the kettle over the fire, and boil and skim till very clear, and the scum ceases to rise. Then take it off, measure it, and to every pint of syrup allow a large half-pint of the best and clearest brandy. Mix the syrup and brandy together. Having well drained the green gages from the cold water, put them (two-thirds full) into glass jars. Fill the jars up to the top with the liquor, poured on warm. Cover them closely, pasting paper over the lids, and set them in a dry, cool closet. If the gages are not green enough with the first sim- mering, get fresh vine-leaves, and simmer them again very slowly, hanging the kettle high, Instead of vine-leaves, you may green any preserves by boiling them with layers of the green husks that sur- round the ears of young indian corn. —?o—_——_ BRANDY GRAPES.—For this purpose the grapes “should be in large close bunches, and quite ripe. . Remove “every grape that is the least shrivelled, or in any way defective. With a needle prick each grape in’ three places. Have ready a sufficiency of double-refined loaf- sugar, powdered and sifted. Put some of the sugar into the bottom of your jars. Then put in a bunch of grapes, and cover it thickly with sugar. Then anotherbunch ; then more’ sugar, and so on ull the jar is» nearly fall ; SWEETMEATS—ICED GRAPES, PRUNES, ETC. 183 finishing with a layer of sugar. Then fill up to the top with the best white brandy. Cover the jars as closely as possible, and set them away.. They must not go over ‘the fire. The grapes should be of the best quality, either white or purple. —_~—— ICED GRAPES.—Take large close bunches of fine ripe thin-skinned grapes, and remove any that are im- perfect. Tie a string in a loop to the top of the stem. Strain into a deep dish a sufficient quantity of white of egg. Dip the bunches of grapes into it, immersing them thoroughly. Then drain them, and roll'them about in a flat dish of finely-powdered loaf-sugar till they are com- pletely coated with it, using your fingers to spread the sugar into the hollows between the grapes. Hang up the bunches by the strings till the icing is entirely dry. They should be dried in a warm place. Send them to the supper-table at a party, on glass dishes. Ripe currants may be iced as above. Raspberries, strawberries, ripe gooseberries, plums and cherries, may be thus dipped in white of egg, and rolled in sugar. _ POE CRE. AMERICAN PRUNES.—Take the largest. and finest purple plums, (oval or long-shaped if you can get -them.) They must be quite ripe. Spread them sepa- rately on flat dishes, and set them in a large oven, directly after the bread, pies, &c., have been taken out. Let the plums stay in till the oven is cool; taking them out and turning them over two or three times. If you bake every day, put in the plums as before, till they are sufficiently dry. Otherwise; set the dishes in a balcony, or on the roof of an out-house, or in some place where they will be exposed to the hot sun. It will be well io s 184 MISS LESLIn’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. cover them with thin gauze, to keep off wasps, flies, &c Continue to set them every day in the sun till they are well dried, and look like prunes. Then pack them down in jars or boxes; laying orange or lemon-leaves among them. ‘TO STEW DRIED PEACHES.—Dried peaches can be used for no purpose without first being thoroughly stewed. They should be soaked for some hours before cooking. ‘Take a sufficient quantity, and put them over night into a pan, (having first picked out all that are defective,) and wash them well through two cold waters. Drain them, lay them in a clean pan, and fill it up with scalding water. Cover them closely, and let them stand all night. In the morning pour off the water, leaving just enough of it about the peaches to keep them from burning when stewed, and transfer them to a clean earthen pipkin or a sauce-pan. Set them oyer a mode- rate fire, or on a bed of hot coals, (renewing the live coals when necessary,) and let them stew till thoroughly done, - and quite soft,so that every piece can be mashed to a jam. While stewing, stir them up frequently from the bottom, mashing them with the back of the spoon against the sides of the pipkin. Keep them well covered, except when you are stirring. When quite done, transfer them to a deep dish, and mix with them, while they are smoking hot, a large portion of brown sugar, so as to make them very sweet. Set them away to cool. They will then be ready to use for pies, puddings, or as sauce to roast meat. packins BK.- DRIED APPLES should be soaked and stewed as above. They will be much improved” by stewing with 8 “SWEETMEATS—APPLES, PEACHES, ETC. 185 ee" them some thin slips of the yellow rind of lemon or orange ; or by the addition of a few cloves. Sugar should always be added after the fruit is done stewing. and while still hot. If put in at first, it renders. the fruit hard and tough; besides that much of the sweet- ness is wasted in evaporation. Parte nay PICKLED DAMSONS.—Take seven pounds of ripe damsons, and scald them to make the stones slip out easily ; having first removed all the stems. Then put the fruit into a large stone jar. Put into a porce- lain kettle, three pounds of the best brown sugar, with — a handful of broken up cinnamon tied in a muslin bag, and a quart of cider vinegar. Boil and skim the sugar and vinegar till no more scum rises. Then pour it hot over the damsons. Oover the jar, and let it stand all _ night. Next morning, boil the damsons slowly in the kettle with the liquid. . When it comes to a good boil, take it off, and transfer it to smaller pickle-jars, pasting strong paper round each cover. a MOCK APPLE PIH.—Take four large soda bis- cuits. Lay them in water to soak, till entirely dis- - solved. Then beat them-to a pulp, with the juice and grated rind of a large lemon, and three or four spoon- fuls of sugar; adding some nutmeg and rose-water. Wake a nice light paste; fill it with the mixture (either with or witnout a lid) and bake it. It will have a great resemblance to a real apple pie. It may be made at little cost by using vinegar for the acid, instead of lemon. ‘486 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. — BREAKFAST AND TEA CAKES. INDIANA BATTER CAKES.—Sift into a pan vhree large pints of yellow corn-meal; and add a large table-spoonful of fresh lard; or of nice drippings of roast beef, well cleared from fat. Add a small tea-spoonful of sal-eratus, or a large one of soda, dissolved in a little warm water. Next make the whole into a soft dough, with a pint of cold water. Afterwards thin it to the con- sistence of a moderate batter, by adding, gradually, not quite a pint and a half of warm water. When it is all mixed, continue to stir it well for half an hour. Have ready a griddle heated over the fire, and bake the batter in the manner of buckwheat-cakes; send them to table hot, and eat them with butter or molasses. These cakes are very light and good, and convenient to make; as they require neither eggs, milk, nor yeast. They may either be baked as soon as mixed, or they may stand for an hour or more. —+—- KENTUCKY BATTER CAKES.—Sift a quart of yellow indian meal into a large pan; mix with it two large table-spoonfuls of wheat flour, and a salt-spoonful of salt. Warm a pint and a half of rich er in a small sauce-pan, but do not let it come to a boil. When :t begins to simmer, take it off the fire, and put into it two pieces of fresh butter, each about the size of a hen’s egg. Stir the butter into the warm milk till it melts, and is well mixed. Then stir in the meal, gradually, and set the mixture to cool, Beat four eggs, very light, and add them, by degrees, to the mixture, stirring the whole very hard. If you find it too thin. add a little more corn-meal, » & BREAKFAST AND TEA CAKES. 187 Have ready a griddle heated over the fire and bake the batter on it, in the manner of buckwheat-cakes. Send them to table hot, and eat them with butter, to which you may add molasses or honey. a RYE BATTER-CAKES.—Beat two eggs very light. Mix them, gradually, with a quart of lukewarm milk, and sufficient rye-meal to make a batter about as thick as for buckwheat-cakes. Then stir in a large table- spoonful of the best brewer’s yeast; or twice that quan- tity, if the yeast is home-made. Cover it, and set it to rise in a warm place. If too thin, add more rye-meal. When quite light, and covered on the surface with bub- bles, bake it on a griddle, in the manner of buckwheat- cakes. Butter them, and eat them warm, at breakfast or tea. ? 7 If you cannot obtain good yeast, and wish to have the cakes ready with as much expedition as possible, you may use patent yeast-powders, according to the direc- tions that accompany them. In this case, the cakes must be baked in half an hour after the powders are mixed into the batter. "Yeast-powders, put in at the last, are an improvement to all sorts of batter-cakes that have been previously raised with good real yeast ; also to cakes made light by eggs. But to depend entirely on the powders, without either real yeast or eggs, is not well; as the cakes, though eatable, are generally too tough and leathery to be wholesome. It cities, fresh yeast, from the brewers, can be obtained every day, at a very trifling cost, during the brewing season ; which is usually from October till April. At other seasons, it can be procured from the bakers, or made at home; and should always be used in preference to depending solely on yeast-powders. Though they improve the lightness of batter, for which seth it 188 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. a real yeast or beaten eggs have already been used, they will not, of themselves alone, give it a wholesome degree of either lightness or crispness. ‘Too much dependence on yeast-powders is one reason that the buckwheat-cakes of the present day are so inferior to those of former times, when they were always made with real yeast. | Indian batter-cakes may be made as above. tales —_¢— ’ HARLEM CAKES.—Sift into a pan three pints o flour. Warm, in a sauce-pan, a pint of milk, and cut up in it half a pound of fresh butter, When the butter is soft enough to mix with the milk, stir them well together, and remove the sauce-pan from the fire. Beat three eggs, very light, and mix them with the milk and butter, after they have cooled. Then make a hole in the mid- dle of the flour, and pour in the mixture, and two large table-spoonfuls of strong fresh yeast. With a spoon, mix the flour into the liquid, till the whole is thoroughly in- corporated. Then cover the pan with a thick woollen cloth, and set it near the fire, to rise. It should be light: _in about five hours; perhaps sooner. When quite light, mix in a tea-spoonful of soda, dissolved in a very litjJe warm water; divide the dough into long oval cakes, or rolls; knead each separately. Sprinkle an iron baking- pan with flour; put in the cakes; cover the pan, and let it stand half an hour before baking. Bake the cakes in a moderate oven. Eat them fresh, with butter. They are excellent tea cakes. Of course, they must be mixed in the furenoon. | ee + : BREAD MUFFINS.—Take four thick slices of ba- ker’s bread, and cut off all the crust. Lay them in a. pan, and pour boiling water over them; but barely enough to soak them well. Cover the bread, and after it has stood an hour, drain off the water, and stir the soaked BREAKFAST AND TEA CAKES. 189 bread til it is a smooth mass.; then mix in two table- spoonfuls of sifted flour, and a half-pint of milk. Having beaten two eggs very light, stir them, gradually, into the mixture. Grease some muffin-rings; set them on a hot griddle, and pour into each a portion of the mixture. Bake them brown; send them to table hot; pull them open with your fingers, and spread on butter. They will be found an excellent sort of muffin; very Hight and nice. / —_#—. SWEET POTATOE PONE.—Stir together, till very hght and white, three quarters of a pound of fresh butter, and three quarters of a pound of powdered white sugar, adding two table-spoonfuls of ginger. Grate a pound and a half of sweet potatoe. “Beat eight eggs, very light, and stir them, gradually, into the butter and sugar, in turn with the grated sweet potatoe. Dissolve a tea- - spoonful of sal-eratus or soda, in a gill of sour milk, and stir it in at the last, beating the whole very hard. Butter the inside ofa tin pan. Put in the mixture, and bake it four hours, ormore. It should be eaten fresh. RICE BREAD.—To a pint of well-boiled rice, add half a pint of wheat-flour, mixing them well together. Take six eggs, and beat the whites and yolks separately. Having beaten the whites to a stiff froth, mix them, gra- dually, with a pint of rich milk, and two large table- spoonfuls of fresh butter, softened at the fire. Mix, by degrees, the yolks of the eggs with the rice and flour. Then add the white-of-egg mixture, a little at a time. Stir the whole very hard. Pat it into a buttered tin pan, with straight or upright sides. Set it ina moderate oven, and bake it an hour or more. Then turn it out of the pan, put it on a dish, and send it warm to the breakfast table, and eat it with butter. £. a y J a Me a 190 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. This cake may be baked, by setting the pan that con- tains it, into an iron dutch-oven, placed over hot coals Heat the lid of the oven on the inside, by standing it up, pefore the fire, while the rice-bread is preparing, and, after you put it on, keep the lid covered with hot coals. — Rice-bread may be made of ground rice-flour, instead of whole rice. ‘ ee » RICE-FLOUR BREAD.—Sift into a pan a pint and a half of rice-flour, and a pint and a half of fine wheat- flour. Add two large table-spoonfuls of fresh butter, or lard; and mix in a pint and ahalf of milk. Beat four eggs, very light, and then stir them, gradually, into the mixture. When the whole has been well-mixed, add, at the last, a small tea-spoonful of soda, or sal-eratus, dis solved in as much warm water as will cover it. Put the whole into a buttered tin pan; set it, immediately, into a quick oven, and bake it well. It is best when eaten - fresh. Slice and butter it. -— RICE-FLOUR BATTER-CAKES.—Melt a quarter of a pound of fresh butter, or lard, in a quart of milk; but | be caretul not to let it begin to boil. Divide the milk equally, by putting it into two pans. Beat three eggs, very light, and stir them into one half of the milk, with the addition of a large table-spoonful of wheat-flour. Stir in as much ground rice-flour as will make a thick batter. ~ Then put in a small tea-cupful of strong, fresh yeast, and thin the batter with the remainder of the milk. Cover it, and set it torise. When it has risen high, and is covered © with bubbles, bake it on a griddle, in the manner of buck- @Wwheat-cakes. Send them to table hot, and butter them. — Similar cakes may be made with indian-meal, instead of rice-flour BREAKFAST AND TEA CAKES. 1St LONG ROLLS.—Sift three quarts of flour into a large’ pan, and mix with it a tea-spoonful of salt. Warm half a pint of water, but do not let it become hot. Mix with it six table-spoonfuls of strong, fresh .yeast. Make a deep hole in the middle of the pan of flour. Pour in the liquid, and, with a spoon, work into it the flour, round the edge of the hole; proceeding gradually till you have all the flour mixed in, so as to form a batter. Stir it well, for two or three minutes. Then strew the top all over with a handful of dry flour. Cover the dough with a — thick, double cloth, and set it in a warm place, to rise. When it is quite lights and the surface cracked all over, mix in three table-spoonfuls (not more) of lard, or fresh butter. Knead it long and hard, and make it into long, oval-shaped rolls, making, with a knife, a cleft in the top of each. Sprinkle some square baking-pans with flour ; lay the rolls in them, at equal distances ; cover them, as before; and set them ina warm place, for half an hour. In the meantime, have the oven ready; put in the rolls, and bake them brown. Their lightness may be improved by mixing in (while kneading the dough, previous to forming it into cakes) a heaping tea-spoonful of soda, or sal-eratus, dissolved in as much warm water as will cover it. ~In cold weather, you may mix these rolls with milk, instead of water; but in summer the milk may turn sour, and spoil the dough. This, however, may be corrected, _by adding the soda, or sal-eratus; always a good remedy for sour dough or batter. ee POTATOE ROLLS.—Take fine large potatoes. Boil, peel, and mash them. Then rub the mashed potatoe through a sieve. ‘'T'o each potatoe allow a pint of sifted _ flour; a table-spoonful of strong fresh yeast; a jill of : milk-warm water; a salt-spoon of salt; the yolk of an egg; 192 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. and a bit of fresh butter about the size of a large hickory- nut. Mix together in a large broad pan the flour, the mashed potatoe, and the salt. Make a hole in the centre _ of the mixture, and pour into it the yeast mixed with the warm water. Sprinkle a little flour over the top, and mix in a little from round the sides of the hole. Cover it with a clean towel, and over that a flannel, and set it near the fire to rise. When the dough is quite light, and cracked all over the surface, knead in the butter and also the yolks of eggs, having previously beaten them welt, and add.a smal tea-spoonful of soda dissolved in a little warm water. ‘Then divide the dough into equal parts, make it into long-shaped rolls, and lay them im a tin or iron pan sprinkled with flour. Cover them, and again set them to rise in a warm place. When perfectly light, (which should be in about an hour,) set the pan into the oven, and bake the rolls brown. They are best when quite fresh. Pull them open with your che and eat them with butter. OHIO TEA CAKES.—Mix a quart and a pint of flour with two table-spoonfuls of lard, and a small level tea-spoonful of salt. Rub the lard into the flour, and make it, with milk, into a stiff dough. Lay the lump of dough on the pasteboard, and beat it on all sides with the rolling pin till smooth and light. Then rok: it out very thin. Cut it with the edge of a tumbler, mto round cakes, and bake it well : ok pels = CAKES, HOW TO BEAT EGGS, ETC. 193 CAKES, ETC. TO BEAT EGGS.—In making. pal it is of the utmost importance that the eggs should be properly and sufficiently beaten ; otherwise the cakes will. most. cer- tainly be deficient in the, peculiar lightness characterizing those that are made by good confectioners. Home-made cakes, if good in other respects, are too frequently (even when not absolutely heavy or streaked) hard, solid and tough. ‘This often proceeds from too Jarge a portion of flour, and-too small an allowance of butter and eggs. The _ richest cake that can be made (provided it is light and well baked) is less unwholesome than what are called plain cakes, if they are solid or leathery. Cakes cannot be crisp and light without a due proportion of the articles that-are to make them so; and even then, the ingredients must be thoroughly stirred or beaten; and of course thoroughly baked afterwards. nie 8 Persons who do not know the right way, pr much of the fatigue of beating eggs, and therefore leave off too soon. There will be.no fatigue, if they are beaten with the proper stroke, and with wooden rods, and in a shallow, flat-bottomed earthen pan. The coldness of a , tin pan retards the lightness of the eggs. For the same reason do not use a metal egg-beater. In beating them do not move your elbow, but keep it close to your side. Move only your hand at the wrist, and let the stroke be quick, short, and horizontal; putting the egg-beater al- ways down to the bottom of the pan, which should there- fore be shallow. Do not leave off as soon as you»have got the eggs into a foam; they are then only beginning to be light. But persist. till after the foaming has ceased, 17 194 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ——— and the bubbles have all disappeared. Continue till the surface is smooth as a mirror, and the beaten egg as thick as a rich boiled custard ; for till then it will not be really “9 light. It is seldom necessary to beat the whites and yolks separately, if they are afterwards to be put together. The article will be quite as light, when cooked, if the whites and yolks are beaten together, and there will then be no danger of their going in streaks when baked. The justly-celebrated Mrs. Goodfellow, of Philadelphia, al- ways taught her pupils to beat the whites and yolks together, even for sponge-cake ; evs lighter than sis no sponge-cake could possibly be. . When white of egg is to be used without any saalic (as for lady-cake, maccaroons, meringues, icing, &c.,) it stata be beaten till it stands alone on the rods; not fall- ing when held up. Hickory rods for egg: a chlivaten are to be had at the wooden-ware shops, or at the turner’s. For stirring but- ter and sugar together, nothing is equal to a wooden . spaddle. It should be about a foot long, and flattened at the end like that of a mush-stick, only broader. Spoons are very tedious and inconvenient either for beating eggs “or stirring butter and sugar, and do not produce the pro- per lightness. \ rs BOSTON CAKE.—Put a pound of powdered white sugar into a deep pan, and cut up in it a pound of fresh butter. Stir the butter and sugar together till perfectly light. Then add a powdered nutmeg, a table-spoonful of powdered mace and cinnamon mixed together, and a large wine-glass of excellent brandy. If the brandy is of bad quality it will give the cake a disagreeable taste. If very good, it will highly improve the flavour, and also add to the lightness of the cake. Sift intoa pan a pound of flour. In another pan beat six eggs till very thick and rd ~ ALBANY CAKE, BOSTON CAKE, ETC. 195 smooth. Stir them gradually into the butter and sugar, alternately with the flour, and a pint of rich milk or cream, a little of each at a time. Have ready a level tea-spoonful (not heaped) of pearlash, or sal-eratus, (or a full tea-spoonful of bi-carbonate of soda,) dissolved in as much warm water as will-cover it. Add this at the last, and then give the whole a very lard stirring. Butter a large square pan. Put in the mixture. Set it imme- diately into the oven, and bake itthoroughly. It requires very long baking. A thick square Boston cake will scarcely be done in less than three hours. At the end of the first hour, increase the heat of the oven, and also at the second. When cool, sift 2 eae sugar over it, and cut it into squares. If properly made,and well-baked, (following exactly the above directions,) this cake will be found excellent, and will seem fresh longer than any other; the milk keep- ing it soft. Milk turned sour is very good for Boston “ ; as by stirring the dissolved pearlash or soda into the milk, the acidity will be entirely removed, and the alkali ren- dered more effective in increasing the lightness of the ‘cake. Still great care will be necessary in baking it. The best confectioners make this cake every day with- out any failure. . ‘ Spee a f ALBANY CAKE.—Sift three pounds of flour into a pan. Stirtogether a pound of fresh butter, and a pound of brown sugar. Mix together a pint of West India mo- lasses, and half a pint of rich milk. Have ready a pound and a half of raisins, seeded, cut in two, and well dredged with flour to prevent their sinking. Beat five eggs very light, and mix them gradualhy with the milk and molasses, adding a glass of brandy, and a table-spoonful of cinnamon powdered. Add the mixture gradually to the beaten 196 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. butter and sugar, alternately with the flour, a little at a time of each. Next stir in a small teacup-full of strong fresh yeast. Then sprinkle in the raisins., Lastly, stir in a very small tea-spoonful of bi-carbonate of soda, or a still smaller portion of sal-eratus, dissolved in as much ‘ lukewarm water as will cover it. Stir the whole mixtt re long and hard. Cover it, and set it in a warm place to rise. When quite light, butter.a deep tin pan, put in the mixture, and bake it ina loaf. It will require very long and steady baking. . : Like all others that have yeast in them, this cake is best when fresh. —+— AUSTRIAN CAKE.—Take a thick straight-sided pound cake about the circumference of a large dinner, plate, and cut it horizontally into slices, the whole breadth’ of the cake, and rather more than half an inch thick. Spread each slice, thickly and smoothly, with marmalade of peach, raspberry, strawberry, or orange. _The mar- malade may be all the same, or of a different sort on each slice. Lay the slices, nicely, and evenly, one upon an- other, taking care that none of the marmalade oozes down from between the edges. Then make a thick icing of white of egg and powdered loaf-sugar, and flavour it with rose or orange-flower water. Heap a large portion of it on the centre of the cake, and with a broad knife (dipped frequently in cold water) spread it smoothly all over the top and sides. Then set it away to harden. You may ornament it by putting icing into a small syringe and pressing it out into the form of a centre-piece and border of flowers. ‘To do this requires practice, taste, and in- genuity. | When the cake is to be eaten, cut it down into trian- gular pieces; each including a portion of the different layers of marmalade. MADISON CAKE, AUSTRIAN CAKE, ETC. 197 Instead of marmalade you may use for this cake, fresh strawberries, mashed smoothly and sweetened with white sugar. : ——+— MADISON CAKE.—Pick clean two pounds of sul- tana raisins, (those that have no seeds,) and cut them in half. If you cannot procure the sultana; use the bloom _ or muscatel raisins, removing all the seeds. When the raisins are cut in two, dredge them thickly on all sides with flour, to prevent their sinking or clodding in the cake while baking. Sift into a pan a pound and three quarters (not more) of flour. Cut up a pound of fresh butter into a deep pan. Mix with it a pound of white lump-sugar finely powdered; and stir them together till they become a thick, white, cream. Have ready a tea- spoonful of powdered nutmeg, and a table-spoonful of powdered cinnamon, and mix these spices, gradually, with the butter and sugar. Beat fourteen eggs (not fewer) till very light and thick. Then stir them, gradually, into the beaten butter and sugar, alternately with the flour and a pint of rich milk, (sour milk will be best.) Add at the last a very small tea-spoonful of pearlash, or of bi- carbonate of soda, dissolved in a large wine-glass of brandy. Give the whole a hard stirring, and then put it immediately into a deep circular tin pan, the sides and bottom of which have been first well greased with fresh butter. Set it directly into a well-heated oven, and let it bake from five to six hours, according to its size. It re- quires long and steady baking. When cool, cover it (top and sides) with a thick icing, made‘in the usual way of | beaten white of egg and sugar, and flavoured with rose- water or lemon. : If the above directions are closely followed this will be found-a very fine cake, and it will keep soft and fresh a week if the air is carefully excluded from it. LF ie 198 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. It will be still better, if in addition to the two pounds of raisins, you mix in two pounds of Zante currants. picked, washed, dried before the fire, and then wel floured. Half a pound of citron cut into slips and floured may also be added. Mi yae pat SB STRAWBERRY CAKES.—Sift a small quart of flour into a pan, and cut up among it half a pound of the best fresh butter; or mix in a pint of butter if it is soft enough to measure in that manner. Rub with your hands the butter into the flour, till the whole is crumbled fine. Beat three eggs very light; and then mix with them three table-spoonfuls of powdered loaf-sugar. “Wet the flour and butter with the beaten egg and sugar, soas - to form a dough. | If you find it too stiff, add a very little cold water. Knead the dough till it quits your hands, and leaves them clean. Spread some flour.on your paste- board, and roll out the dough into a rather thick sheet. Cut it into round cakes with the edge of a tumbler, or something similar; dipping the cutter frequently into flour to prevent its sticking. Butter some large square iron pans or baking sheets. Lay the cakes in, not tco close to each other. Set them in a brisk oven, and bake them light brown. Have ready a sufficient quantity of ripe strawberries, mashed and made very sweet with powdered white sugar. Reserve some of ‘your finest strawberries whole. When the cakes are cool, split them, place them on flat dishes, and cover the bottom piece of each with-mashed strawberry, put on thickly. Then lay on the top pieces, pressing them down. Have ready some icing, and spread it thickly over the top and down the sides of each cake, so as to enclose both the ~ upper and lower pieces. Before the icing has quite dried, ornament the top of every cake with the whole PEACH CAKES, STRAWBERRY CAKES, ETC. 199 strawberries, a large one in the centre, and the smaller ones placed round in a close circle. These are delicious and beautiful cakes if properly ‘made. The strawberries, not being cooked, will retain all their natural flavour. Instead of strawberries you may use raspberries. The large white or buff-coloured raspberry is the finest, if to be eaten uncooked. —¢——. “ PEACH CAKES.—Pick clean and wash a quart of dried peaches, and let them stew all night in as much clear water as will cover them. In the morning, drain off most of the water, leaving only as much of it about the peaches as will suffice to prevent them from burn- ing after they are set over the fire. It will be best to have them soaked in the vessel in which you intend to stew them. Keep them covered while stewing, ex- cept when you take off the lid to stir them up from the bottom. When they are all quite soft, and can be mashed _ into a smooth jam or marmalade, mix in half a pound of -brown sugar, and set the peaches to cool. In the mean time, soften a quarter of a pound of the best fresh butter in half a pint of warm milk, heated on the stove, but not allowed to come toa simmer. Sift a pound of flour into a pan; pour in the warm milk and butter (first stirring them well together) and a wine-glass of strong, fresh yeast. *Mix the whole into a dough. Cover it, and set it In a warm place to rise. When quite light and cracked all over the surface, flour your paste-board, put the dough upon it; mix in a small tea-spoonful of sub-carbonate of ‘¢soda, and knead it well; set it again in a warm place for half an hour. Then divide the dough into equal portions, and make it up into round cakes about the size in circum ference of the top of a tumbler. Knead each cake. Then roll them out into a thin sheet. Have ready the peach jam, mashed very smooth, and with a portion of it 200 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ‘cover thickly ihe half of each cake. Fold over the other half, so as to enclose the-peach j jam in the form of a half moon. Bring the two edges closely together and crimp them neatly. Lay the cakes in buttered square. pans, and bake them brown. When done grate ‘sugar over the top. These cakes are nice for: children, being very light, if properly made and baked. They are by no means rich, and are good substitutes for tarts. Similar cakes may be made with stewed apple, flavoured with lemon ard sweetened. Or with rasp- wart or any Hu convenient fruit stewed toa jam. = _ SMALL LEMON CAKES.—Break up ogangpth of fine loaf-sugar, and on some of the lumps rub off all the — yellow rind of four lemons. Then. powder all the sugar. Beat to a stiff froth the whites of three eggs. “ Mix the _ sugar, gradually (a tea-spoonful at a time) with the beaten white of egg, so as to make a paste, stirring it very hard. Spread some white paper (cut exactly to fit) on the . bottom of a square shallow baking-pan. Place equal portions of the paste at regular distances on this paper, making them into round heaps, and smoothing fhe sur faces with the back of a spoon or a broad-bladed knife, dipped frequently in cold water. Put the cakes into a moderate oven and bake them a light brown. When cool take them off the paper. 4 You may make orange cakes in this manner. Strawberry cakes may be made as_above, mixing the Juice of ripe strawberries with the sugar. Raspberry takes also. —_—o— FINE HONEY CAKE.—Mix a quart of strained honey with half a pound of powdered white sugar, and half a pound of fresh butter, and the juice of two oranges or lemons. Warm these ingredients slightly, justenough % CHOCOLATE CAKES, LEMON PUFFS, ETC. 201 to soften the butter; Then stir the mixture very hard, adding a grated riutmeg. Mix in, gradually, two pounds (or less) of sifted flour.. Make it into a dough, just stiff enough to roll out easily. Beat it well all over witha rolling-pin. Then roll it out into a large sheet, half an inch thick; cut it into round cakes with the top of a tumbler, (dipped frequently in flour,) lay them in shallow tin pans, (slightly buttered,) and bake them well. * rica ee CHOCOLATE CAKE.—Scrape down three ounces of the best and purest chocolate, or prepared cocoa. Cut up, into a deep pan, three-quarters of a pound of fresh butter; add to it a pound of powdered loaf-sugar; and stir the butter and sugar together till very light and white. Have.ready fourteen ounces (two ounces less than a pound) of sifted flour; a powdered nutmeg; and: a tea-spoonful of powdered cinnamon—mixed together. Beat the whites of ten eggs till they stand alone; then the yolks till they are very thick and smooth, Then mix the yolks and whites gradually together, beating very hard when they are all mixed. Add the eggs, by degrees, to the beaten butter and sugar, in turn with the flour and the scraped chocolate,—a little at.a time of each; also . the spice. Stir the whole very hard. Put the mixture into a buttered tin pan with straight sides, and bake it at least four hours. If nothing is to be baked afterwards, let it remain in till the oven becomes cool. When cold, eer on f “ LEMON PUFFS.—Take a pound of the best loaf- sugar, and powder it. Grate upon lumps of the same sugar the yellow rind of four large ripe lemons; having first rolled each lemon under your hand, upon a table, to increase the juice. Then powder these pieces of sugar also, and add them to the rest. Strain the juice of the lemons over 902 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. the sugar, mixing it well in. Have ready in a ‘saucer some extra powdered sugar. Beat to a stiff froth the whites of four eggs, and then gradually and thoroughly beat into it the lemon and sugar, till the mixture is very thick and smooth. If too thin, add more sugar; if too thick, more beaten white of egg. ‘Take a sheet of nice white paper, and lay it smoothly in a square tin pan; having first cut it to fit exactly. Put on it, at equal dis- tances, a round spot of thinly-spread powdered loaf-sugar, about the size ofa half-dollar or a little larger. Upon each spot place with a spoon a pile of the mixture; smoothing it with a knife dipped in water, and making the surface even. Sift over each a little powdered sugar. Set the pan in a quick oven, and bake*the puffs of a light brown, A few minutes’ baking will suffice. They should rise ‘very hight When cool, loosen them carefully from the paper by inserting a broad knife beneath. Then spread “them out on a large flat dish, and keep them in adry, cool place till wanted. bi i Oe ORANGE PUFFS may be made in the same manner omitting the rind, and using the juice only of five oranges; unless they are all of a very large size, and then four may suffice. Very nice puffs can be made with the juice of strawberries, raspberries, currants, or cherries; mixed, as above, with beaten white of egg and sugar. —_~—: » ROSE MERINGUES.—Beat to a stiff froth the whites of six eggs, and then beat in by degrees, a spoonful at a time, a pound or more of finely-powdered loaf-sugar, till it is of the consistence of very thick icing or meringue. Have ready a sufficient quantity of freshly-gathered rose- buds, about half grown. Having removed the stalks and green leaves, take as many of the buds as will weigh three ounces. With a pair of sharp scissors clip or mince WHIPPED CREAM MERINGUES, ETC. 203 them as small as possible into the pan of meringue ; stir- ring them in with a spoon. Then stir the whole very hard. Have ready.some sheets of white paper, laid on baking tins. Drop the meringues on it, in heaps all of ; the same size, and not too close together. Smooth them with the back of a spoon or broad knife, dipped in cold water. Set them in a moderate cool oven, and bake them about twenty minutes. Take out one and try it, and if not thoroughly done, continue them longer in the oven. To heighten the red colour, add to the white of egg, before you beat it, a very little water, in which has been steeped a thin muslin bag of alkanet-root; or you may colour it with a little cochineal powder. Orange-blossom meringues may be made as above. ; os oro WHIPPED CREAM MERINGUES.—Take the whites of eight eggs, and beat them toa stiff froth, that will stand alone. ‘Then beat into them, gradually, a tea- spoonful at a time, two pounds or more of finely-powdered loaf-sugar; continuing to add sugar till the mixture is very thick, and finishing with a little lemon-juice or extract of rose. _ Have ready some sheets of white paper, laid ona _ baking-board, and with a spoon drop the mixture on it in ' Jong oval heaps, about fourinches inlength. Smooth and shape them with a broad-bladed knife, dipped occasion- ally i in cold water. The baking-board used for this pur- ‘pose should be an inch thick, and must have a slip of iron beneath each end to elevate it from the floor of the oven, so that it may not scorch, nor the bottoms of the merin- gues be baked too hard. ‘This baking-board must not be of pine wood, as a pine board will communicate a disa- greeable taste of turpentine. he oven must be moderate, Bake the meringues of a light brown. When done, take them off the paper by slipping a knife nicely beneath the 204 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. pottom of each. Then push back or scoop out carefully a portion of the inside of each meringue, taking care not to break them. Have ready some nice whipped cream, made in the following proportion :—Take a quarter of a pound of broken-up loaf-sugar, and on some of the lumps rub off the yellow rind of two large lemons. Powder the sugar, and then mix with it the juice of the lemons, and grate in some nutmeg. Mix the sugar with a half-pint | of sweet white wine. Put into a pan a pint of rich ‘cream, and whip it with rods or a wooden whisk, or mill it with a chocolate mill, till it is a stiff froth. Then mix in, gradually, the other ingredients ; continuing to whip it hard a while after they are all in. As you proceed, lay the froth on an inverted sieve, with a dish underneath to catch the droppings; which droppings must afterwards ‘be whipped, and added to the rest. Fill the inside of each meringue with a portion of the whipped cream. Then put two together, so as to form one long oval cake, joining them nicely, so as to unite the flat parts that were next the paper, leaving the inside filled with the whipped cream. Set them again in the oven for a few minutes. They must be done with great care and nicety, so as not to break. Each meringue should be about the usual length of a middle finger. In dropping them on the paper, take care to shape the oval ends handsomely and smoothly. They should look like very long kisses. - eae ‘ + CREAM TARTS.—Put into a tea-cup a large table- spoonful of arrow-root flour. Pour on it a very little cold milk. and mix’ it very smooth with a spoon; seeing that it is entirely free from lumps. Boil, in a sauce-pan, a quart of cream or rich unskimmed milk, with the yellow rind of a large lemon or orange, pared thin, or cut into slips; or use for flavouring a handful of bitter almonds or peach kernels, blanched and broken up; or, what is still s ; ICE-CREAM CAKES, CREAM TARTS, ETC. 205 eee, better, a vanilla bean. The milk must boil slowly (keep- ing it closely covered) till it is highly flavoured. Then strain out the lemon-peel or other flavouring, and set away the milk tocool. Beat the yolks of eight eggs till very thick and smooth, and stir them gradually into the milk, alter- nately with four heaped table-spoonfuls of powdered loaf- sugar. Add some grated nutmeg. Put the whole into a sauce-pan, and place it on hot coals or on the stove, and continue to stir it till it begins to boil. ‘Then remove it immediately, lest it should curdle, and keep stirring it till it begins to cool. Afterwards set it in a cold place. Sift into a pan a pound and a half of flour; mix in a quarter of a pound of white sugar; cut up in it half a pound of fresh butter, and rub it well into the flour and sugar. Beat two eggs very light, and with them wet the flour, &c., toa dough, adding a very small level tea-spoon- ful of soda, dissolved in a very little cold water. Mix the paste well till it becomes a lump of dough. Then beat it on all sides with the rolling-pin. . Transfer it to the _ paste-board, and roll it out thin. Divide it equally into square pieces. Put thickly on each piece a portion of the cream or custard mixture, and fold over it the four corners of the paste, so that they approach each other in the centre. Dredge each tart with powdered loaf-sugar. Set them into the oven, and let them bake of a light - brown. They are best when fresh, but not warm; and will be found delicious. The custard may be coloured green by boiling pista- chio nuts in the milk, with the flavouring. r —_+— ICE-CREAM CAKES.—Stir together, till very light, a quarter of a pound of powdered sugar and a quarter of a pound of fresh butter. Beat six eggs very light, and stir into them half a pint of rich milk. Add, gradually, the eggs and milk to the butter and sugar, alternately ‘ Is 206 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. with a half pound of sifted flour. Add a glass of sweet Wine, and some grated nutmeg. When all the ingre- - dients are mixed, stir the batter very hard. Then put it into small, deep pans, or cups, that have been well-but- tered, filling them about two-thirds with the batter. Set them, immediately, into a brisk oven, and bake them brown. When done, remove them from the cups, and place them, to cool, on an inverted sieve. When quite cold, make a slit or incision in the side of each cake. If very light, and properly baked, they will be hollow in the middle. Fill up this cavity with ice-cream, carefully put in with a spoon, and then close the slit, with your fingers, to prevent the cream running out. Spread them onalarge dish. Either send them to table immediately, before the ice-cream melts, or keep thems on ice till wanted. - a eet LEMON OR ORANGE KISSES.—Take three large, ripe lemons, or oranges, and rub off the yellow rind, upon some pieces belonging to a pound of fine loaf- sugar. Then powder all the pound of sugar, and squeeze among the sugar (through a strainer) the juice of the lemons or oranges; mixing it well in. Beat the whites of four eggs to a stiff froth, that will stand alone. Then beat in, very hard, the sugar, &c., a tea-spoonful at a time. Lay a sheet of white paper on a board. Drop the mixture on it, in oval piles, smoothing them with a broad-bladed knife, dipped frequently in cold wa- ter. Set them in a moderate oven, and when they are coloured a light brown, take them out, slip a knife care- fully under each, to remove them from the papers, and place two bottoms together, so as to give them the form ofan egg. If you use oranges, scoop out a small hollow in the bottom of each half-kiss 9s soon as they are baked, oo CHOCOLATE MACCAROONS, ORANGE KISSES, HTC. 207 and fill the cavity with orange-pulp, sweetened. Then join the two halves together. Instead of lemon or orange, they may be finely fla- ‘youred, by mixing with the powdered sugar a sufficient quantity of extract of vanilla. CHOCOLATE MACCAROONS.—Blanch half a pound of shelled sweet almonds, by scalding them with boiling water, till the skin peels off easily. Then throw ~ them into a bow! of cold water, and let them stand awhile. Take them out and wipe them, separately. Afterwards set them in a warm place, to dry thoroughly. Put them, one at-a time, into a marble mortar, and pound them toa smooth paste; moistening them, as you proceed, with a few drops of rose-water, to prevent their oiling. When you have pounded one or two, take them out of the mor- tar, with a tea-spoon, and put them into a deep plate, beside you, and continue removing the almonds to the plate, till they are all done. Scrape down, as fine as possible, half a pound of the best chocolate, or of Baker’s prepared cocoa, and mix st, thoroughly, with the pounded almonds. Then set the plate in acool place. Put the whites of eight eggs into a shallow pan, and beat them to a stiff froth, that will stand alone. Have ready-a pound and a half of finely-powdered loaf-sugar. Stir it, hard, into the beaten white-of-egs, a spoonful at a time. Then stir in, gradually, the mixture of almond and cho- colate ; and beat the whole very hard. Drop the mixture, in equal portions, upon thin white paper, laid on square tin pans, smoothing them, with a spoon, into round cakes, about the size of a half-dollar. Dredge the top of each, lightly, with powdered sugar. Set them into a quick oven, and bake them a light brown. When done, take them off the paper. For the first experiment, in making these maccaroons, 208 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. — —_— it may be well to try a smaller quantity. For instance, a quarter of a pound of shelled almonds; a quarter of a pound of chocolate; four eggs; and threes sana of a pound of sugar. LEMON MACCAROONS.—Take -four large ripe lemons, and rub off the yellow surface of the rind, upon a lump of sugar. Then powder that sugar, and add to it not quite a pound of loaf-sugar, already powdered. Break four eggs into a shallow pan, and beat. them till very thick and light.. Then add the juice of the lemons, squeezed through a strainer, and a tea-spoonful of pow- dered nutmeg and cinnamon, and stir in the sugar, a lit- tle at a time, alternately with three large heaped-up table-spoonfuls of sifted flour. A little more flour may, probably, be found necessary. Mix the whole, tho- roughly, so as to forma soft paste. Have ready some shallow, square baking-pans, or sheets of iron, the bottoms covered with white paper, laid smoothly in. Moisten your hands with water, and then take up portions of the mixture, and roll them into balls, about the size of a large plum, laying them, as you proceed, upon the paper, but rather more than an inch apart. Lastly, with the blade of a knife, dipped in water, smooth the surface of each. Set them into a moderate oven, and bake them brown. Try one, when you think they are done. If not suffi- ciently baked, let them remain longer in the oven. As soon as they are cold, loosen them from the paper, by slipping under them a broad-bladed knife. Orange mac- caroons may be made in this manner, using the grated — rind of two oranges only, but the juice of four. To make vanilla maccaroons, boil, in a covered vessel, a vanilla bean, with as much milk as will barely cover it. When the milk is strongly flavoured with the vanilla, strain it, . and, when cold, add it to the beaten egg. Then stir in, GROUND-NUT AND LEMON MACCAROONS, ETC. 209 gradually, the sugar, spice, and flour, and proceed as above. —#— GROUND-NUT MACCAROONS.—Take a suffi- ciency of ground-nuts, that have been roasted in an iron pot, over the fire; remove the shells; and weigh a pound of the nuts. Put them intoa pan of cold water, and wash - off the skins. Have ready some beaten white of egg. Pound the ground-nuts, (two or three at a time,) in a marble mortar, adding, frequently, a little cold water, to prevent their oiling. They must be pounded to a smooth, light paste; and, as you proceed, remove the paste to a saucer ora plate. Beat, to a stiff froth, the whites of four eggs, and then beat into it, gradually, a pound of powdered loaf-sugar, and a large tea-spoonful of powdered mace and nutmeg mixed. Then stir in, by degrees, the pounded ground-nuts, till the mixture be- comes very thick. Flour your hands, and roll, between them, portions of the mixture, forming each portion into a little ball. Lay sheets of white paper on flat baking- tins, and place on them the maccaroons, at equal dis- tances, flattening them all a little, so as to press down the balls into cakes. Then sift powdered sugar over each. Place them in a brisk oven, with more heat at the top than in the bottom. Bake them about ten minutes. Almond maccaroons may be made as above, mixing one-quarter of a pound of shelled bitter almonds with three-quarters of shelled sweet almonds. For almond maccaroons, instead of flouring your hands, you may dip’ them in cold water; and when the maccaroons are formed on the papers, go slightly over every one, with your fingers wet with cold water. Maccaroons may be made, also, of grated cocoa-nut mixed with beaten white of egg and-powdered sugar. 18* ~ 210 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. WEST INDIA COCOA-NUT CAKE.—Cut up and peel some pieces of a very ripe Cocoa-nut. Lay the pieces for awhile in cold water. ‘Then take them out; wipe them very dry ; and grate, very finely, as muchas, - when grated, will weigh half a pound. Powder halfa pound of the best loaf-sugar. Beat eight eggs, till very light, thick, and smooth. _ Then stir the grated cocoa-nut and the powdered sugar, alternately, into the pan of beaten egg, a little at a time of each; adding a handful of sifted flour, a powdered nutmeg, and a glass of sweet wine. Stir the whole very hard. Butter a square tin pan. Putin the mixture, set it immediately into a quick oven, and bake it well; seeing that the heat is avell kept up all the time. When cool, cut it into squares. Have ready a thick icing, made-of powdered sugar and white of egg, flavoured with rose-water, or extract of roses. Ice each square of the cake, all over the top and sides. You may bake it in a loaf, in a deep, circular pan, Ice the whole surface, and ornament it. ~ For a large cake, baked in a loaf, allowea pound of erated cocoa-nut; a pound of sugar; sixteen! € ; two handfuls of flour ; two nutmegs, and two glasses of wine. It will require very long baking. bis _ —~+— RICE-FLOUR POUND-CAKE.—Weigh a pound of broken up loaf-sugar of the best quality. Upon some of the largest lumps rub off the yellow rind of three large ripe lemons that have been previously rolled under your hand, on a table, to increase the juice. Then powder efinely all the pound of sugar. Cut up into a deep pana pound of the best fresh butter ; mix with it the powdered sugar, and stir them together, with a wooden spaddle, till perfectly light. Squeeze the juice of the lemons through a strainer into a bowl, mix with it half a grated nutmeg, and add it to the butter and sugar. Sift a pound ee a a a RICE SPUNGE AND POUND CAKES, ETC. 211 (or a quart) of rice-flour into a pan, and in another shallow pan beat twelve eggs till they are. smooth and thick. Then stir the beaten ege and the rice-flour, alternately, into the butter and sugar, a little at a time of each. Hav- ing stirred the whole long and hard, put the mixture into a buttered tin pan that has straight or upright sides; set it immediately into a well-heated oven, and bake it tho- roughly. It will require four or five. hours, in proportion to its thickness. When done, it will shrink a little from the sides of the pan; and a twig from a corn-broom, or a wooden skewer plunged down to the bottom of the cake, will come out dry and clean. When cool, ice it; adding a little rose-water or lemon-juice to the icing. Heap the icing first on the centre of the top, and then with a broad. bladed knife, (dipped occasionally into a bowl of cold wa- ter,) spread it evenly all over the surface of the cake. Instead of lemons, you may use for flavouring this cake, the yellow rind of ¢wo oranges grated on the sugar, and the juice of ¢hree mixed with the spice. Orange- rind being:stronger and more powerful in taste than that of lemon, a smaller quantity of it will suffice. You may bake the above mixture in little tins; like queen-cakes; taking care to grease them with fresh butter. ; This mixture will make a nice pudding; using only half a pound of rice-flour, but the above quantities of all the other ingredients. Bake it in china or handsome white-ware, as it must go to table in the dish it is - baked in. ———g—_ + RICE SPONGE-CAKE.—Put twelve eggs into a scale, and balance them in the other scale with their weight in broken loaf-sugar. Take out four of the eggs, remove the sugar, and balance the remaining eight eggs with an equal quantity of rice-flour. Rub off on some Pins - 912 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. lumps of the sugar, the yellow rind of three fine large ripe lemons. Then powder all the sugar. Break the egos, one at a time, into a saucer, and put all the whites into a pitcher, and all the yolks into a broad shallow earthen pan. _ Having poured the whites of egg from the pitcher through a strainer into a rather shallow pan, beat them till so stiff that they stand alone. Then add the powdered sugar, gradually, to the white of egg, and beat it in well. In the other pan, beat the yolks till very smooth and thick. Then mix them, gradually, a little at a time, with the white of egg and sugar. Lastly, stir in, by degrees, the rice-flour, adding it lightly, and stirring it slowly and gently round till the surface is covered with bubbles. Transfer it directly to a butter tin pan; set it immediately into a brisk oven; and bake it an hour and a half or more, according to its thickness. Ice it when cool; flavouring the icing with lemon or rose. This cake will be best the day it is baked. | _ In every sort of sponge-cake, Naples-biscuit, lady-fin- gers, and in all cakes made without butter, it is. important to know that though the egg and sugar is to ‘be beaten very hard, the flour, which must always go in at the - last, must be stirred in very slowly and lightly, holding the whisk or stirring-rods perpendicularly or upright in your hand ; and moving it gently round and round on the surface of the batter without allowing it to go down deeply. If the flour is stirred in hard and fast, the cake will certainly be tough, leathery, and unwholesome. Sponge-cake when cut should look coarse-grained and rough. ! res SWEET POTATOE CAKE,.—Half-boil some fine sweet potatoes; peel them; and when cold, grate as much as will weigh half a pound. If boiled long enough to become soft, they will render the cake heavy. Stir et ‘ > - CHOCOLATE PUFFS, CAKES, ETC. 213 together in a deep pan, half a pound of fresh butter, and half a pound of powdered loaf-sugar, till quite light and creamy. Then add a tea-spoonful of powdered mace, nutmeg, and cinnamon, all mixed together; and the juice and grated rind of two large lemons or oranges. Beat in a shallow pan six eggs till very smooth and thick; and stir them into the pan of butter and sugar in turn with the grated sweet-potatoe, a little of each at a time. Then stir. the whole very hard. Butter a deep tin pan with straight sides. Put in the mixture, and bake it well. If you want more cake than the above quantity,double the pro- portions of each ingredient; but bake the mixture in two pans, rather than in ‘one. Ice it when cold, adding a little lemon or orange-juice to the icing. In spreading the icing, begin by heaping it on the centre of the cake, and then gradually bringing it all over the top and sides, dipping the knife; frequently, into a bowl of cold water. SES wane CHOCOLATE PUFFS.—Beat very stiff the whites of two eggs, and then beat in, gradually, half a pound of powdered loaf-sugar.» Scrape down very fine, an ounce and a half of the best chocolate, (prepared cocoa is better still,) and dredge it with flour to. prevent its oiling ; mix. ing the flour well among it. Then add it, gradually, to the mixture of white of egg and sugar, and stir the whole very hard. Cover the bottom of a square tin pan with a sheet of fine white paper, cut to fit exactly. Place upon it thin spots of powdered _loaf-sugar about the size of a half-dollar. Pile a portion of the mixture on each spot, smoothing it with the back of a spoon ora broad knife, dipped in cold water. Sift white sugar over the top of each. Set the pan into a brisk oven, and bake them a few minutes. When cold, loosen them from the paper with a broad knife. Ps He: had y 4s ; ‘er ee 214 MISS LESTIR’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. COCOA-NUT PUFFS.—Break up a large ripe cocoa- nut. Pare the pieces, and lay them awhile in cold-water Then wipe them dry, and grate them as finely as pos- sible. Lay the grated cocoa-nut in well-formed heaps on. a large handsome dish. It will require no cooking. The heaps should be about the circumference of a dollar, and. must not touch each other. Flatten them down in the middle, so as to make a hollow in the centre of each heap; and upon this pile some very nice sweetmeat. . Make an excellent whipped cream, well sweetened and flavoured with lemon and wine, and beat it to a stiff froth. Pile some of this cream high upon each cake over the sweetméats. If on a supper-table you may arrange them in circles round a glass stand. ere goes 1 PALMER CAKES.—Sift a pound of flour into a pan, and rub into it half a pound of butter, and a quarter of a pound of powdered loaf-sugar. Add a tea-spoonful of mixed spice, powdered cinnamon, nutmeg, and mace. Wet the mixture with two well-beaten eggs; the juice of a large lemon or orange; and sufficient rose-water tc make it into a dough just stiff enough to roll out easily. Sprinkle a little flour on the paste-board; lay the’ jump .of dough upon it, roll it out rather thin, and cut it into round cakes with the edge of a tumbier dipped every time in flour to prevent stickiness. Lay the cakes in buttered square pans, Set them in a rather brisk oven, and bake them brown. nah —+— LIGHT SEED CAKE.—Sift into a pan a pound and a half of flour; cut up in it a pound of fresh butter, and rub it well into the flour with your hands. Mix in six table-spoonfuls of strong fresh yeast; add gradually as much warm milk as will make it a soft dough, and knead it well. Cover it with a double cloth and set it ina warm — a eS, CARRAWAY CAKE, WONDERS, ETC. 218 place to rise. When quite light, and cracked all over the surface, mix in, alternately, a quarter of a pound of powdered white sugar, and a quarter of a pound of carraway seeds, a little of each at a time. Knead the dough well a second time, adding a small tea-spoonful of soda dissolved in a very little warm water. Cover it and set it to rise again. It will probably require. now but half an hour. ‘Transfer it,to a circular tin pan, slightly buttered, and bake it in a loaf. It is best when eaten fresh, but not warm. It may be baked in a square pan, and cut into square pieces when cool. —+ a CARRAWAY CAKE.—Sift half a pound of rice flour into a dish. In a deep pan cut up half a pound of fresh butter, and mix with it half a pound of powdered loaf-sugar.. Having warmed them slightly, stir together the butter and sugar till very light and creamy. Break five eggs, and beat them in a shallow pan till thick and smooth. Then stir them, gradually, into the pan of beaten sugar and butter, alternately with the flour; a’ little of each ata time. Add, by degrees, a tea-spoonful of powdered cinnamon and nutmeg mixed; a wine-glass of rose water or of rose-brandy, and half an ounce or more of carraway seeds thrown in a few at a time, stirring hard all the while. Butter a square iron pan; put A , the mixture; set it in a rather brisk oven, and bake it well. When done, sift powdered sugar over it; and when cool, cut it into long squares. —+— WONDERS.—Cut up half a pound of fresh butter into a pound of sifted flour, and rub them well together with your hands. Mix in three-quarters of a pound of white sugar, and a large tea-spoonful of cinnamon. Add a glass of good white wine, and a glass of rose-water. Beat six eggs very light, and mix them gradually with oles e ” - 216 MISS LESLIN'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. . the above ingredients, so as to form a dough. If you find | the dough too soft, add by degrees a little. more. flour. Roll out the dough into a thick sheet, and cut it into long slips with a jagging-iron. Then form each strip into the | figure 8. Have ready over the fire a pot of boiling lard. Throw the cakes into it, a few at a time, and let them cook till they are well browned all over. Then take them out, with a perforated skimmer, draining back into the pot the lard that is about them.. As you take them out lay them on a flat dish, the bottom of which is strewed with powdered sugar. They will keep a week, but like most other cakes are best the day they are baked. SOFT CRULLERS.—Sift three quarters of a pound of flour, and powder half a pound of loaf-sugar. Heat a pint of water in a round-bottomed sauce-pan, and when quite warm, mix the flour with it gradually. Set half a . pound of fresh butter over the fire in a small vessel; and _when it begins to melt, stir it gradually into the flour and ‘water. Then add by degrees the powdered sugar, and half a grated nutmeg. ‘Take the sauce-pan off the fire, and beat the contents, with a wooden spaddle or spatula, till they are thoroughly mixed. Then beat six eggs very light, and stir them gradually into the mixture. Beat the whole very hard, till it becomes a thick batter. Flour a paste-board very well, and lay out the batter upon it in rings, (the best way is to pass it through a screw funnel.) Have ready, on the fire, a pot of boiling lard of the very best quality. Put in the crullers, removing them from the board by carefully taking them up, one at a time, ona broad-bladed knife. Boil but a few atatime. They must be of a fine brown. Lift them out ona perforated skimmer, draining the lard from them back into the pot. Lay them on a large dish, and sift powdered white sugar over them, Soft crullers cannot be made in warm weather, fa Re CROSS-BUNS, SOFT CRULLERS, ETC. 217 NOTIONS.—Put into a sauce-pan a pint of milk, and two table-spoonfuls of fresh butter. Set it over the fire, and when the butter begins to melt, stir it well through the milk. As soon as it comes to a boil, begin to stir in a pint of sifted flour, a little ata time; making the mix- ture very smooth, and pressing out all the lumps. Let it continue to boil five minutes after the flour is allin. Then pour it intoa deep pan, and set it to cool. In another pan beat six eggs very light. When it is nearly cool, stir the beaten ege into the mixture, a little at a time; stirring the whole very: hard, till it is as light as possible. Have ready, over the fire, a pot with a pound or more of fresh lard! melting in it. When the lard comes to a boil, take up portions of the batter in a large spoon, or a small ladle, and drop them into the boiling lard, so as to form separate balls. When they are well browned, take them out with a perforated skimmer, draining the lard from them back into the pot. Lay them on a flat dish, and when all are done, sift over them a mixture of pow- dered sugar and powdered cinnamon or nutmeg. 2 Bey should be eaten quite fresh. —— CROSS-BUNS.—Pick clean a pound and a half of Zante currants; wash, drain, and dry them; spreading them ona large flat dish, placed ina slanting position near the fire orin the sun. When they are perfectly dry, dredge them thickly with flour to prevent their sinking or clodding in the cakes. Sift into a deep pan two pounds of fine flour, and mix thoroughly with it a table-. spoonful of powdered cinnamon, (or of mixed nutmeg’ and cimnamon,) and half a pound of powdered white sugar. Cut up half a pound of the best fresh butter in half a pint of rich milk. Warm it till the butter is quite soft, but not till it melts. While warm, stir into the milk and butter two wine-glasses (or a jill) of strong fresh yeast. 19 ie 918 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. Make a hole in the centre of the pan of flour; pour in the mixed liquid; then, with a spoon or a broad knife, mix the flour gradually in; beginning round the edge of the hole. Proceed thus till you have the entire mass of ingredients thoroughly incorporated; stirring it hard as ~ you go on. Cover the pan with a clean flannel or a thick towel, and set it in a warm place near the fire to rise. When it has risen well, and the surface of the dough is cracked all over, mix in a small tea-spoonful of soda, dis- solved; flour your paste-board; divide the dough into equal portions, and mixing in the currants, knead it into round cakes about the size of a small saucer. Place them on a large flat dish, coverthem, and set them again in a warm place for about half an hour. Then butter some square - tin or iron baking-pans; transfer the buns to them; and brush each bun lightly over with a glazing of beaten white of eggs, sweetened with a little sugar. Then, with the back of a knife, mark each bun with a cross, deeply indented in the dough, and extending entirely from one edge to another. Let the oven be quite ready ; set in it the buns; and bake them of a deep brown co- iour. In England, and in other parts of Europe, it is customary to have hot cross-buns at breakfast on the morning of Good Friday. They are very a cakes at ny time; but are best when-fresh. gal TO ICE A LARGE CAKE.—I requires practice to ice cakes smoothly. It is a good rule to allow a large quarter of a pound of powdered loaf-sugar to the white of every egg. The whites of four eggs and a pound of | sugar will ice a large cake. Having strained the white of egg into a broad, shallow pan, beat it to a stiff froth with hickory rods ora large silver fork. It must be beaten till it stands alone. Have ready the powdered sugar in a bowl beside you; add it, gradually, to the beaten white | TO ICE LARGE CAKES, ETC. ~ 219 of ego, a tea-spoonful at a time, and beat it very hara Perhaps some additional sugar may be required to make the icing sufficiently thick. Flavour it by beating in at the last a few drops of oil of lemon, or a spoonful of fresh lemon or orange-juice, or a few drops of extract of vanilla, or extract of roses. Lemon-juice will make it more ad-. hesive, so that it will stick on better. Turn bottom-up- wards the empty pan in which the cake was baked, and place this pan on a large flat dish, or an old server. Dredge the cake all over with flour, to take off the greasi- ness of the outside, which greasiness may otherwise pre- vent the icing from sticking well. Then wipe off the flour with a clean towel. ‘Take up the icing with a spoon, and begin by heaping a large quantity of it on the middle of the top of the cake. Then, with a broad-bladed: Knife, spread it down evenly and smoothly, till the top and sides are all covered with it of an equal thickness. Have beside you a bow! of cold water, into which dip the knife-blade, occasionally, as you go on spreading and smoothing the icing. Put it into a warm place to harden. When nearly dry. have ready sufficient icing to ornament or flower the cake. This must be done by means of a small syringe. By working and moving this syringe skilfully, the icing will fall from it so as to form borders, beadings, wreaths, and centre-pieces, according to your taste. If you cannot procure a syringe, a substitute may be formed by rolling or folding a piece of thick, smooth writing paper into a conical or sugar-loaf form. At the large end of this cone leave paper enough to turn down _all round, so as to prevent the side opening, and the icing escaping. The pointed end must be neatly cut off with scissors, leaving a small round hole, through which the icing is to be pressed out when ornamenting the cake. The hole must be cut perfectly. even ; otherwise the icing will come out crooked and unmanageable. ‘These paper 220 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. cones, in skilful hands, may succeed tolerably ; but they must be continually. renewed, and are far less conve- nient than a syringe, which can be bought at a small cost, and is always ready for use. Where much icing is to be done, it is well to have a set of syringes with the points _ of different patterns. -To decorate cakes with ornamental icing, requires practice, skill, and taste. A person that has a good knowledge of drawing can generally do it very hand- somely. To colour it of a beautiful pink, tie up a little alkanet in a thin muslin bag, and let it infuse in the icing after it is made, squeezing the bag occasionally. When suf- ficiently coloured, take out the bag, and give the icing . a hard stirring or beating before you put it on. Cover the cake all over with the pink icing, and then have ready some white icing for the border and other ornaments,—to be put on with the syringe. Icing may be made stiffer and more adhesive by mix- ing with it, gradually, a small portion of dissolved gum tragacanth. This solution is prepared by melting gum tragacanth in boiling water, (if wanted for immediate use,) having first picked the gum quite clean. The pro- portion is half an ounce of the gum to half a pint of water. It is slow in dissolving. 'To keep it from spoiling, add to the gum (before the water) a few drops of strong oil of lemon, or gil of cinnamon. . So _FRENCH ICING FOR CAKES.—Dissolve some fine white gum arabic (finely powdered) in rose-water. The proportion should be, as much of the gum-arabic % powder as will lie on a ten-cent piece to a tea-spoonful of , rose-water. Beat some white of egg" to a stiff froth that will stand alone. Stir in, gradually, sufficient double- refined powdered loaf-sugar to make it very thick, (a * a ae ALMOND AND FRENCH ICING, ETC. 221 good proportion is four ounces of sugar to the white of one egg,) add to this quantity a tea-spoonful of the rose- water with the gum arabic dissolved in it, and beat the whole very hard. Instead of rose-water you may dis- solve the gum in fresh lemon-juice. Previous to icing the cake, dredge it with flour, and in a few minutes wipe it off with a clean towel. This, by removing the greasi- ness of the outside, will make the icing stick on the better. Heap the icing first on the middle of the top of the cake; then with a broad-bladed knife spread it evenly all over the surface. Dip the knife frequently in a bowl of cold water as you proceed, and smooth the icing well. If not thick enough, wait till it dries, and then add a second coat. « ae ALMOND ICING.—Take half a pound of shelled sweet almonds, and three ounces of shelled bitter almonds. Put them, a few at a time, into a large bowl, and pour on boiling water to loosen the skins. As you peel them, throw the almonds into a bowl of cold water. When they are all blanched, pound them ‘one at a time in a marble mortar, adding frequently a few drops of rose-water to prevent their oiling. They must be pounded to a smooth paste without the smallest particles of lumps. As you pound the almonds, remove this paste with a tea-spoon to a deep plate. Beat the whites of four eggs to a stiff froth. Then, gradually beat in a pound of the best double-refined sugar. Lastly, add, by degrees, the almond paste, a little at a time, and beat the’ whole very hard. If too thick, thin it with lemon-juice. : CS a APPLE CAKE.—Make a nice light paste with the proportion of three quarters of a pound of fresh butter to a pound and a quarter of sifted flour. Roll it out into a large round sheet. Have ready a sufficiency of fine juicy apples, pared, cored, and sliced thin; mixed with one or 19% 222 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. two sliced quinces; and half a pound, or more, of the best _-Taisins, seeded and cut in half. Make the mixture very sweet with brown sugar; and add some grated nutmeg ; and a wine-glass, or more, of rose-water}; or else the juice and grated yellow rind of one or two lemons. Mix~all thoroughly, and put it on the sheet of paste ; which must ‘then be closed over the heap of mixture so as to form a very ,arge dumpling. Put it into a small dutch-oven, and ‘set it over hot coals, having previously heated the oven-lid by standing it upright before the fire. Then lay on the lid, with hot coals spread over it. Have ready a sufficient quantity of butter, brown sugar, and powdered cinnamon, . _stirred together till very light. Spread a portion of it on the bottom of the oven. While the cake is baking¢re- move the oven-lid frequently, and baste the cake with this mixture, which will form a sort of thick brown crust, covering it all over. It should bake from two to three hours; or longer if it is lafge. When thoroughly done, turn it out ona dish. It should be eaten fresh, the ay it is baked; either warm or cold. This is a German cake, and will be found pis ‘wae —+— CINNAMON CAKES.—Make a ilen as aboual and roll it out thin into a square sheet. Have ready a mix- ture of brown sugar; fresh butter; and a large portion of ground cinnamon ; all stirred together till very light. Spread this mixture thickly over the sheet of paste ; then roll it up, as you would a rolled up marmalade pudding. After it is rolled up, cut it down into pieces or cakes of equal size, and press them rather flat. Have ready over the fire a skillet or frying-pan with plenty of fresh butter boiling hard. Put in some of the cakes and fry them brown. As fast as they are done, take them out-on a perforated skimmer; drain off the butter, and, lay them on a hot dish. Then put in more cakes, till all are fried. GINGER POUND GAKE, ETC. 223 They should be eaten warm, first sifting powdered white sugar over them. j These cakes, also, are German. They may be con- veniently prepared when you are making pies, as the ° same paste will do for both. —+-—— GINGER POUND CAKE.—Cut up in a pan three quarters of a pound of butter; mix with it a pint of West India molasses, and a tea-cup of brown sugar. If in winter, set it over the fire till the butter has become soft enough to mix easily with the molasses and sugar. Then take it off, and stir them well together. ‘Sift into a pan a pound of flour. In another pan, beat five egos very light. Add gradually the beaten eggs and the flour, to the mixture of butter, sugar, and molasses, with two large table-spoonfuls of ground ginger, and a heaped tea-spoon- ful of powdered cinnamon. ‘Then stir in a glass of brandy, and lastly a small tea-spoonful of sal-eratus or sub-carbonate of soda melted in a very little milk. Stir the whole very hard. ‘Transfer the mixture to a buttered tin-pan, and bake it in a moderate oven from two to three hours, in proportion to its thickness. This cake will be much improved by the addition of a pound of sultana or seedless raisins, well dredged with flour to prevent their sinking, and stirred in, gradually, at the last. , You may add also the yellow rind of a lemon or orange grated fine. : te Seana’ Meanie FLEMINGTON GINGERBREAD.—Stir together till quite light, a quarter of a pound of fresh butter, and a quarter of a pound of brown sugar. Then mix in half a pint of West India molasses. Sift rather less than a pint and a half of flour... Beat four eggs till very light: and stir them gradually into the mixture, alternately with 2 a 9224 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. the sifted flour. Add a heaping table-spoonful of ginger, and a tea-spoonful of powdered cinnamon. Stir all well. Dissolve a level tea-spoonful of soda or pearlash in as much warm water as will melt it; then stir it in at the Jast. Put the mixture into ‘a buttered tin-pan, (either square or round,) set it tmmediately into the oven, which must be brisk but not too hot; and bake it well. "When you think it done, probe it to the bottom with a knife or a broom-twig, stuck down into the centre; and do not take the cake from the oven unless the knife comes out clean and dry. It requires long baking. ; GINGER CRACKERS.—Mix together in a deep pan, a pint of West India molasses; half a pound of but- ter; and a quarter of a pound of brown sugar; two large table-spoonfuls of ginger; a tea-spoonful of powdered cinnamon; a small tea-spoonful of pearlash or soda, dis- solved in a little warm water; and sufficient sifted flour to make a dough jast stiff enough to roll out conveniently. Let the whole be well incorporated into a large lump. Knead it till it leaves your hands clean ; then beat it hard with a rolling-pin, which will make it crisp when baked. Divide the dough, and roll it out into sheets half an inch thick. Cut it into cakes with a tin cutter about the usual size of a cracker-biscuit, or with the edge of a tea- * sup dipped frequently into flour to prevent its sticking. Lay the cakes at regular distances in square pans slightly outtered. Set them directly into a moderately brisk oven, . and bake them well, first pricking them with a fork. Ginger crackers are excellent on a sea voyage. If made exactly as above they will keep many weeks. In greasing all cake-pans use only the best fresh butter» otherwise the outside of a thick cake will taste disagree- ably, and the whole of a thin cake will havel an en ie% sant flavour. GINGERBREADS, CAKES, ETC. 225 SEA-VOYAGE GINGERBREAD.—Sift two pounds of flour into a pan, and cut up in it a pound and a quarter of fresh butter; rub the butter well into the flour, and then mix in a pint of West India molasses and a pound of the best brown sugar. Beat eight eggs till very light. Stir into the beaten egg two glasses or a jill of brandy. Add also to the egg a teacup-full of ground ginger, anda table-spoonful of powdered cinnamon, with a tea-spoonful of soda melted in a little warm water. Wet the flour, &c., with this mixture till it becomes a soft dough. Sprinkle a little flour on your paste-board, and with a broad knife spread portions of the mixture thickly and smoothly upon it. The thickness must be equal all through; therefore spread it carefully and evenly, as the ~ dough will be too soft to roll out. Then with the edge of a tumbler dipped in flour, cut it out into round cakes. Have ready square pans, slightly buttered; lay the cakes in them sufficiently far apart to prevent their running into each other when baked. Se* the pans into a brisk oven, and bake the cakes well, .eeing that they do not burn. You may cut them out small with the lid of a cannister (or something similar) the usual size of gingerbread nuts. These cakes will keep during a long voyage, and are frequently carried to seas Many persons find highly- spiced gingerbread a preventive to sea-sickness. —_¢— SPICED GINGERBREAD.—Sift into a deep pan a pound and a half of flour, and cut up in it half a pound of the best fresh butter. Rub them together, with your hands, till thoroughly incorporated. Then add half a pound of brown sugar, crushed fine with the rolling-pin; a table-spoonful of mixed spice, consisting of equal quan tities of powdered cloves, mace, and cinnamon. Also, a table-spoonful of ground ginger, and two table-spoonfuls 226 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ef carraway seeds. Mix the whole together, and wet it with a pint of West India molasses. Dissolve: a small tea-spoonfal of pearlash or soda in a very? little wazm water. Mix it into the other ingredients. Spread some flour on your paste-board, take the dough out of the pan, flour your hands, and knead the dough till it ceases entirely to be sticky. Roll it outinto a very thick square sheet ; cut it into long straight slips; twist every two slips together, rounding off the ends nicely. Lay them (not too closely) in buttered square pans, and bake them well, As gingerbread burns easily, take care not to have the oven too hot. Instead of forming it intotwisted strips, you may cut the sheet of gingerbread-dough into round cakes with the edge of a tumbler, which, as you ponget must pee frequently dipped in flour. CARRAWAY GINGERBREAD.—Cut up: half a pound of fresh butter in a pint of West India molasses and warm them together slightly, till the butter is quite soft. Then stir them well, and add, gradually, a pound of good brown sugar, a table-spoonful of powdered cin- namon, and two heaped table-spoonfuls of ground ginger, or three, if the ginger is not very strong. Sift two pounds or two quarts of flour. Beat four eggs till very thick and light, and stir them, gradually, into the mixture, in turn with the flour, and five or six large table-spoon- fuls of carraway seeds, a little at a time. Dissolve a very small tea-spoonful of pearlash or soda in as much luke- warm water as will cover it. Then stir it in at the last. Stir all very hard. ‘Transfer it to a buttered tin pan with straight sides, and bake it in a loaf ina moderate oven. _ {t will require a great deal of baking. | MOLASSES GINGERBREAD.—Mix ‘together a quart of West India molasses, and a pint) of milk. Cut # ee a a, a D SUGAR AND MOLASSES CAKES, ETC. 227 up in them a pound of fresh butter. Set the pan on a stove, or in a warm place till the butter becomes soft enough to stir and mix well into the molasses and milk. They must be merely warmed but not made hot. Then stir ina small teacup of ginger, and a table-spoonful of powdered cinnamon. Add, gradually, a little at a time, three pounds of sifted flour. The whole should be a thick batter. Lastly, stir in a large tea-spoonful of soda, or a smaller one of pearlash or sal-eratus, dissolved in a very little lukewarm water. Bake the mixture either in little tins, or in a large loaf. If the latter, it will require very — long baking ; as long as a black-cake —_¢#—. MOLASSES CAKE.—Cut up a quarter of a pound of fresh butter into a pint of West India molasses. “Warm it just sufficiently to soften the butter, and make it mix easily. | Stir it well into the molasses, and add a table- spoonful of powdered cinnamon. Beat three eggs very light, and stir them, gradually, into the mixture, in turn with barely enough of sifted flour (not more than a pint and a half) to make it about as thick as pound-cake bat- ter. Add, at the last, a small or level tea-spoonful of pearlash, or a full one of soda, dissolved in a very little warm water. Butter some small tin cake-pans, or patty- _ pans, put in the mixture, and set them immediately into the oven, which must not be too hot, as all cakes made with molasses are peculiarly lable to scorch on the outside. | —_+—. SUGAR CAKE.—Sift two pounds of flour into a pan, and cut up in it a pound of fresh butter. Rub with your hands the butter into the flour till it is thoroughly mixed. Then rub in a pound of sugar, and a grated nutmeg Wet the whole with half a pint of rich milk (or a jill of rose-water, and a jill of milk) mixed with a 228 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. well-beaten ego. Add, at the last, a very small tea- spoonful of pearlash or soda, dissolved in a little vinegar or warm water. Roll out the dough thick, and beat it — well on both sides with the rolling-pin. Then roll it thin, and cut it into square cakes, notching the edges with a knife. Put them into a shallow pan slightly buttered, (taking care not to place them too near; lest they run into each other,) and bake them a light brown. You may mix into the dough two table-spoonfuls of carraway seeds. —_o+— MOLASSES BREAD CAKE.—On a bread-making day, when the wheat-bread has risen perfectly light and is cracked on the surface, take as much of the dough as will fill a quart bowl, and place it in a broad pan. Cut up a quarter of a pound of fresh butter, and set it over the fire to warin and soften, but do not let it melt to an oil. When quite soft, mix with it half a pint of West India molasses, a small table-spoonful of powdered cinna- mon, and the finely-grated yellow rind of a large orange or lemon; adding also the juice. Have ready three egos, well beaten; and add them gradually to the mix- ture. It must form a lump of soft dough; but not too thin to knead with your hands. Knead it well on the -paste-board for a quarter of an hour. Butter some tin pans; put an equal portion of the dough into each; “cover them; and set them in a warm but not a hot place for a quarter of an hour before baking. Then bake the cakes well. Instead of small pans you may bake the whole of the dough in one large one. This cake should pe eaten the day it is baked; fresh but not warm. All sweet cakes in which yeast is an ingredient are best and most wholesome when fresh, as the next day they become _hard, dry, and comparatively heavy. BREAD MUFFINS, TO FRESHEN CAKES, ETC. % 7 BREAD MUFFINS.—Take some bread dough that has risen as light as possible, and knead into it some well- beaten egg in the proportion of two eggs to about a pound of dough. Then mix in a tea-spoonful of soda that has been dissolved in a very little lukewarm water. Let the dough stand in a warm place for a quarter of an hour. Then bake it in muffin-rings. You can thus, with verv little trouble, have muffins for tea whenever you bake bread in the afternoon. | Seek TO FRESHEN CAKES.—Cakes when stale may be much improved, if about an hour before they are wanted for tea, you enclose them in a circular wooden box with a tight-fitting lid, and place it on the marble hearth before a good coal fire; but not so close as to be in danger of scorching the box, which must be turned round, occasionally, so as to receive the heat equally on all sides. A tin or stone-ware box will not answer at all for this purpose, being too cold. If you burn wood-fires, set the box with the cake into a plate-warmer, or place it on a tall skillet, so as to be out of the way of coals or ashes falling on it, should the sticks break on the fire. RICE MUFFINS.—Pick and wash a pint of rice, and boil it till it becomes an undistinguishable mass, the grains being no longer perceptible. Set it out to cool. Thin it by mixing with it two quarts of milk. Beat in a shallow pan four eggs, till very thick and light, and then stir them gradually into the rice and milk. Then give the whole a hard stirring. Butter some muffin-rings. Fill them with the mixture, and bake it. Split and butter the muffins while warm. 920 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. nt DOMESTIC LIQUORS, ETC. GOOSEBERRY CHAMPAGNE.—Take large, fine gooseberries, that are full-grown, but not yet beginning to turn red; and pick off their tops and tails. Then weigh the fruit, and allow a gallon of clear, soft water to every three pounds of gooseberries. Put them into a large, clean tub; pour on a little of the water; pound and mash them, thoroughly, with a wooden beetle; add the remainder of the water, and give the whole a hard stirring. Cover the tub with a cloth, and let it stand four days; stirring it frequently and thoroughly, to the bot- tom. Then strain the liquid, through a coarse linen cloth, into another vessel; and to each gallon of liquid add four pounds of fine loaf-sugar; and to every five gallons a quart of the best and clearest French brandy. Mix the whole well together; and put it into a clean cask, that will just hold it, as it should be filled full. Place the cask on its side, in a cool, dry part of the cel- lar; and lay the bung loosely on the top. “Secure the cask firmly in its place, so that it cannot, by any chance, be shaken or moved ; as the least disturbance will injure the wine. Let it work for a fortnight, or more; till the fermentation is quite over, and the hissing has ceased. Then bottle it; driving in the corks tightly. Lay the bottles on their sides. In six months, it will be fit for drinking, and will be found as brisk as real champagne. GREEN CURRANT WINE.—The currants must be full-grown, but not yet beginning to redden. Strip them from the stems; weigh them; and to every three pounds allow a gallon of soft water. Mash them well, and | ‘PEACH WINES, DOMESTIC LIQUORS, ETC. 231 —EE proceed exactly as in the receipt for gooseberry cham- pagne; except that you may use the best light-coloured brown sugar, instead of loaf. Instead of bottling it, as soon as it has done fermenting, you may, whenever the hissing is over, put in the bung tightly ; and let the wine remain in the cask. . In six months, it will be fit for drinking. _ PEACH WINE.—Take eight pounds of ‘ripe, juicy, free-stone: peaches, of the best kind. Slice them into two gallons of soft water; and add five. pounds of loaf- sugar, broken small. Crack all the stones; extract the kernels; break them up; and lay them in the bottom of a clean tub. Put the peaches, with the dissolved sugar, into a kettle; and boil and skim it, until the scum ceases to rise. Then strain it, through a large sieve, into. the tub that has the kernels in the bottom. Stir all well together, and cover it closely till it grows quite cool. Then put in a large slice of toasted bread, covered all over with strong, fresh yeast. Leave it to ferment; and, when the fermentation is over, strain it into a keg, and add a bottle of muscadel or sweet malaga wine. Let it stand six months. ‘Then draw off a little in a glass, and, if it is not quite clear, take-out a pint of the wine; mix With it an ounce of powdered gum-arabic; dissolve it in a slow heat; and then add an ounce of powdered chalk. When they are dissolved, return the pint of wine to the keg, stirring it in, lightly, with a stick; but taking care not to let the stick go down to the bottom, lest it should disturb the lees, or sediment. Let it stand three days longer, and then bottle it. It will be fit for use in another six months. Apricot wine may be made in the same manner. —+— DOMESTIC: FRONTINIAC.—Put into a large kete tle, twelve pounds of broken-up loaf-sugar ; and.pour on a 932 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. it six gallons of clear, soft water, and let the sugar dis- solve. ‘Take seven pounds of the best raisins, and chop them small, having first removed the seeds. Mix the raisins with the dissolved sugar; set the kettle over the fire, and let it boil for an hour, skimming it well. Have ready half'a peck of full-blown elder-blossoms, gathered. just before they are ready to fall from the branches. Take the kettle from the fire; pour the liquor into a clean tub; and as soon as it has cooled, (so as to be merely lukewarm,) stir in the elder-flowers. Cover it closely. Next day, add six large table-spoonfuls of lemon-syrup, and four of strong, fresh yeast. After the wine has fermented two days, strain it into a clean cask ; and, after it has stood two months, bottle it. Next sum- mer, it will be in fine order for drinking, and will be found a delicious wine; very similar to the real Fron- tiniac. . + MORELLA WINE.—Take a sufficiency of. large, fine morella cherries. 'They must all be perfectly ripe, and free from blemish. Extract the stones; carefully saving all the juice. Return it to the cherries; put them into a clean tub; and let them stand, in a cold place, undisturbed, till next morning. Then mash and press them through a cullender, or sieve, or put them into a thin linen bag, and squeeze out all the juice; then measure it. ‘To every quart of juice, allow a large half-pound of fine loaf-sugar, and mix them well together, in a clean cask. Crack the stones; tie them up ina thin bag; and suspend the bag in the cask, in the midst ‘ot the liquor. Leave it to ferment ; and, when the fer- mentation ceases, stop it closely. Let it stand four months, leaving the bag of cherry-stones in the cask. Then bottle it, and in three months it will be fit to drink. a BLACKBERRY WINE, DOMESTIC TOKAY, ETC. 235 “DOMESTIC TOKAY.—Take fine grapes, that are all perfectly ripe; pick them carefully from the stalks, omitting all that are blemished; put them into a large hair sieve, placed over a large, deep pan, or a clean tub. Mash the grapes, with your hand, squeezing and press. ing out all the juice. To every quart of juice, allow a pound of sultana raisins, chopped small, or of bloom rai- sins, seeded and chopped. Let the grape-juice and raisins stand twelve days; stirring it twice or three times _ every day. Then strain the liquor into a cask; but do not stop it closely till after three days. Let it stand eight months; then bottle it. If it is not clear, take out a pint of the wine; mix with it half an ounce of isinglass, shaved fine, or an ounce of powdered gum-arabic. Set it in a warm place, and, when dissolved, add an ounce of fine chalk. ‘This will be sufficient to fine a barrel of wine. Stir it lightly into the rest. Let it stand three or four days, and then bottle it. ) e i BLACKBERRY WINE.—The blackberries must all be full ripe, and without blemish. Measure them; and to every quart of fruit allow a quart of clear, soft water. Boil the water by itself. Put the blackberries into a clean tub, and mash them with a wooden beetle, ora mallet. When the water has boiled, pour it-on the blackberries, and let it stand, till next morning, in a cool place, stirring it occasionally. ‘Then press out all the juice, measure it, and to every quart of liquid allow half a pound of sugar. Put the sugar into a cask, and strain the liquid upon it, through a linen bag. Stir it fre- quently, till the sugar is thoroughly dissolved. Let the cask remain unstopped, till the liquor has done working. Then add half an ounce of isinglass, or an ounce of gum- arabic, dissolved in a little hot water. You may substi- tute, for the isinglass, or gum-arabic, the beaten whites of 20* 234 MISS LESLIE’S NEW. RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. four eggs. ified it open till next asain Then bung it. It may be bottled in two months Lalas Raspberry wine may be made as above. ~.. Black currant wine, also. ROSOLIS.—Put four pounds of the best loaf-sugar into a large porcelain kettle ; and pour on it three quarts of water. When it has melted, set it over the fire, and boil and skim it, till the scum ceases to rise. Then add the whites of three eggs, whisked to a froth; and put in the shells also, broken small. Let it again come toa boil. Then take it off the fire; and, when it is only lukewarm, throw in a quart of fresh rose-leaves, stirring them. well through the liquid. Cover the vessel, and let it stand till next day, till the fragrance of the roses is extracted. Then remove the first rose-leaves, with a skimmer, and put into it a second, and, afterwards, a third supply. When the syrup has a fine rose-flavour, strain it through ~alinen bag. If not perfectly clear, filter it through blot- ting-paper, pinned inside the bottom of a sieve. Then add half a pint of spirits of wine, that has been coloured red, by infusing in it some. alkanet root, tied up in a thin muslin bag. Bottle the mixture; and it will be a deli- cate liqueur. Instead of rose-leaves, you may flavour it immediately, by stirring in a large portion of extract of © roses. : This liqueur can be made very conveniently, where there is a garden abounding in roses. HIPPOCRAS.—Put into a jar a quart of the best port wine. Beat, separately, in a mortar, a quarter of an ounce of cinnamon, two nutmegs, twelve blades of mace, and a tea-spoonful of coriander seeds. Then mix them all together; and put them into the wine... Add the yel- sow rind of four large lemons, pared thin, and their j juice, NECTAR, MINT JULEP, PERSICOT, HTC. 235 mixed with half a pound of powdered loaf-sugar. Cover the vessel closely, and let it infuse a week, or more. Then ‘strain the liquid through a linen bag, and bottle it. PERSICOT.—Blanch, in scalding water, a pound and a half of bitter almonds, and pound them in a mortar, till they are broken very small. Then put them into two quarts of the best French white brandy. Let them re- main twenty-four hours in the brandy; shaking the mixture frequently. Boil one quart of rich milk; and, when it has boiled, take it off the fire, and mix with it two pounds of white sugar-candy, pounded fine. Then mix the whole together, almonds, brandy, milk, and sugar-candy ; and let it stand for a week or two, or till very highly flavoured; shaking or stirring it fre- quently. Afterwards strain it through a linen bag, and bottle it. Drink it from small liqueur-glasses, with a bit of ice in each. ——_—_—_>— NECTAR.—Take a pound of the best raisins, seeded and chopped; four lemons, sliced thin, and the yellow rind pared off from two other Jemons ; and two pounds of pow- dered loaf-sugar. Put into a porcelain preserving-kettle two gallons of water. Set it over the fire, and boil it half an hour. Then, while the water is boiling hard, put in the raisins, lemons, and sugar; and continue the boiling for ten minutes. Pour the mixture into a vessel with a close cover, and let it stand four days; stirring it twice a-day. Then strain it through a linen bag, and bottle it. It will be fit for use in a fortnight. Drink it from wine: glasses, with a small bit of ice in each. i eee MINT JULEP.—Put into the bottom of a tumbler, about a dozen sprigs of young and tender mint. Upon them place a large tea-spoonful of fine white sugar; and, ‘236 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. then pour on peach-brandy; so as to reach nearly one- third the height of the tumbler. Fill up with ice, pounded fine; and lay on the top a thin slice of pine- apple, cut across into four pieces. As an ornament, stick into the centre a handsome cluster of mint-sprigs, so as to rise far above the edge of the tumbler. It will be the better for standing awhile, in a vessel of finely-broken ice. ee a eee VANILLA SYRUP.—Take six vanilla beans; split and cut them in pieces; scrape out the seeds, for when ‘loosened from the shells they will emit more flavour. Bruise and mash the shells; and then put them, with the seeds, into a quart of inodorous alcohol, which must not be of the strongest sort, or it will overpower the taste of the vanilla. Cork the bottle closely, and let it infuse three days. Then strain the liquid through a very fine strainer, and transfer it to a clean bottle, corking it well. Have ready half’a dozen pint-bottles of simple syrup, made in the proportion of half a pint of water to every pound of sugar, which must be the best double-refined, boiled half an hour, and then strained through linen. Into each bottle put sufficient of the vanilla infusion to flavour the syrup very highly; and keep the remaining vanilla (closely corked) for further use. Vanilla syrup is excellent for flavouring charlotte russe, custards, &c. Also to mix with soda-water. \ —_—p—-— ORANGE MILK.—Take two dozen large ripe oranges. Cut them in two; remove the seeds; and squeeze the juice into a very large and clean stone jar. Never use earthen-ware, to hold any thing acid, as the lead glazing may produce the most deleterious effects. LJ ~ ORANGE AND VANILLA SYRUP, ETC. 237 Have ready four pounds of the finest loaf-sugar, dissolved in a gallon of the best rum or brandy. Pour it into the jar that contains the orange-juice ; stir the mixture well; and add the yellow rind of the oranges, cut into little slips. Cover the jar, aid let it stand four days; stirring it fre- quently. Then take a gallon of new, unskimmed milk, (the morning’s milk of that day,) boil it, and, when it has come toa hard boil, pour it, hot, into the mixture. Cover it closely, and let-it stand till it gets quite cold. Then strain it into another vessel, through a linen jelly-bag. Bottle it immediately, and seal the corks. It improves by keeping, and will continue good for many years. To use it, mix a sufficient quantity, in a tumbler, with ivce-water ; or take it, undiluted, in a small cordial glass. —_+— ORANGE SYRUP.—Take large fine rip® oranges, with smooth thin rinds, and roll each orange under your hand upon the table to increase the juice. Set a very ‘clean sieve upon a large bowl, and cut the oranges over it; first halving them, and then notching each half to let out as much juice as possible when squeezing them. Press them with all your strength in a wooden squeezer, letting the juice drain through the sieve into the bowl. To each pint of juice allow a pound and a half (a quart and a pint) of the best double-refined loaf-sugar broken up. Put the sugar into a preserving-kettle; pour the juice upon it; cover it, and let it stand till all the sugar is quite soft, and can be easily mixed with the juice. Next set the kettle over a moderate fire that has no blaze or smoke, and boil it slowly; skimming it carefully till the scum ceases -to rise. Then take it off, remove the syrup from the kettle, and when it is milk-warm, put it into very clean bottles, (new ones will be best,) cork them tightly, and seal the corks.» Keep it ina dry, cool place. It is very fine for flavouring cakes, puddings, sweet » y = £38 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. sauces, &c. Or for mixing with ice-water as a pleasant beverage. Also for ice-cream or water-ice, when oranges are not to be had. Or for mixing with powdered sugar to male the confection called orange-drops. Some per- sons, to increase the strength of orange syrup, add the J ao rind of the oranges grated on lumps of the sugar. "Nis will do very well if the syrup is to be used up soon. Lut by long keeping, the peel will give it a very disa- greeable taste and odour, resembling turpentine; unfitting it for all purposes. Lemon syrup may be made as above. ‘To this the addition of the yellow rind of the lemons grated on sugar will be an improvement; as lemon rind never acquires a turpentine taste. IMITATION LEMON SYRUP.—Break up twelve pounds of the best double-refined loaf-sugar. Put it into a preserving-kettle, and pour on it a gallon of very clear soft water. When it has dissolved set it over a moderate — fire, and boil and skim it till the scum ceases to rise. Then take it off, and stir in immediately, while the syrup is hot, one large table-spoonful of the best oil of lemon, and a quarter of an ounce of tartaric acid. When cold, bottle the liquid, and cork it tightly. The bottles for this purpose should either be quite new, or such as have been used before for lemon syrup. Mixed with ice-water it is a wholesome and refreshing beverage, and if you stir into a half tumbler of the mixture a half tea-spoonful, or more, of carbonate of soda, it will foam up, and be just like the soda-water you buy in the shops at six cents per glass. The above is the lemon syrup generally used for this purpose by the ae and confectioners. ~~ ee CARBONATED SYRUP WATER.—Put into a tumbler lemon, raspberry, strawberry, pine-apple, or any _ RASPBERRY CORDIAL, SYRUP WATER, ETC. 23» Other acid syrup, sufficient in quantity to flavour the beverage very highly. Then pour in very cold ice-water till the glass is half full. Add half a tea-spoonful of bi- carbonate of soda, (to be obtained at the druggists’,) and stir it well in with a tea-spoon. It will foam up to'the top immediately, and must be drank during the efferves- cence. By keeping the syrup, and the carbonate of soda in the house, and mixing them as above with ice-water, you can at any time have a glass of this very pleasant drink ; precisely similar -to that which you get at the shops. ‘The cost will be infinitely less. ot ¥rINE RASPBERRY CORDIAL.—Fill a large stone jar with ripe raspberries. Cover the jar closely, and let it stand in acorner of the hearth near the fire, or on the top of a stove, till the fruit is heated so as to break. Then put the raspberries into a linen bag, and squeeze the juice into a pan beneath. Measure the juice, and to every quart allow a pound of loaf-sugar, breken very small. Do not use the white sugar that is solid ready-powdered ; it is generally so adulterated with. pulverized starch, as to be unfit for any thing that is to be set away for keeping. Put the juice and sugar (well mixed) into a preserving- kettle. Give ita boil, and skim it well. When it has come toa boil, and the scum has ceased to appear, take off the kettle ; measure the liquid; and pour it carefully into a large vessel; allowing an equal quantity of the best French brandy. Stir it well, and when cold, put it inte a ‘demijohn, or a large stone jug, and cork it tightly: Let it stand undisturbed a fortnight; then, if it is not per: fectly clear, filter it through blotting-paper pinned inside the bottom of a sieve. Bottle it, and seal the corks. In- stead of brandy, you may use the best Jamaica spirits. 240 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. Currant or cherry cordial may be made - the above. manner: first stoning all the cherries, which should be fully ripe, and of the largest and best kind ; either red or black, or a mixture of both. The flavour will be much. improved by cracking the stones, and putting them into, the demijohn before you pour on the liquid. ae Peach cordial, also, may be made as above. The peaches ‘should be fine, ripe, juicy free-stones; cut in pieces, and the stones removed. Afterwards, crack the stones, and put the kernels (broken up) into the bottom of the demijohn, to infuse with the liquid. Ser oar aa ; FINE RASPBERRY VINEGAR.—Put a sufficient quantity of ripe raspberries into a large wooden or stone vessel, and pour on as much of the best genuine white wine vinegar as will cover them well. Cover the vessel, and let it stand undisturbed during twenty-four hours ; or longer, if the juice is not entirely extracted ; when it is, the raspberries will look whitish and shrunk, You must, on no account, bruise or stir them. Then strain the whole liquid through a large hair sieve placed over a broad stone pan. Let the juice run through of itself, without any mashing or squeezing. The least pressing will cause the liquid, when finished, to look cloudy and dull. Haye. ready, in another vessel, the same quantity of fresh rasp- berries that you put in at first; and pour the strained liguid over them. Cover it, and let it again stand undis- > turbed for twenty-four hours or more. Then again pass. it through a sieve, without any squeezing. A third time pour the liquid over the>original quantity of fresh rasp- berries in another vessel, and let it stand untouched. during twenty-four hours. Afterwards measure “the liquid, and to every pint allow a pound of the best double- refined loaf-sugar, broken small. Put the whole into a large preserving-kettle, and boil and skim it about twenty . a, FRENCH RASPBBERRY VINEGAR, ETC. 241 minutes. Then pour it into a clean stone vessel, and set it to cool. Cover it, and let it stand all night. Next day, transfer it to bottles, which must be perfectly dry and clean. -Cork them closely, and seal the corks. — It will keep for years if made ae according to the above directions. ‘To use it as a beverage, put a large wine- be of the raspberry vinegar into a tumbler, and fill it up with ice- water. Mixed with hot water, and drank as warm as possible immediately on going to bed, it is an excellent palliative for a cold; and, by- producing a perspiration, will sometimes effect a cure. OBES ete SS FRENCH RASPBERRY VINEGAR.—Take a suf- ficiency of fine ripe raspberries. Put them into a deep pan, and mash them with a wooden beetle. Then pour them, with all their juice, into a large linen bag, and squeeze and press out the liquid into a vessel beneath. Measure it; and toeach quart of the raspberry-juice allow “a pound of powdered white sugar, and a pint of the best cider vinegar. First mix together the juice and the vinegar, and give them a boil in a preserving-kettle. When they have boiled well, add gradually the sugar, with a beaten white of egg to every two pounds; and boil and skim it till the scum ceases to rise. When done, put it into clean bottles, and cork them tightly. It is a _ very pleasant and cooling beverage in warm weather, and for invalids who are feverish. ‘'T'o use it, pour out halfa tumbler of raspberry vinegar, and fill it up with ice-water. It is a good palliative for a cold, mixed with hot water, and taken as hot as possible immediately on going to bed so as fo produce perspiration. —o— GOOD VINEGAR.—Take five gallons of soft, clear water, two.quarts of whisky, two quarts of the best West 21 242 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. India ‘molasses, and half a pint of the best fresh yeast. Lay a sheet of white foolscap paper at the bottom of a very clean keg,and pour in the mixture. Place it in the sun the first warm weather at the close of May, or begin- ning of June. In six weeks it will be fit for use. Put in the bung loosely, and do not stop 1t tight till the fer- mentation is over. If you make it in winter, keep it ina place where there is a stove or furnace. Much of the vinegar that is offered for sale is exces- sively and disagreeably sharp ; overpowering the taste of every thing with which it is combined. This vinegar is deleterious in its effects, and should never be used ; it is made entirely of drugs. Oysters and pickled vegetables have been entirely destroyed or eaten up by it in a few hours, so that nothing was left but a whitish liquid. To avoid all risk from the unwholesome vinegar offered for sale, families would do well to make their own. A keg of hard cider kept in a warm kitchen in winter, and ex- posed to the hot sun in summer, will become excellent vinegar. COMMON MOLASSES VINEGAR.—Mix together a gallon of West India molasses, and four gallons of luke- warm water. Pour it into a clean five-gallon cask, and lace it in the chimriey-corner; standing the cask on end, and leaving the bung out. 'T’o give it, occasionally, some additional heat, set the cask in the mouth of the oven on baking-days, after the bread is drawn, and let it remain while the oven continues warm. In three months it will be excellent and wholesome vinegar, at a very trifling cost,—only that of the gallon of molasses. Wheh the liquid is sufficiently acid, stop the bung-hole closely, and remove the cask to a cool place. In summer, you may make this vinegar by letting the cask stand three or four -APPLE-WATER, TOAST-WATER, ETC. 243 el months exposed to the hot sun; taking care to cover the bung-hole in damp or rainy weather. : — ~ APPLE-WATER.—Take three large, juicy pippin apples; pare, core, and cut them into very thin slices. Put, them into a pitcher, (the yellow rind of a lemon, pared thin, will be an improvement,) and pour on a pint of boiling water. Cover the pitcher closely, and let it stand four hours. Then pour the liquid into a glass, and sweeten it with loaf-sugar. This is a cooling drink in a fever. = TOAST-WATER.—Take thin slices of wheat breaa, and toast it very brown on both sides, but do not let it burn or blacken. Put the toast into a pitcher that has straining holes at the spout, and pour over it, from a tea- kettle, as much boiling water as you wish to make into drink. The water must be actually boiling at the time. Cover the pitcher, and let it stand till the water is cold. Then pour it off into a decanter. Made in this way, toast-water is very wholesome and refreshing, and is fre- quently drank at table by persons in health, as well as by invalids. AN EXCELLENT WAY OF MAKING COFFEE. —For this purpose you should have a percolator, or coffee-pot with strainers inside. The coffee will be much stronger and better, if roasted and ground just before it is put in the pot. There are no coffee-roasters so good as those of sheet-iron, made somewhat in the form of a large long candle-box; standing before the fire on feet; and turned round by a handle, so as to give all the coffee that is inside an equal chance of heat. When about half done, put among the coffee a piece of fresh butter It should be roasted evenly throughout, of a fine brown ~“ 244 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. colour, and not allowed to’blacken or burn. Grind it while warm; and put into the percolator a sufficient quantity of coffee, placing it between the two strainérs. Then (having stopped up the spout) pour into the upper strainer a due proportion of cold water; allowing a quart . of water to half a pint or more of ground coffee. Cold water is now found to make a stronger infusion than hot water, as there is less evaporation, and none of the strength of the coffee is carried off in steam. As soon as the water is all in, put on the lid closely, and set away the pot. It is well to put the coffee to infuse over night, if wanted for breakfast; and in the morning, if required for evening. But, when necessary, it may be done in a much shorter time. +—_* FINE MEAD.—Beat toa strong froth the whites of three eggs, and mix them with six gallons of water; six- teen quarts of strained honey; and the yellow rind of two dozen large lemons, pared very thin. Boil. all together, during three-quarters of an hour; skimming: it well. Then put it into a tub; and when lukewarm, add three table-spoonfuls of the best fresh yeast. Cover it and leave it to ferment. When it has done working transfer it to a barrel, with the lemon-peel in the bottom. Let it stand six months. Then bottle it, TO KEEP DOMESTIC LIQUORS, FRUITS, ETC. 247 TO KEEP CIDER SWEET.—When barreling the cider, put into each barrel or keg a jill (eight large table- ee spoonfuls) of white mustard-seed. ‘This will retard its becoming hard or sour. j eo TO MAKE BOTTLED CIDER VERY BRISK.— When you are bottling the cider, put a large raisin into the bottom of each bottle before you pour in the cider. Then cork it tightly. In bottling spruce or molasses beer put in also a raisin. a el ® TO KEEP ORANGES AND LEMONS.—Take a sufficiency of fine sand, and make it very dry by expos- ing it to the heat of the sun or the fire, stirring it fre- quently. Afterwards let it become quite cold, and then put a quantity of it in a close box or barrel. Bury your oranges (which must all be perfectly good) in this sand ; placing them so as not to touch each other, and with the stem-end downwards. At the top put a thick layer of sand quite two inches deep. Cover the box closely, and keep it in a cool place. : —_o—- TO KEEP GRAPES.—See that there are no imper- fect grapes on any of the bunches. ‘They must not be too ripe. Put in the bottom of a keg a layer of bran that has been dried in the sun, or in an oven, and afterwards become quite cold. Upon the bran, place a layer of grapes with bran between the bunches so that they may : ‘not touch each other. Proceed thus with alternate layers ae of bran and grapes till the keg is full; seeing that the last is a thick layer of bran. Then close the keg, nailing on the head so that no air can penetrate. Grapes may also be packed in fine wood-ashes that has been well sifted. ak _MISS. LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. TO KEEP APPLES. —Whipe every apple dry lsh a cloth, and see that no blemished ones_are left among them. Have ready a very.dry tight barrel, and cover the bottom with dry pebbles. These will attract the damp of the apples. Then put inthe fruit; head up the barrel; and plaster the seams with. mortar, taking care to have a thick rim. of mortar all round the top.. Let the barrel remain undisturbed in the same. place till you want the apples for use. Pippins, bell-flowers, or other apples of the best sorts, may be kept in this way till July. . - oh PEELE TO KEEP CARROTS, PARSNIPS, BEETS, AND SWEET POTATOES.—These should all be housed before the first frost. Range them side by side, a and bury them in dry sand; a bed of sand at the bottom $ another between each layer of the vegetables, and a ‘thick sand covering for the whole. When wanted for use, begin as one end, and draw them out in regular order, and not ow’ of the middle till you come to it. —— as A TO KEEP FRESH BUTTER FOR FRYING STEWING, &c.—Take several pounds of the very best fresh butter. Cut it up ina large tin sauce-pan, or in any clean cooking vessel lined with tin. Set it over the fire, and boil and,skim it during half an hour. Then “pour it off, carefully, through a funnel into a stone jar, and cover it closely with a bladder or leather tied down over the lid. ‘The butter having thus been separated from the salt and sediment, (which will be found remain- ing at the’ bottom of the boiling-vessel,) if kept closely covered and set in a cool place, will continue good fora. year, and be found excellent for frying, and stewing, and other culinary.purposes. Prepare it thus in May or June and you may use it in winter, if living in a place where TO MAKE BUTTER IN WINTER, ETC. . 249 fresh butter is not to be obtained in cold weather. Try it. | ; cise a AN EASY WAY OF MAKING BUTTER IN WINTER.—The following will be found an excellent method of making butter in cold weather for family use. We recommend its trial. ‘Take, in the morning, the un- — skimmed milk of the preceding evening, (after it has stood all night in a fim pan,) and set it over a furnace of hot coals, or in a stove; being careful not to disturb the cream that has risen to the surface. Let it remain over the fire till it simmers, and begins to bubble round the edges; but on no account let it come to a boil. Then take the pan carefully off, (without disturbing the cream) and carry jt to a cool place,.but not where it is cold enough to freeze. In the evening, take a spoon, and loosen the cream round the sides of the pan. If very rich it will be almost a solid cake. Slip off the sheet of eream into another and larger pan; letting as little milk go with it as possible. Cover it, and set it away. Re- . peat the process for several days, till you have thus col- lected a sufficiency of clotted cream to fill the pan. Then scald a wooden ladle, and beat the cream hard with it — during ten minutes. You will then have excellent but ter. Take it out of the pan; lay it on a flat dish; and with the ladle, squeeze and press it hard, till all the but- ter-milk is entirely extracted and drained off. Then wash the butter in cold watey, and work a very little salt into it. Set it away in a cool place for three hours. Then squeeze and press it again; also washing it a second time in cold water. Make it up into pats, and keep it in a cool place. The unskimmed morning’s milk, of course, may also be used for this purpose, after it has stood twelve hours. The simmering over the fire adds greatly to the quantity *, 250 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. of cream, by throwing all the oily part of the milk to the | surface; but if allowed to boil, this oleaginous matter will again descend, and mix with the rest, so as not to be separated. : This is the usual method of making winter Shite in the south of England; and it is very customary in ee British provinces of America. ‘Try it. ——e— COCHINEAL COLOURING.—Take an ounce of cochineal, and pound it to a fine powder. Put it into-an earthen or porcelain vessel, that is quite clean, and en- tirely free from grease. Add a small salt-spoonful of potash, or soda, and pour in a pint of clear, soft water. Set it over the fire; and, when it has come to a boil, add a quarter of an ounce of cream of tartar, with a quarter of an ounce of powdered alum; and let it boil ten minutes. Then, while it is boiling hot, stir in three ounces of pow- dered loaf-sugar. Bottle it, when cold, and keep it closely corked. ‘You can then have it always at hand, as a fine . red colouring for icings, blanc-mange, creams, jellies, and other sweetmeats. = SSS COLOURING FOR CHEESE.—An ounce of real Spanish arnotta will colour fifty pounds of cheese. Tie up the arnotta, in a thin linen rag, and put it, over-night, into half a pint of warm water. In the morning, put the arnotta-water into the tub of milk, along with the infusion of rennet, indispensable in nvaking cheese. Fora deeper tint, dip the bag into the milk, and squeeze it as long as any colour runs out. —+— ALKANET COLOURING.—Alkanet is now much used for giving a beautiful red colour to confectionary. *It is much cheaper than cochineal, and more easily pre- © pared. It has no peculiar taste, and no unwholesome / AOLORED WATER, COCHINEAL, ETc. © 251 eisai propemnes. You can purchase it at any druggist’s, and at a_trifling cost. It comes in Small, dark-red chips. Before using it, pick it clean, and see that there is none of the dust or powder remaining about it. Tie up some of the alkanet chips, in a bit of very thin, clean muslin, like a small bag, and let it infuse with the mixture you wish to colour. It either may, or may not be boiled. FINE RED OIL FOR LAMPS.—Infuse, for two or three hours, (or till the colour is well communicated,) a muslin bag of alkanet chips, in the clearest and best win- ter-strained lamp-oil. Then remove the bag of alkanet, (which may be used again for the same purpose,) and put the oil into clear glass lamps. It will be coloured of a beautiful red. According to the quantity of alkanet, or the length of time it remains steeping in the oil, you may have it of different tints, from light pink to deep crimson. Oil thus coloured is beautiful for illuminations; ball- rooms; or dispersed among the shrubbery, at a garden entertainment. The price of alkanet does not exceed six cents per ounce; and an ounce will doa great deal of colouring. a to COLOURED WATER.—Slice a fresh red cabbage, aud pour boiling water uponit. Cover it, and let it stand till cold. . Then strain off the water, and put a portion of the infusion into three glasses. Pour into one glass a little alum-water; into the second, a little dissolved pot- ash; and into the third, a few drops of muriatic acid. The liquid in the first glass will be turned of a purple colour, by the alum-water; that in the second will be changed toa green, by the solution of potash; and the — third will assume a fine crimson, from the muriatic acid, This water is used by druggists, for the coloured jars in ~ their shop-windows. 252 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING [ -" PERFUMERY, REMEDIES, ETC. th. MACASSAR OIL.—This popular and pleasant un- guent for the hair can (as we know) be prepared at home, so as to equal, in efficacy and appearance, any that is for sale in the shops; and at less than one-third the expense. Take half an ounce of chippings of alka- net root, which may be bought at a druggist’s, for a few cents. Divide this quantity into two portions, and having cleared away any dust that may be about the alkanet, Be * put each portion of the chips into a separate bit of new’ bobbinet, or very clear muslin. In tying it, use white ~ thread, or fine white cotton cord; as a coloured string may communicate a dirty tinge to the oil. Put these little bags into a large glass tumbler, or a straight-sided ‘white-ware jar, and pour onhalfa pint of the best genuine bear’s oil, Cover the vessel, and leave it. undisturbed, for several days, or a week; taking care not to shake or stir it; and do not press or squeeze the bags. Have ready some small, flat-bottomed phials, or one large one, that will hold half a pint. Take out carefully the bags of alkanet, and lay them on a saucer. You will find that they have coloured the oil a bright, beautiful crimson. _ The bags will serve a second time for the same purpose. Put into the bottom of each phial a small quantity of any pleasant perfume; such as oil of orange-flowers; jessa- mine; rose; carnation; bergamot ;. oil of rhodium; oil of ainbergris ; or oil of cloves, mixed with a little tincture of — musk. Then fill up each phial with the coloured oil, poured in through a small funnel; and, corking them tightly, tie a piece of white kid leather over the top. | To use macassar oil, (observing never to shake the PERFUMERY—ANTIQUE OIL, ETC. 253 botile,) pour a little into a saucer, and, with your finger, rub it through the roots of the hair. “——eer ANTIQUE OIL.—This is a fine oil for the hair:, Mix together, in a clean glass vessel, half a pint of oil of sweet almonds, and half a pint of the best olive oil. Then scent it with any sort of perfume. To give it the colour and odour of roses, infuse, in the mixed oil, a small, thin muslin bag of alkanet chips, and set it in a warm place, till coloured of a beautiful pink. Then remove the bag of alkanet, and perfume the oil with ottar of roses. Put it immediately into a bottle, and cork it well. . Meal For a violet perfume, infuse, in the above quantity of the mixed oils, an ounce of the best orris powder. Let it stand, in a warm place, fora week; then pour the whole into a strainer, press out the liquid, and bottle it. For an orange perfume, scent the oil with essence of neroli, or orange-flowers. | For jasmine, with extract of jasmine. For bergamot, with essence of bergamot. iii a OIL OF CASSIA.—Put into a wide-mouthed glass vessel, an ounce of ground cassia. Heat three ounces of the best oil of cloves; and, while warm, pour it on the cassia. Cover it closely, and let it stand a week. Then press it through a sieve, placed over a bowl. Transfer it to small bottles, and cork them closely. It isa fine perfume. ‘T’o weaken it, add a little inodorous alcohol, ‘which, on inquiring for, you can obtain at the druggists’. —¢—. MILLEFLEURS PERFUME.—Mix together an ounce of oil of lavender; an ounce of essence of lemon; an ounce and a quarter of oil of ambergris; and half an ounce of oil of carraway. Add half a pint of alcohol, or 22 254 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COQKING. spirits of wine, which should be of the inodorous sort. Shake all well together. Let it stand a week, closely corked, in a large bottle. You may then divide it in - small bottles. By mixing this perfume with equal quantities a ies oil, and oil of sweet almonds, instead of alcohol, you will have what is called millefleurs antique oil, which is used to improve the hair of young persons. - ae FRENCH HUNGARY WATER.—Take two large handfuls of the flowers and young leaves of rosemary ; with a handful of lavender-blossoms ; half a handful of thyiae-blossoms ; and half a handful of sage. Mix them well; put them into a large glass jar or bottle, and pour on a quart of inodorous spirits of wine. Then put in, as a coiouring, some small bits of alkanet tied in a thin mus- lin bag. Cork the bottle closely, and shake it about for awhile. Let it infuse during a month, exposed to the heat of thesun. ‘Then strain it, and transfer it to smaller bottles. ‘ —_+— FINE LAVENDER WATER.—Mix together, in a clean bottle, a pint of inodorous spirit of wine; an ounce of oil of lavender; a tea-spoonful of oil of bergamot ; and_ a table-spoonful of oil of ambergris. EE BERGAMOT WATER.—Melt a pound of the best broken-up loaf-sugar in a pint of water; add the yellow rind of six lemons or oranges, pared very thin. Set it over the fire, and boil and skim it till the scum ceases to rise. Then add the juice of the lemons or oranges; hav- ing squeezed it through a strainer into a bowl, After stirring in the juice, take the syrup from the fire, remove the pieces of rind, and stir in a tea-spoonful of genuine essence of bergamot. Bottle it, and it will be immediately _ ® PERFUMERY—SOAPS, REMEDIES, ETC. 255 * fit for drinking. Pour some of it into a glass, and add little ice-water. It will be found very fine. —_+—. TO PERFUME SOAP.—Take half a pound or more of the best white soap. Shave it down with a knife. Put the shavings into a clean white-ware jar; cover the top closely, and secure the cover by tying down a cloth over it. Set it intoa large kettle or sauce-pan of hot water. The water must not come up near the top of the jar. It is well to place a trivet in the bottom of the ket tle for the jar to stand on, so that a portion of the water may go under it. Place the kettle over the fire, or in a hot stove, and keep it boiling hard, till the soap in the jar within is thoroughly dissolved. It must become liquid all through, and have no lumps in it. Stir it well when done; and add, while warm, a sufficient portion of any nice perfume to scent it highly. For instance, oil of bit- ter almonds; extract of verbena; tincture of musk, or ambergris; oil of rhodium; oil of bergamot, lavender, jessamine, rose, cinnamon, cloves, &c. Having well stirred in the perfume, transfer the melted soap to galli- cups, or little square tin-pans, and set it away to cool and harden. Afterwards, take out the cakes of soap, and wrap each cake closely in soft paper. Put them away where the air cannot reach them. | ‘ aie Sas COLUMBIAN SOAP.—Blanch, in scalding water, two ounces of bitter almonds. Beat them in a mortar with an ounce of gum camphor, till completely mixed ; putting in, with every almond, a morsel of the camphor. - Then beat in an ounce and a quarter of tincture of benja. min, and remove the mixture to a bowl. Afterwards, having shaved down a pound of the best white soap, beat that aiso in the mortar; mixing with it, gradually, as you proceed, the above ingredients, till the whole is thoroughly Lee ? fo 256 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. incorporaied. Divide it into equal portions, and roll it with your hands into the form of balls. This soap will be found very fine. If you wish to have it in cakes, after you have shaved | ’ down the white soap, put it into a clean jar, cover it, and set the jar into a pot of boiling water, placed over the fire. When the soap is melted, remove it from the fire ; and when it begins to cool, (but is still liquid,) stir in the other ingredients that have been mixed together as above. Then mould it in little square tin pans, and set it to cool. When quite cold, take it out of the pan, and basa each cake in paper. aor GOOD TOOTH-POWDER.—Procure, at a druggist’s, half an ounce of powdered orris-root, half an ounce of . prepared chalk finely pulverized, and two or three small lumps of dutch pink. Let them all be mixed in a mortar, and pounded together. The dutch pink is to impart a pale reddish colour. Keep it in a close box. —__@——_ ANOTHER TOOTH-POWDER.—Mikx together, in a mortar, half an ounce of red Peruvian bark, finely pow- dered ; a quarter of an ounce of powdered myrrh; and a quarter of an ounce of prepared chalk. —=———s PARCHMENT GLUE.—Take half a pound of clean parchment cuttings, and boil it in three quarts of soft wa- ter till reduced to one pint. Then strain it from the dregs,. and boil it again, till of the consistence-of strong glue. _ ER eee LIP GLUE.—Take of isinglass and parchment glue, of each one ounce; sugar-candy and gum tragacanth, each two drachms. [Boil them in an ounce of water, tili the mixture is of the consistence of thick glue. When " » PERFUMERY—PERPETUAL PASTE, ETO.» 257 coid, roll it between your hands, till you get it into the form of small sticks, like sealing-wax. By wetting it with your tongue, and rubbing the mois- tened end of the stick on the edges of the paper that you wish to unite, it will, when dry, form a firm cement. A stick of lip-glue is very convenient to take with you when travelling, in case you should have occasion for some sort of paste. —_+— PERPETUAL PASTE.—Buy, at a druggist’s, an ounce of the best gum tragacanth, (the whitest is best,) and six cents’ worth of powdered corrosive sub- limate. Pick the gum tragacanth clean, and put it into a wide-mouthed glass or white-ware vessel, that will hold a quart. Add as much corrosive sublimate as will lie on a five-cent piece. Pour on a pint and a half of clear cold, soft water. Cover the vessel, and let it stand till next day. The gum tragacanth will then be much swelled, and nearly to the top of the vessel. Stir it down to the bottom with a stick, as the corrosive sublimate will blacken a metal spoon. Stir it several times during that day; but afterwards, do not.stir it at all; leaving it to form a smooth white mass, like a very thick jelly. Then cover it closely, and set it away for use; taking care to keep it out of the way of children, as the corrosive subli- mate will render it poisonous if swallowed. This paste will keep to an indefinite périod, if the air is carefully excluded from it, and if.it is not transferred to a vessel made of any sort of metal. It forms a strong, co- lourless, and firm cement for paper, &c.; and when once made, may be kept always at hand; and is most conveni- ent for all sorts of pasting; particularly little things, for which it would seem scarcely worth while to take the trouble of boiling flour-paste. It only spoils when kept in metal, or from long exjosure to the air. eh ney £58 MISS LESLI“’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. We can certify to its superiority over all other paste, — having the experience of using it continually. The ad- vantage of its being always ready is an important recom- mendation. ‘Try it, and you will be induced to keep it constantly in the house. GUM-ARABIC PASTE.—Take a common-sized tea-cup of cold, soft water, and dissolve in it a large tea- spoonful of the best and cleanest powdered gum-arabic. When the gum is entirely melted, stir in, by degrees, a table-spoonful of fine wheat flour; carefully pressing out — all the lumps, and making it as smooth as possible. ~ Keep it closely covered, and in a cool place. Tf, after a few days, it should appear spotted or mouldy on the top, remove the surface, and the paste beneath will still be fit for use. This is a good cement for artificial flowers, and for ornamental pasteboard work. rant —_+—— CEMENT FOR JARS AND BOTTLES.— 270 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. eS pest and most expeditious way of cleaning mirrors, or any plate-glass ; giving a clearness and polish, that cannot be so soon produced by any other process. The inside of window-panes may be cleaned in this manner; the win- dows having been first washed on the outside. Also, the glasses of spectacles, &c. The glass globe of a lamp may thus be cleaned with newspapers. ‘The efficacy is attributed to the materials ced in making the printing-ink. . ” é = TO REMOVE DARK STAINS FROM SILVER.— There are many substances that communicate a dark, inky stain to silver spoons, forks, &c.; a stain sometimes so inveterate as to resist all common applications. A ° certain remedy is, to pour a little sulphuric acid intoa saucer; wet with it a soft linen rag; and rub it on the blackened silver, till the stain disappears. Then brighten the article with whiting, finely powdered and sifted, and moistened with spirits of wine. When the+whiting has dried on, and rested a quarter of an hour, or more, wipe . it off with a silk handkerchief, and polish with a soft buckskin. oe TO CLEAN RINGS, BROOCHES, AND OTHER JEWELRY.—Put a little hartshorn into a saucer; dip into it a clean, soft rag, from an old cambric handkerchief. With the rag, go carefully over the jewelry, on both sides. Then dry and polish, with another bit of soft rag; and, finaily, with a soft piece of old silk. Precious stones, mosaics and cameos may be cleaned in thismanner. To brighten pearls, tear off a small bit of pin-paper, (such as rows of pins are stuck in,) roll it up, and, with the end of the roll, rub each pearl, separately; renewing the ~ paper frequently. ‘ The application of hartshorn, rubbed on with the finger al al REMEDIES—PLATE POWDER, ETC. 271 will generauy remove the stain-spots that are sometimes found: on new silk, and on new kid gloves. There are few stains, indeed, that may not be obliterated by harts- horn. If too strong, dilute it with a little water. Pour out, into your saucer, but very little hartshorn, at a time as it evaporates almost immediately. Reddish stains, on black silk, or worsted, can, sere éct always, be removed by hartshorn ; and the original black colour will immediately re-appear. Seer TO KEEP SILVER ALWAYS BRIGHT.—Silver, in constant use, should be washed every day ih a pan of suds made of good white soap and warm water; drying it with old soft linen cloths. Twice a week, (after this washing,) give it a thorough brightening with finely-pow- dered whiting, mixed to a thin paste with alcohol; rub- bing longer and harder where there are stains. Then wipe this off, and polish with clean soft old linen. Silver is cleaned in this manner at the best hotels. eee PLATE POWDER.—Buy, at a druggist’s, an ounce of levigated oxide of iron, and four ounces of prepared chalk, finely pulverized. Mix them well together, and put the mixture into small boxes. Rub it, dry, on the silver, and then polish with a clean buckskin; finishing with an old silk handkerchief. This is the composition usually sold as plate powder. Its colour is a reddish brown. - —+— POWDER FOR CLEANING GOLD LACE.—Of burnt roche-alum, powdered as fine as possible, take two ounces and a half. Mix, thoroughly, with it, half an ounce of finely-powdered chalk. Take a small, clean, dry brush ; dip it into the mixture, and rub it, carefully, 272 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. on gold lace, or gold embroidery, that has become tar- nished. Finish with a clean piece of new canton flannel Keep a box or bottle of this mixture, that it may be ready to use on occasion. It is equally good for silver lace, and for jewelry. 26s ‘TO KEEP BRITANNIA-METAL BRIGHT.—Dip a clean woollen cloth into the best and cleanest lamp oil, and rub it, hard, all over the outside of your Britannia- ware. Then wash it- well in strong soap-suds, and afterwards polish with finely-powdered whiting and a buckskin. The inside of Britannia vessels should be washed with warm water, in which a little pearlash has been dissolved. They should then be set, open, to dry in the sun and air. If not kept very nice, this metal will communicate a disagreeable taste. There is so much copper in its composition, that tea-pots or coffee-pots of china, or white-ware, are far preferable to Britannia-metal. TO CLEAN SILVER EXPEDITIOUSLY.—Put some powdered magnesia into a saucer. Have ready a few bits of new canton flannel. It is well, in cutting out canton flannel, to save the small shavings, or clippings, for this purpose. Dip a bit of the flannel into the magnesia, and with it rub the silver, very hard. It will brighten, immediately, if there are no black stains on it. Finish, by polishing with a clean piece of the flannel, without magnesia. : Dark stains on silver are best removed by rubbing them with flannel, dipped in sulphuric acid. This should be done before any brightening substance is applied. —+— PASTE FOR CLEANING KNIVES.—Make a mixture, one part emery, and three parts crocus martis, in very fine powder. Mix them toa thick paste, with a REMEDIES—CLEANING SILVER, ETC. 273 little lard or sweet oil, Have your knife-board covered with a thick buffleather. Spread this paste on your leather, to about the thickness of a quarter-dollar. Rub your knives in it, and it will make them much sharper and brighter, and will wear them out less, than the com- mon method of cleaning with brick-dust, on a bare board. - —+— A GOOD WAY OF CLEANING SILVER.—Mix in a cup or saucer a paste of powdered magnesia, and the best and clearest lamp oil, (whale oil,) and cover with this paste the silver that is to be cleaned. Let it rest a quarter of an hour or more; applying the paste to all the articles you intend cleaning before you begin to re- move it from any one of them. Afterwards wipe it off, entirely, with a soft linen rag, and then proceed to polish the plate with a soft buckskin, and some dry magnesia. Finish with a silk handkerchief. The longer you rub, the brighter will be the silver, but you must change fre- quently to clean parts of the buckskin. If the silver has much chasing or ornamental frost-work, it may be ne- cessary to take a small soft brush to clean out all the hol-. lows and crevices. But, if possible, avoid using a brush, as it wears the silver thin. Silver may be kept continually bright with very little trouble, by cleaning it three times a-week, or every day, with dry magnesia rubbed on with a bit of clean. shaggy canton flannel that has never been washed. Scraps and clippings of woollen flannel should never be used for cleaning plate, as its roughness may scratch it. Dark stains on silver or gold may be immediately removed (however bad) by the application of a little sul- phuric acid poured into'a saucer and rubbed on with a coft rag. Then polish with magnesia and canton flannel. The colour of silver will always be injured by keeping it in a room where there is a coal fire 274 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. The cases of gold or silver watches may be cleaned, as above, with powdered magnesia and canton flannel. 4 —— y TO TAKE WHITE MARKS FROM MAHOGA- NY.—If a white mark has been left on a mahogany table by carelessly setting down on it a vessel of hot water, rub the place hard with a rag dipped in lamp oil; and afterwards pour on a little cologne water, or a little alcohol, and rub it dry with a clean rag. The dish-marks left on a dining-table can of course be taken off in the same manner. If brandy is spilt on mahogany, and leaves a whitish mark, that mark can be removed by rubbing it hard with a rag dipped in more brandy. Try it. a —_*+— & TO TAKE SPERMACETI OUT OF A HEARTH OR FLOOR.—First scrape off the drops of spermaceti with a knife. Then take a live coal in the tongs and hold it carefully and closely over the place. Afterwards Wipe it with a rag, and then wash it with hot soap-suds. ——— TO REMOVE GREASE’ FROM A STOVE HEARTH.—When oil or any other grease has been dropped on a stove hearth, immediately cover the place with very hot ashes. Afterwhile, clear away the ashes; and if the grease has not quite disappeared, repeat the process. | bate | TO MAKE SHOES OR BOOTS WATER-PROOF. . —Melt together, in a pipkin, equal quantities of bees-wax and mutton suet. While liquid, rub it over the leather, including the soies. . P ao 5 TO EXTRACT OIL FROM THE FLOOR OR HEARTH.—Mix together two heaped teble-spoonfuls REMEDIES—REMOVING PAINT, GREASE, ETC. 275 o1 powdered fuller’s earth; one large table-spoonful of potash or pearlash; and one large table-spoonful of soft soap. Add sufficient boiling water to make it into a thick paste. Spread it hot on the oil spot, with a broad | flat stick; let it remain an hour or two. ‘Then brush it off, and renew the application. When the grease has disappeared, scrub the place with soap and water. This mixture is. equally good for boards, stone, or marble. OT iM TO TAKE OFF WALL PAPER.—To clear a wall from paper previous to painting or white-washing it, wet the old paper thoroughly with a lorig-handled brush dipped in a bucket of water, (warm water is best.) Let it rest till the water has penetrated it, and the paper blisters and loosens, so that you can ‘peel it off with your hands. Do not wet too much at a time. If any small bits are found still adhering, wet them afresh, and scrape them off with a strong knife. —+— TO REMOVE PAINT FROM THE WALL OF A ROOM.—If you intend papering a painted wall, you must first get off the paint, otherwise the paper will not stick, To do this mix in a bucket with warm water a ‘sufficient quantity of pearlash, or potash, so as to make a strong solution. Dip a brush into this, and with it scour off all the paint, finishing with cold water and a flannel. — DUSTING FURNITURE.—If a hand-brush is em- ployed for dusting furniture it should always be followed. by a cloth; and the cloth should be so used as to wipe up the dust; and not merely flirted about it, so as to drive the particles from one place to another. The cloth m wiping up the dust should hold it in, and then be shaken frequently out of a back window. A brush or a 276 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. bunch of feathers will keep the dust floating about the room; dislodging but not absorbing it; and only remoy- ing it from one article to settle it on another. Therefore a cloth is indispensable in really freeing the furniture from dust. A yard of sixpenny calico, or of strong unbleached muslin, will make two small dusters or one large one. They should. be hemmed or whipped over the edges, that servants may have no pretext for regard- ing them as mere rags, to be thrown away or torn up when dirty. It is difficult to dust well with a ragged dusting-cloth. e aR Seer TO TAKE FRUIT STAINS FROM WHITE DOILIES OR NAPKINS.—The use of coloured doilies for wiping the fingers after eating fruit being nearly ex- ploded, and small white napkins being now substituted. for that purpose, let them, as soon as taken from table, be thrown immediately into a large vessel of clean water. If hot water is at hand it will be better than cold. Leave them to soak during the remainder of the day. Then take them out, put them where they will dry; and you will generally find that the fruit stains have disappeared. If any remain, wet the stains with hot water, and then rub on some lemon-juice, or salt-of-lemon stain-powder ; washing it off as soon as it has removed the stain. Cream of tartar will sometimes produce this effect. It is scarcely _possible to get a stain out of any sort of linen after it has been previously washed with soap. = TO CLEAR CLOSETS FROM COCKROACHES, —Remove every article from the closet, scrub the shelves with lye, and then whitewash the closet walls. Next take a sufficiency of black wadding, and soak it in spirits of turpentine or camphor, or a mixture of both. Then with a fork or the point of a knife, stuff it close and hard = REMEDIES—DESTROYING ROACHES, ETC. 277 into every crevice, crack, and hole, however small. United with the copperas dye of the black wadding, the camphor and turpentine will destroy or expel the cock- roaches, so that for a long time you will see no more of them. If they return, repeat the remedy; which of course will be as effective if applied to. the crevices about the kitchen walls or floors. Let the closet remain empty for several days. ‘Then place on each shelf a small plate with dry chloride of lime to dissipate the smell of the turpentine. The preparation of phosphorus called Levy’s Exter- minator, and which is to be had at the druggists’, is very destructive to cockroaches, rats, and mice. Cover with it a slice of bread and butter, then sprinkle on some brown sugar, and lay it in places where these vermin have been seen. | A mixture in the proportion of three table-spoonfuls of meal, and one table-spoonful of red lead, wetted to a thin paste with West India molasses, if laid on old plates, and set about their haunts, is very efficacious in expelling cockroaches. These remedies are all good; and if used persever- ingly and always resumed, as soon as the cockroaches begin to appear again, there will be but little trouble with these detestable insects. Nothing has yet been found that can banish them froma house so effectually as to pre- clude all danger of their ever returning. But much comfort is gained by even a temporary relief from them. If an insect gets into the ear it may be destroyed by pouring in a little sweet oil. They have been sometimes enticed out, by applying to the ear a piece of ripe peach or apple. —_ % SMALL COCKROACHES.—Many houses are much infested with small brown cockroaches, which are 24 278 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. especially troublesome and disgusting from their dispo-« ~ sition to get into bureaus, wardrobes, trunks, and even band-boxes. They will soon depart, if bunches of penny- royal (as fresh as you can get it, and frequently renewed) are laid in all the places where they have appeared, or are likely to come. Pennyroyal is to be generally bought in market at the very trifling cost of one cent a bunch. At any season it can be had at the druggists’, and at the garden stores. Rags dipped in oil of pennyroyal, and laid about their haunts, will frequently expel these cock- roaches. But every one that is seen should be imme- diately killed, and not merely brushed off, to run to an- other place. There is little difficulty in keeping a house free from cockroaches and all other vermin, if the reme- dies are applied in time, and with perseverance. . The very bad practice of using old bricks for cellar- walls and back-buildings, is the chief cause of new houses becoming immediately infested with cockroaches, &c. They have in this way been introduced at once into some very elegant mansions in Philadelphia, where old bricks have been used for the cellars; these bricks having originally belonged to old almshouses, long ‘since pulled down. To buy such bricks, however cheap, is a mise- sable economy. Bee eed x TO DESTROY CRICKETS.—Mix some powdered arsenic with roasted apple, and put it into the cracks and holes whence the crickets issue. It will effectually de- stroy them. And cockroaches also. | —_+— TO EXPEL FLEAS.—Get some pennyroyal. Hav- ing stripped the leaves from the stalks, stuff them into little bags, made of muslin or thin calico, and sewed up ull round.: Lay these bags among the bedding, and the pennyroyal will send away the fleas. If more conve- 4 REMEDIES—TO DESTROY FLIES, BED-BUGS, ETO. 279 -nient, sprinkle the bedding with oil or essence of penny- royal. When travelling, it is well to take with you some little bags of pennyroyal, in case you should have to sleep in a bed infested with fleas. Camphor is also a good remedy against fleas. Pennyroyal will generally expel the small brown cockroaches, if bunches of it are kept constantly in the closets, wardrobes, bureaus, &c. It is likewise an excel- lent remedy against wood-ticks; keeping some of it about you, if obliged to go into places where these in- tolerable insects abound: When the wood-ticks fasten on the skin, brush them with a bunch of pennyroyal, and they will fall off immediately. ea TO DESTROY BED-BUGS.—Among the numerous ways of destroying bugs, there is none better than to wash carefully, with a solution of corrosive sublimate in spirits of wine, all the cracks and crevices of the bedstead, at least once a week; taking care to throw out directly whatever may remain in the bowl or saucer, which should at once be washed clean in hot water. Corrosive sublimate is a most deadly poison, if even:a small quan- tity is swallowed. One of the best remedies for it, is to take immediately a large quantity of sweet oil. Mercurial ointment, rubbed once a week into all the joints and crevices of the bedstead, is an excellent de- stroyer of bugs. It can best be rubbed in with the finger. Leave it on the bedstead without wiping off; and do not put on the bedding till evening. —_+— TO DESTROY FLIES.—Get, at a druggist’s, some Egyptian or Fly-killing paper. Lay a piece of it on an old plate, and keep it moist by wetting it frequently with ‘water. It will soon be found covered with dead flies. Shake them off, and wet the paper again. 980 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. Or mix together a table-spoonful of powdered black pepper, the same quantity of brown sugar, and as much milk as will make it intoa thin paste. Set it about on saucers. It will attract the flies, and they will die on eating it. —¢— TO DESTROY GARDEN ANTS.—Mix. together ‘half a pound of flour of brimstone, and four ounces of potash. Put them into an iron pot or pan, and stir it over the fire till they are dissolved, and well incorporated. Then pound them to a powder. Put the powder into a glass jar, with a cover, and keep it for use. Infuse some of this powder in a cup of water, and sprinkle with it the places that are infested by ants. They will soon dis- appear. ——o-—- TO EXPEL SMALL ANTS.—Mix a tea-spoonful of tartar emetic in two table-spoonfuls of molasses. Stir this into a small saucer of water, and set it where you have seen the ants. Let it remain all night; and in the morning you will find a great number of ants lying dead on the surface of the water, and the others will have been frightened away. Skim off the dead ants, and set the saucer in any other place where these insects have ap- peared. This we know, by experience, to be an excel Jent remedy for the little ants with which so many houses are infested, and which swarm over sweet things. SRR SE Fe ; MICE.—An excellent preparation for expelling mice and rats is Levy’s Exterminator, spread upon bread or cheese, and laid about the places they frequent. It isa preparation of phosphorus ; and after one mouse has eaten it and (of course) died, the others will disappear. It is to be had of most druggists; and will also destroy cock- roaches, by spreading it on bits of cake or something simi- REMEDIES—TO DHSTROY ALL WORMS, ETC. 281 Jar, and laying it at night on the kitchen hearth, and in the closets. We highly recommend it. If you propose to destroy a mouse by arsenic spread on bread and butter, sprinkle on the arsenic a drop or two of oil of rhodium, and the mouse will unfailingly be attracted to the poison. Place beside it a saucer of water, and as soon as he has eaten of the poisoned bread and butter, he will drink, and then die on the spot. . Oil of aniseed, spread on the bait, will attract them into a trap. | —_¢— TO DESTROY CATERPILLARS.—Mix together twelve ounces of powdered quick-lime, two ounces of snuff, two ounces of fine salt, and two ounces of powdered sulphur. Strew this mixture over the caterpillars, or dissolve it in five gallons of water; keep it in a conve- nient vessel, and sprinkle with it places where they abound. Any garden insects may be destroyed in this manner. —+— TO DESTROY WORMS IN GARDEN WALKS. —Pour into the worm-holes a strong lye, made of wood- ashes, lime, and water. Or, if more convenient, use, for this purpose, strong salt and water. es TO DESTROY THE BEE-MILLER.—This 1n- _sect, whose night-visits are so destructive to bees, may be destroyed by mixing a large wine-glass of vinegar with a pint of water, that has been made very sweet with honey. Set it in a bowl on the top of the hive, or beside it. It will attract the miller, and then drown him. TO MAKE THE HANDS SMOOTH AND SOFT —F or this purpose there is nothing nicer than the beau- tiful, fragrant, and delicate composition called Almond 24* 282 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. Cream, (Créme d’Amandes.) This almond cream (which must not be confounded with another preparation called Amandine) is, when fresh, very soft and white, and re- _ sembles ice-cream in appearance. ‘To use it—first dip your hands into a basin of water, and then put on one of the palms a very small portion of the almond cream, (not larger than a grain of indian corn,) and with the other hand rub it to a lather. Rub it well into your hand all over them before you wash it off.. We know, by ex- perience, that this is the best of all preparations for keep- ing the hands in nice order. If used every day, it will effectually prevent the skin from chapping in cold weather; and will remove any*roughness caused by inci- dental employments, or by putting the hands into salt water. We earnestly recommend it. Keep it closely covered. If you live where it can be, easily procured, do not get more than one gallicup at a time, as almond cream is always best when freshly made. Exposure to the air hardens and discolours it. Another very excellent. article for the hands is sand- soap, or sand wash-balls,—a preparation of soap mixed with fine sea-sand. There is nothing superior to it for washing the hands of boys, and of all persons whose business obliges them to use much manual exertion. Also, the hands of the most delicate lady will be ren- dered still softer and smoother by the daily use of sand- soap. ‘ry it—but not for the face or neck. : Sand-soap is made by shaving down and melting some. white soap, and then stirring into it, while warm, an equal quantity of fine dry sea-sand. Put it, warm, into square moulds, or roll portions of the mixture between your hands, so as to form balls. Set them in a dark place to dry gradually. | » REMEDIES—CURING CORNS, ETC. 283 ‘TO REMOVE CORNS FROM BETWEEN THE TOES.—These corns are generally more painful than any others, and are frequently situated as to be almost maccessible to the usual remedies. Wetting them several times a day with hartshorn will in most cases cure them. ‘Try it. ae TO ALLAY PAIN IN THE FEET WHEN CAUSED BY FATIGUE.—If your feet become pain- ful from walking or standing too long, put them as soon as you can into warm salt and water, mixed in the pro- portion of two large handfuls of salt to a gallon of water. Sea-water made warm is’ still better, if you can conve niently procure it. Keep your feet and ankles in the salt water till it begins to feel cool, rubbing them well with your hands. Then wipe them dry, and rub them long and hard with a coarse thick towel, or with a hair glove. Where the feet are tender and easily fatigued, it is an excellent practice to go through this process regu- larly every night, or every morning, or both; also em- ploying it without fail always on coming home from a walk. With perseverance this has cured neuralgia in the feet. | To prevent any roughness that may ensue after taking your hands out of the brine, wash them immediately with soap; or what is still better, with almond cream, first dipping them into cold water, and then rubbing on a little of the above composition till it forms a lather Almond cream is much used by gentlemen as a shaving soap, but it is also a very pleasant and useful article for a ladies washing-stand, being excellent for smoothing the hands, and preventin® their chopping in cold weather. It is well to get but a small box at a time, as exposure to the air somewhat dries and discolours it. It should be kept closely covered. 284 MISS LESLIE S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. Chilblains or frost-bitten feet may be cured or prevented © Ly dipping the feet night and morning into cold water. Then taking them out and wiping them dry with a coarse towel. Persevere, and you will find the remedy effectual. | RELIEF FOR RHEUMATIC PAINS.—Bathe the afflicted part at night and morning, and frequently ' ‘through the day, with warm salt aid tear: (mixed in the proportion of two handfuls of salt to a quart of water,) tubbing it well into the skin. Do this near the fire, or in a warm room; avoiding exposure to a draught of air. Sea-water heated over the firé will answer the ae still better. A table-spoonful of Hopkins’s Compound S900 of Sarsaparilla, taken thrice a day, and persevered in for six or eight weeks, has frequently cured a chronic rheumatism. ja Swaim’s Panacea has effected wonderful cures in rheumatism of long standing. ’ = ? RELIEF FOR A SPRAINED ANKLE.—Wash the ankle very frequently with cold salt and water, which is far better than warm vinegar or decoctions of herbs. Keep your foot as cool as possible to prevent inflammation ; and sit with it elevated on a high cushion. Live on very low diet, and take every day some cooling medicine; for instance. epsom salts. By observing these directions mly, a sprained ankle has been cured in a few days? i Meo TE EAs tom BATHING THE FEET.—In bathing the feet of a sick person, use at the beginning, -tepid or lukewarm water. Have ready in a tea-kettle or covered pitcher, some hot water, of which pour in a little at intervais; so as gradually to increase the temperature of the foot bath, REMEDIES——CURE FOR A RUN-ROUND, ETC. 285 ill it becomes as warm as it can be borne with comfort ; after which, the feet should be taken out before the water cools. ‘This is a much better way than to put them at first into very. warm water, and let it grow cool before they are taken out. Clean stockings, well warmed, should be ready to put on the feet as soon as they are out of the water, and have been rubbed dry with a flannel. ve —+— CURE FOR A RUN-ROUND.—That disease of the finger or toe commonly called a run-round, may be easily cured by a remedy so simple that persons who have not seen it tried are’ generally incredulous as to its efficacy. The first symptoms of the complaint are heat, pain, swelling, and redness at the top of the nail. The inflammation, if not checked, will soon go round the whole of the nail, causing intense pain, accompanied by a fes- tering or gathering of yellow matter, and ending in the loss of the nail. To prevent all this, as soon as the first symptoms of swelling and inflammation commence, lay the finger flat on the table, and let the nail be+scratched all over with the sharp point of a pair of scissors, or a pen- knife. This excoriation must be done first crossways, and then lengthways, so as thoroughly to scratch up the whole surface of the nail, leaving it rough and white. This little operation does not give the slightest pain; and we have never, in a single instance, known it fail. By next morning the finger will be well. If done before the festering commences, it is a certain and speedy cure. And it will even succeed at a later stage of the digease, by first opening with a needle that part of the swelling where the yellow matter has begun to appear; and afterwards by scratching up the surface of the nail with scissors or penknife. Hard horny warts on the hands can be cured positively, > 286 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. and without pain, by touching their tops twice a day o more With a clean quill pen, dipped in aquafortis. The wart, after a few applications of the apie will. turn brown, and crumble till it falls off. | For ring-worms there is no remedy so good as mer- curial ointment, rubbed on it at night, and not washed off till morning. It-causes no pain, and by pie sone will always effect a cure. —¢— TO APPLY AN EYE-STONE.—Eye-stones are frequently used to extract motes from the eye, sparks’ from steam-engines, and other extraneous substances. They are to be procured at the druggists’. They cost but two or three cents a piece; and it is well to get _ several, that in case one fails you may try another. ‘To give an eye-stone activity, lay it for about five minutes in a saucer of vinegar and water; and if it is a good one it will soon begin to move or swim round in the liquid. Then wipe it dry, and let it be introduced beneath the eye-lid, binding a handkerchief closely round the eye. The eye-stone will make the circuit of the eye, and in its progress take up the mote, which it will bring with it, when on the pain ceasing, the handkerchief is removed. Eye-stones are the eyes of lobsters. When a mote or spark gets into your eye, immediately pull down the lower eye-lash ; and, at the same moment with a handkerchief in your hand, blow your nose violently. This will frequently expel the mote without — further trouble. A mote will sometimes come. out by merely holding your eye wide open in a cup or glass filled to the brim with clear cold water. Or, take a pin, and wrapping its head in the corner‘of a soft cambric handkerchief, sweep carefully round the eye with it, above and below, inserting it under the lid. This should be done with a firm and steady hand, and will often bring REMEDIES, CURE FOR TETTER, ETC. 287 out the mote. Another way is to take a long clean bristle from a brush, tie the ends together with a’bit of ' thread so as to form a loop, and sweep round the eye with it, so that the loop may catch the mote and bring it out. A particle of iron or steel, has, we know, been extracted from the eye, by holding near it a powerful magnet. Rail-road sparks, &c., have frequently been removed from the eye by introducing the feather-end of a quill, and sweeping it round beneath the edge of the lid. If done with care and dexterity it will generally succeed. —_+—. CURE FOR THE TETTER.—Obtain at a drug- gist’s an ounce of sulphure¢ of potash. Be careful to ask for this article precisely. It is a preparation of sulphur and potash. Put the sulphuret into a large glass jar; pour on it a quart of cold soft water; and leave it to dis- solve, having first corked it tightly. Afterwards add to it a wine-glass of rose-water. It may be more convenient afterwards to transfer it to smaller bottles, taking care to leave them closely corked. Pour into each a table-spoon- ful ormore of rose-water. ‘T'o use it, pour a little intoa saucer, artd, dipping in a soft sponge, bathe the eruption five or six times a day. Persist, and, in most cases, it will very soon effect a a cure. It is, indeed, a safe and most excellent remedy. Should the tetter re-appear with the return of cold weather, immediately resume the use of this solution, A bath in which sulphuret of potash was dissolved in water (in the above proportions) has succeed- ed in curing the tetter after the eruption had spread all over the body of a child. —_+—. CURE FOR EXCORIATED NOSTRILS.—If, after a severe cold in the head, the inside of the nostrils con- tinue sore and inflamed, rub them lightly with a little 288 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. kreosote ointment, applied to the interior of your nose with*the finger. Do this at night, and several times during the day. It will very soon ellect a cure ; obtoanel in. twenty-four hours. FOR A CHAFED UPPER LIP.—For a. chafed upper lip and soreness of the end of the nose, such as generally accompanies a cold in the head or influenza, much relief may be found from the homely remedy of greasing the excoriation, at night on going to bed, with a _ bit of mutton tallow (that of a candle will do) held to the. fire to soften. Extend the application over all the nose and even between the eyes. It is well to keep always in the house some nice tallow, prepared by boiling and skimming a sufficient quantity of fresh mutton fat, (there must not be a particle of salt about it,) and then pouring it warm into gallicups, which should be closely covered as soon as the liquid has congealed. CURE FOR PRICKLY HEAT.—Mix a large por- tion of wheat bran with either cold or lukewarm water, and use it as a bath twice or thrice a day. Children who are covered with prickly heat in warm weather will be thus effectually relieved from that tormenting eruption. As soon as it begins to appear on the neck, face, or arms, cormmence using the bran-water on these parts repeatediy through the day, and it may probably spread no farther. If it does, the bran- water bath will certainly cure it, if persisted in. + BROWN MIXTURE FOR A COUGH.—Mix ina large bottle, half an ounce of liquorice; a quarter of an — ounce of gum-arabic; two tea-spoonfuls of antimonial — wine; sixty drops of laudanum; and half a pint of water. Shake it well, and when the ingredients are a _ REMEDIES—RED LIP SALVE, BTC. . 289 thoroughly amalgamated it will be fit for use. Fora cold and cough, take a dessert-spoonful three or four times a day, shaking or stirring it first. : et oe 3 RED LIP SALVE.—Mix together equal portions of the best suet and the best lard. There must be no salt about them, Boil slowly, and skim and stir the mixture. Then add a small thin bag of alkanet chips; and when — it has coloured the mixture of a fine deep red, tale it out. While cooling, stir in, very hard, sufficient rose or orange-flower water to give it a fine perfume. A few drops of oil of rhodium will impart to it a very agreeable rose-scent. Cold cream for excoriated nostrils, chafed upper lips, or chapped hands may be made nearly as above, but with one-third suet, and two-thirds lard, and no allkanet. _ When it has boiled thoroughly, remove it from the fire, and stir in, gradually, a large portion of rose-water, or a little oil of rhodium, beating very hard. Put it into small gallicups, with close covers. —_~— MUSTARD PLASTERS.—Mustard plasters dre frequently very efficacious in rheumatic or other pains occasioned by cold. It is best to make them entirely of mustard and vinegar without any mixture of flour. They should be spread between two pieces of thin muslin, and _ bound on the part affected. As soon as the irritation or burning becomes uncomfortable, take off the plaster. They should never remain on longer than twenty mi- nutes; as by that time the beneficial effect will. be pro- duced, if at all. When a mustard plaster has been taken off, wash the part tenderly with a sponge and warm water. If the irritation on the skin continues trouble- some, apply successive poultices of grated bread-crumbs wetted with lead water. 25 290 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. _—_—_— A mustard plaster behind the ear will often remove a toothache, earache, or a rheumatic pain in the head. Applied to the wrists they will frequently check an ague- fit, if put on as soon as the first symptoms of chill evince themselves. OPODELDOC.—Take an ounce of gum camphor; ~nalf a drachm of oil of rosemary ; half a drachm of oil of origanum ; two ounces of castile soap cut small; and half a pint of spirits of wine. Boil these all together for half an hour after the boiling has commenced. Let the mix- ture cool in the vessel, and then bottle it for use. Itisa good einbrocation for bruises, sprains, stiffness of the neck and shoulder, and for rheumatic pains. , + = CAMPHOR SPIRITS.—Break up into small bits an ounce of gum camphor, and put it into a pint glass bottle. Then fill up with spirits of wine, cork it, and leave the camphor to dissolve, shaking it occasionally. This witl be found quite as good as the camphor spirits obtained at the druggist’s, and the cost will be far less. It is well to keep a bottle of it always in the house. When taken to remove faintness or nervous affections, pour a few drops into a wine-glass of water. Camphor kept for externai use is best when dissolved in whisky, as it produces iess irritation of the skin than when melted in alcohol. The pain of a fly-blister will be much alleviated by sprinkling powdered gum camphor thickly over the sur- face of the plaster before it is put on. This should always be done. =o : REMEDY FOR ARSENIC.—Dissolve a few scru- ples of sulphuret of potash in half a pint, or a pint of water, and administer it a little at a time, as the patient can bear it; having first given the white of an egg. REMEDIES—ANTIDOTE FOR POISONS, ETC. 201° - Another remedy is to mix two tea-spoonfuls of made mustard with sufficient warm water to thin it, so as to make it easy to swallow. It acts as an emetic, and is good for any poison. Oa : ANTIDOTE TO CORROSIVE SUBLIMATE.— If.corrosive sublimate (one of the worst poisons) has been swallowed, immediately drink a large quantity of olive oil, even the whole contents of a flask; or more, indeed, if that is not found sufficient. This remedy, if taken in time, is always efficacious. If it cannot be immediately obtained, try white of egg. ; —_#—-. REMEDY FOR AN OVER-DOSE OF LAUDA NUM.—A cup of the strongest possible coffee has been known to keep the patient awake, and effect a. positive cure when all other means have failed. After the fatal sleep has been thus prevented, and the patient is tho- roughly roused and excited, let an emetic be administered. MEDICATED PRUNES.—Take a quarter of an ounce of senna and manna (obtained ready mixed from the druggists’) and. pour on it not quite a pint of boiling water. Cover it; set it by the fire; and let it infuse for an hour. If the vessel in which you prepare it has a spout, stop up the spout witha roll or wad of soft paper. This should always be done in making herb teas, or other decoctions; as a portion of the strength evaporates at the spout. When the infusion of senna and manna has thus stood an hour at the fire, strain it into a skillet or sauce-pan (one lined with porcelain will be best) and stir in a large wine-glass or a small teacup-full of West India ‘molasses. Add about half a pound or more of the best prunes; putting in sufficient prunes to absorb all the liquid during the process of stewing. Then cover the 292 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. vessel closely, and let it stew (stirring it up occasionally) for an hour; or till you find the stones of the prunes are all loose. If stewed too long, the prunes will taste weak and insipid. When done, put it into a dish to cool; and pick out all the stones. If properly prepared there will - be no perceptible taste of the senna and manna. It may pe given to children at their lunch or supper. ' ‘ FINE HOARHOUND CANDY.—Take a large bunch of the herb hoarhound, as green and fresh as you can get it. Having picked it clean, and washed it, cut it up (leaves and stalks) with scissors. Scald, twice, achina tea-pot or a covered pitcher; then empty it of the hot water. Put in the hoarhound, pressing it down with your hands. The pot should be about two-thirds full of the herb. -Then fill it up with boiling water; cover it closely, and wedge a small roll of paper tightly into the mouth of the spout, to prevent any of the strength escap- ing with the steam. Set it close to the fire to infuse, and keep it there till it beginsto boil. Then immediately take it away, and strain it into another vessel. Mix with the liquid sufficient-powdered loaf-sugar to make it a very thick paste. When the sugar is in, set it over the fire, and give it a boil, stirring and skimming it well. ‘Takea shallow, square tin pan, grease it slightly with sweet oil, and put into it the candy, as soon as it is well boiled; smoothing the surface with a wet knife-blade. Sift over it some powdered sugar. Set it away to cool; and when nearly congealed, score it in squares. It is a well-known remedy for coughs and hoarseness. | If you find it too thin, you may stir in, while boiling, a spoonful of flour, of arrow-root, or of finely-powdered starch. Another way of making this candy is, to boil the hoar- hound in barely as much water as will cover it, and till REMEDIES—LAVENDER COMPOUND, ETC. 2093 all the juice is extracted. ‘Then squeeze it through a cloth, and give the strained liquid another boil, stirring in, gradually, sugar enough to make it very thick and stiff. Afterwards sift sugar over a shallow tin pan, fill it with the paste, and leave it to congeal; scoring it in squares before it is quite hard. Any herb-candy may be made as above. —+— FINE LAVENDER COMPOUND.—For this pur pose, use lavender buds, gathered just before they are ready to blow. As soon as the blossom expands into a flower, a portion of its strength and fragrance immediately evaporates. ‘T'his is also the case with roses; which, for rose-water, should always be gathered, not after they are blown, but when just about to open. Having stripped the lavender buds from the stalks, measure a pint of the buds, and mix with them half an ounce of whole mace; half an ounce of whole cloves; two nutmegs broken up, but not grated; and half an ounce of powdered cochineal. Put the whole into a large glass jar, and pour in a quart of the best French brandy. Cover the jar closely ; making it completely air-tight by the addition of strong paper, pasted down over the cover. Set it away, and leave the ingredients to infuse, undis- turbed, fora month. ‘Then strain it intoa pitcher; and from the pitcher pour it through a funnel into bottles ; corking them tightly. It is a well-known remedy for flatulence, and pains and sickness of the stomach. To use it, put some loaf-sugar into a spoon, and pour on suf- ficient lavender to soften the sugar; then eat it. Instead of cochineal, you may give a fine red colour to lavender compound by tying up a quarter of an ounce of alkanet in a thin muslin bag, (seeing that the alkanet is free from dust,) and putting the bag into the jar while the other ingredients are infusing in the brandy. 20* 994 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. BLACKBERRY SYRUP.—Take a sufficient quan- tity of fine, ripe, sweet blackberries. Put them into a sieve placed over a large broad pan; and with a clean potatoe-masher, (or something similar,) mash the black- berries, and press out all their juice. Or (having bruised them first) put the blackberries into a linen bag, and squeeze out all the juice into a vessel placed beneath. ° Measure it; and to every quart of the strained juice allow half a pound of powdered loaf-sugar; a heaped tea-spoonful of powdered cinnamon; the same of pow- dered cloves ; and a large nutmeg grated. Mix the spices with the juice and sugar, and boil all together ina porcelain preserving-kettle ; skimming it well. When cold, stir into each quart of the syrup half a pint of fourth-proof brandy. Then bottle it for use. This is a good family medicine; and is beneficial in complaints imcident to summer. It should be administered, (at proper intervals,) - from a tea-spoonful to a wine-glassful, according to the age of the patient. —_+— ; RHUBARB BITTERS.—Take two ounces of rhu- barb root; half an ounce of cardamom seeds ; one drachm of Virginia snake-root; and half a drachm of gentian root. Put these articles into a large bottle, and pour on it a quart of good brandy. It is excellent for children in complaints incident to summer weather. pe See ee TO PREVENT A JUG OF MOLASSES FROM RUNNING OVER.—A jug or bottle of molasses fre- quently causes inconvenience by working over at the top, after coming from the grocer’s, and being’ set in a room or closet that is warmer than the place fronr which it was brought. To prevent this—as soon as you receive it, pour out a portion into another vessel; for instance, into REMEDIES—EXTINGUISH COAL FIRES, ETC. 295 - a pitcher or bowl. Then set the jug of molasses into a deep pan or basin, and leave it uncorked till next day. By that time, all danger from fermentation will have sub- sided. Then cork it tightly, and set it away. Keep always under the bottom of the jug an old plate, or a double piece of thick paper to receive any drippings that may run down the sides. Never bring molasses to table without a plate or saucer under the vessel that contains it. West India molasses is far more wholesome and nou- rishing than any other, and is decidedly the best for - gingerbread, molasses-candy, indian-puddings,&c. Sugar- house molasses, if used for those articles, will render them hard and tough. Peter Oss fi TO EXTINGUISH A COAL FIRE,—Many per- sons who burn anthracite coal in their chambers, have suffered great inconvenience from not knowing how to extinguish it before they go to bed. The process is very simple, and always successful. Lift off with the tongs any large coals that may lie on the top, and Jay them on the iron hearth of the grate; they will make good cinders to burn next day in a close-stove or furnace. Then shut up the tongs, and with them make a hollow or deep cavity just in the centre of the fire, heaping up the coals like a hill on each side, and making the tongs go down to the bottom of the grate. If there are not many coals, you may do this with the poker. The fire will imme- diately begin to fade and deaden; and in less than ten minutes, it will be entirely out, without farther trouble ; unless it has been very large, and then it may require a second stirring. In the morning, let the grate be cleared entirely of all the cinders apd ashes, and swept out clean with a brush. Cover the bottom of the grate with’ a sort of flooring of small fresh coal, before you put in the kindlings; other- _ 296 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. wise, after the kindlings (wood or charcoal) are lighted, they will burn away immediately, and fall through the bottom bars of the grate, before they have had time’ to gnite the coal that has been laid above them ; so that the grate will have to be again cleared out, fresh kindlings brought, and the fire built up anew, before it can ae succeed. - . ne The above way of omibioniahiit a iii answers eaves well for a close-stove or a furnace. The heat of a grate may be considerably diminished by standing up the blower against it; the bottom of the blower resting on the hearth. To lessen the heat of a close-stove, leave open the large door of the stove. In the same mannef diminish the heat of a furnace. TO EXTRACT SPERMACETI FROM ME- RINO.—If spermaceti has accidentally been dropped from a candle on a merino dress, carefully remove as much as you can with a knife, without scraping the texture. Then hold the greased place before the fire, but not near enough to burn it. When a small vapor ceases to rise from it, you will find that the grease is gone. In the same way you may remove grease from - any sort of woolen cloth. liege EXCELLENT REMEDY FOR CORNS.—Get at a druggist’s, some common adhesive plaster, and cut out of it a round piece, rather larger than the corn. Warm this bit of plaster by holding it near the fire, or near a lamp, till it softens. You can hold it thus between the points of scissors, or on a large pin. Then press it down upon the corn, and continue: to wear it; putting on a bit of fresh plaster,once a week. ‘LAUNDRY-WORK, NEEDLE-WORK, ETC. 297 é LAUNDRY-WORK, NEEDLE-WORK, ETC. - SODA SOAP.—Take six pounds of the best brown soap, and cut it into pieces. Put it into a large wash- kettle, and pour on seven gallons and a half-of clear soft water. Next stir in six pounds of washing-soda, (sub- carbonate,) set it over the fire, and let it boil two hours after it has come to a boil. ‘Then strain it into stone jars; cover it, and put it away. It must be used. for white clothes only, as it will fade coloured things. Put the clothes in soak the night before, in tubs of cold water; having first rubbed the grease spots: with wet fuller’s earth, (scraped fine,) and the stains. with wet cream of tartar. Allow a pound of the soda soap to a bucket of water, and-put it over the fire in a wash-kettle. When the water is warm, put in as many white clothes as con- venient ; seeing that there is water enough to cover them well. Boil them an hour; occasionally moving them up and down with the clothes-stick. Then take them out, and finish washing them in the usual way. The soda soap will whiten them very much; but if used in a larger quantity than the above proportion, it will injare them greatly. We do not recommend any soda preparation for washing, unless it can be used under the immediate inspection of a good housekeeper; most servants and washerwomen being very apt to employ it too freely, if eft to themselves. ———e.2—> SOFT SOAP MADE WITH POTASH.—Put | twelve pounds of ‘potash into a barrel, and then pour in water till the barrel is half full. Stir the potash several times, while it is dissolving in the water. Have ready v _ 298 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. twelve pounds of good soap-fat, and melt it over the fire in a large kettle. Then stir it, gradually, into the barrel with the dissolved potash. After standing a quarter of an hour, fill up the Hehral with cold water; and stir it hard. This process will form an excellent soft soap. COLD STARCH FOR LINEN.—Take a quarter of a pint, or.as much of the best raw starch as will half fill a common-sized tumbler. Fill it nearly up with very clear cold water. Mix it well with a spoon, pressing out all the lumps, till you get it thoroughly dissolved, and very smooth. Next add a tea-spoonful of salt to prevent its sticking. Then pour it into a broad earthen pan; add, gradually, a pint of clear cold water; and stir and mix it well. Do not boil it. The shirts having been washed and dried, dip the collars and wristbands into this starch, and then squeeze them out. Between each dipping, stir it up from the pottom with a spoon. Then sprinkle the shirts, and fold or roll them up, with the collars and wristbands folded evenly inside. They will be ready to iron in an hour. This quantity of cold starch is amply sufficient for the collars and wristbands of half a dozen shirts. Any article of cambric muslin may be done up with cold starch made as above. | Poland starch is better than any other, It is to be had at most grocery stores. Cold starch will not do for thin muslin, or for any thing that is to be clapped and cleared. It is very convenient for linen, &c., in summer, as it requires no boiling over the fire. Also, it goes farther than boiled starch. f -—-0>—— TO WASH WHITE SATIN RIBBON.—Make a strong lather of clear cold water and the best white soap. Squeeze and press the ribbon through this, till it looks TO CLEAN SILK SHAWLS OR SCARFS. 999 — quite clean ; but do not rub it, as that will cause it to fray. Then make a fresh lather uf white soap and cold water, ~and squeeze the ribbon through that. Do not rinse it, as the suds remaining in the ribbon will give it the proper , stiffhess. Pull and stretch it evenly; and then iron it on the wrong side ‘while it is still damp. When quite © dry, roll it on a ribbon-block; wrap it closely in coarse brown paper; and put it away till you want to use it. None but plain unfigured white satin ribbon of very good quality, can be washed to advantage. The day before washing it, rub some magnesia upon any grease that may be on the ribbon jjpnd some cream of tartar on the stains. In winding several pieces of ribbon on the same block, always put the end of each successive piece under that of the last, instead of over it; and wind the whole tight and smoothly. Secure the last end with two very small minikin pins; as large pins will make conspicuous holes all through, and probably leave a brassy or greenish stain. The ribbon-block should on no account be narrower than the ribbon. A small white silk handkerchief may be washed as above, if thick and unfigured. Far ns TO CLEAN SILK SHAWLS OR SCARFS.—Mix together a quarter of a pound of soft soap; a tea-spoonful of brandy; and a pint of whisky or gin; stirring them hard. Spread the shawl on a clean linen cloth, and with a clean sponge dipped in the mixture, go carefully over it on both sides. The shawl should be kept even, by placing weights along the edges. Dry it in the shade. Then wash (or rather squeeze it) in two or three cold waters without soap ; stretch it, and hang it out again ; and when almost dry, iron it. 800 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. TO CLEAN A SILK DRESS.—Rip the dress en- tirely apart. Take large raw potatoes, and allow a pint of cold water to each potatoe. Having pared the pota- toes, grate them into the basin of water. Cover it; and let it stand three hours, or more. Then pour it carefully - off, into a broad pan; leaving the sediment or coarse part of the grated potatoes at the-bottom of the basin. Having spread a clean linen cloth on a large ironing table, and put some irons down to the fire, lay the silk (a breadth at a time) upon the cloth, and with a clean sponge dipped in the potatoe-water, go all over it, on the wrong side, Then hang that breadth out upon.a line ; stretch it evenly, and leave it to dry. Take another breadth; sponge it with the potatoe-water; hang it out; and proceed in the same manner till all the silk is done. By the time the whole has been sponged and hung out, the first breadths will in all probability be dry enough to iron. It must be ironed on the, wrong side. The sleeves must be taken out and ripped open, before sponging them. Each piece of the body must, of course, be done separately. ~ WASHING BLACK LACE —Every description o black silk lace (or of black Scotch blond) may be made to look extremely well by the following process; either | veils, shawls, scagfs, capes, sleeves, or trimming-lace. A black lace dress, must be previonsly taken apart, and all the loose threads or stitches carefully picked out. We will suppose the article that requires washing to be a veil that has been worn long enough to look soiled and rusty. By exactly observing the following directions, it may be made to appear fresh, new, and of an excellent black; provided always that it was originally of good quality, with no mixture of cotton in it. All lace articles of that brownish black, falsely called jet, are now mixed with cotton; and frequently have no silk at all about them. In a large clean earthen pan, or a small tub, make a strong lather of white soap and clear soft water, warm but not hot. Mix with the suds a large table-spoonful of ox-gall. No family should be without a bottle of ox- gall, which can always be obtained from the butcher at a very trifling cost. The gall as soon as brought home should be opened, its liquid poured through a funnel into a clean black bottle, and tightly corked. You may per- fume it by putting in a grain of musk. Itis useful in washing all sorts of coloured things, as it materially assists in preventing them from fading. Having stirred the gall well into the suds, put in the black lace veil, and work and squeeze it up and down through the lather for five minutes or more; taking care not to rub it. Then squeeze it out well, open it loose, and shake it a little. Next, transfer it to a second suds of clean warm water and white soap; adding a tea-spoonful of gall. Into this second lather infuse a large quantity of blue, pressed into the water from the indigo bag, and well stirred in. Having worked the veil xp and down through this second suds for about ten minutes, alternately loosening it out 26* 806 MISS LESLIN’S NEW RFIEIPTS FOR COOKING. and squeezing it up, but « + rubbing it. Squeeze it finally as dry as you can, ana then open it out widely. _ _ Have ready in another pan some glue-stiffening, made as follows: Ona bit of glue about the size of a shilling pour two jills, or a half-pint, of boiling ‘water, and let it dissolve. After the glue is entirely melted, add to it a quart of cold water; and then make it very blue by squeezing into it a large portion of indigo from the blue- bag. Stir it well, and then put in the veil, rinsing and squeezing it up and down through the stiffening water. Having done this sufficiently, squeeze out the veil as dry as you can get it; then open it, stretch it, and clap it all over. Next, fold it evenly; roll it up in a thick clean towel; and let it rest for a quarter of an hour or more, Spread a large clean linen cloth on your clothes-line, and hang the veil (well spread out) upon the cloth. When nearly, but not quite dry, take down the veil, and clap and stretch it again. Have warm irons ready. Lay a clean linen cloth over your blanket, and press the veil smoothly on the wrong side ; first trying the irons on an old piece of thin black silk, crape, or gauze; lest they should be too hot for the lace, and scorch or discolour it. The foregoing process (followed exactly) will restore to any article of good black silk lace that has become brown and soft by wearing, the deep black colour and consistence it had when new. Be careful not to have too much glue, and to put plenty of indigo-blue mto the second suds and into the stiffening water. Before washing tlie veil, rip open the casing at the top, and remove the string. Afterwards, make a new case, and. draw it with a new ribbon. ‘ ee TO WASH A WHITE LACE SCARF.—Fold up the scarf, and lay it in a thin cambric handkerchief, TO CLEAN EMBROIDERIES, ETC. 807 folded over so as to enclose the scarf, and secured by — basting it slightly with a needle and thread. Dip it in cold water. Make a strong lather with white soap and warm water; put the scarf, &c., into it, and let it rest all day. In the evening, make a fresh lather, andleave the scarf in it all night, (having first squeezed it well.) Next morning, make some thin starch. Shave small a quarter of a cake of white wax, and put it into two quarts of soft water; adding six lumps of loaf-sugar, and a table-spoon- ful of thin-made starch. Put these articles into an earthen pipkin or a porcelain kettle, and set it over the fire.” On no account use, for this purpose, a vessel of any sort of metal, as it will discolour the lace. When the mixture has come toa boil, put in the scarf, (still folded in the handkerchief,) and boil/it ten minutes. Then take it out, open the handkerchief, and if you do not find it per- fectly white, return it to.the pipkin, and boil it longer. Afterwards, take it out of the handkerchief, and throw the scarf into cold water. Squeeze and press it, till it drips no longer. Then open it out; stretch it even; and hang it in the sun. When almost dry, take it in, and iron it carefully on a linen cloth. - A veil, a shawl, or a pelerine of white ts may be washed in this manner. caw ore TO CLEAN GOLD OR SILVER EMBROIDERY. —Warm some spirits of wine, and apply it with a bit of clean sponge. Then dry it, by rubbing it with soft, new canton flannel. Gold or silver lace may be cleaned thus. Also, jewelry. ; Np oe : ¢ WASHING AMERICAN CHINTZES.—American chintzes, of good quality, (such as are sold at twelve or fourteen cents per yard,) can be washed so as to retair their colours, and look as bright as when quite new. 308 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. The water must be quite clean, and merely warm, but ihiy no means hot. Rub the soap into the water, so as to form a strong lather, before you put in the dress. Add to’ the lather a handful of fine salt. Wash the chintz through two warm waters, making a lather in the second also, and adding salt. The salt will keep the colours from running. Then rinse it through two cold waters; putting a table- spoonful of vinegar into each, before the dress goes in. This will brighten the colours. Immediately, wring out the dress, and hang it up to dry; but not in the sun, When nearly dry, (so as to be just damp enough toiron,) have irons ready heated; bring in the dress; stretch it well, and iron it on the wrong side. If allowed to be- come quite dry on the line, and then sprinkled and rolled up, and laid aside to be ironed next day, the colours iey run from remaining damp all night. . __An imported chintz,a gingham, or a mousseline de lame, may be washed in the above manner; which we ' know to be excellent; substituting, for the salt, a table- spoonful of ox-gall in each water. All sorts of coloured dresses should be washed and ironed as quickly as possi- ble, when once begun. It is well to allot a day purposely to coloured dresses, rather than to do them with all the other things on the regular washine-day. If washed in half-dirty suds, and left soaking in the rinsing-water, the - colours will most assuredly run and fade, and the dress look dingy all over. Of course, nothing that has any colour about it should be either~scalded, or boiled, or washed in, hot water. Scalding, boiling, and hot-water washing are only for things entirely white. . ° Se PRESERVING THE COLOURS OF DRESSES,— Before washing a new dress, try a small piece of the ma- terial, and see if the colours are likely to stand of them- PRESERVING THT COLOURS OF DRESSES, ETC. 809 selves. They are generally fast, if the article is so well printed that the wrong side is difficult to distinguish from the right. If you obtain from the store a small slip for testing the durability of the colours, give it a fair trial, by washing it through two warm waters with soap, and then rinsing it through two cold waters. No colours what- ever will stand, if washed in hot water. Some colours, (very bright pinks and light greens particularly,) though they may bear washing perfectly well, will change as soon as a warm iron is applied to them; the pink turning pur- plish, and the green bluish. The colours of merinoes, mousselines de laine, ging- hams, chintzes, printed lawns, &c., may be preserved in washing by mixing a table-spoonful of ox-gall in the first and second waters, (which should not be more than luke- warm,) and making a lather of the soap and water before you put in the dress, instead of rubbing the soap on it afterwards. At the last, to brighten the colours, stir into the second rinsing-water a small tea-spoonful of oil of vitriol, if the dress is that of a grown person; fora child’s” dress, half a tea-spoonful will suffice. If washed at home, one of the ladies of the family should herself put in the vitriol, as, if left to the servants, they may injure the dress by carelessly putting in too much. Vitriol is excel- lent for preserving light or delicate colours. The colours of a common calico or mousseline de laiwe may be set by putting into each of the two warm waters a large handful of salt, and into _— rinsing water a tea- spoonful of vinegar. No coloured articles should be allowed to remain in the water, as soaking will cause the colours to run in streaks. As soon as the dress is washed and rinsed, let it be im mediately wrung out, hung in the shade, and, as soon as dry enough, taken in and ironed at once. Each dress 310 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. should be washed separately. ‘The washing of dresses should only be undertaken in fine weather, 1 | Ege gE ate) ya PUTTING AWAY WOOLLENS.—The par tion of furnaces, for the purpose of warming houses, is supposed to be one cause of the great increase of moths, cockroaches, and other insects that now, more than ever, infest our dwellings. For moths, particularly, the usual remedies of camphor, tobacco, pepper, cedar-shavings, &c., seem no longer sufficiently powerful; perhaps be- cause their odour so soon evaporates. Still it is well. to try them when nothing better can be done; and they are sometimes successful. Camphor and tobacco-shreds will be found much more eflicacious if (after interspersing them among the furs or woollens) each fur or woollen ar- ticle is carefully and closely pinned up in newspapers ; so Closely as to leave no aperture or opening, however small. The printing-ink has a tendency to keep off moths and other small insects. |The papers used for this purpose should be those that are printed with ink of a good quality, not liable to rub off, and soil the things en- closed. We highly recommend this mode of preserving furs and woollens. But the following method of putting away all the mee len, worsted, and fur articles of the house, will be found an infallible preservative against moths; and the cost is trifling, in comparison with the security it affords of find- ing the things in good order when opened for use on. the return of cold weather. Procure ata distiller’s, or else- where, a tight empty hogshead that has held whisky. Have it well cleaned, (without washing,) and see that it is quite dry. Let it be placed in some part of the house that is little used in the summer, where there is no damp, and where it can be shut up in entire darkness. | After the carpets have been taken up, and well shaken PUTTING AWAY WOOLLENS, ETC. oll and beaten, and the grease spots all removed, let them be folded and packed closely down in the cask, which can be reached by means of a step-ladder. Put in, also, the . blankets; having first washed all that were not clean; also the woollen table-covers. If you have worsted or cloth curtains and cushion-covers, pack them in likewise, after they have been thoroughly freed from dust. Also, flannels, merinos, cloaks, coats, furs, and, in short, every thing that is liable to be attacked by the moths. It is well to rip the cloaks from the collars, and the skirts of pelisses from the bodies, before packing, as they can be folded more smoothly, and soas to occupy less space. Fold and pack all the articles closely, and arrange them to ad- vantage, so as to fit in well, and fill up all hollows -and vacancies evenly. If well-packed, one hogshead will - generally hold all the woollen and fur articles belonging to a house of moderate size, and to a moderate-sized family. But if one is not enough, it is easy to get another. - When the cask is filled, nail the head on tightly, and let the whole remain undisturbed till- the warm weather is over. Ifthe house is shut up, and the family out of town in the summer, you may safely leave your woollens, &c., put away in this manner. Choose a clear, dry day for unpacking them in the autumn; and, when open, expose them all separately to the air, ull the odour of the whisky is gone off. If they have been put away clean, and free from dust, it will be found that the whisky-atmosphere has brightened their colours. As soon as the things are all out of the cask, head it up again immediately, and keep it for the same use next summer. If more convenient, you may have the cask sawed in two before you pack it. In this case, you must get an extra head for one of the halves. In putting away woollens for the season, always keep out a blanket for each bed, and some flannel for eack 312 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. member of the family, in case of occasional sald aco easterly rains in the summer. Have no Aair trunks about the house; they. cow produce moths. ei Rw Ale TO CLEAN WHITE FUR.—Take a sufficiency of dry starch, very finely powdered, and sift it, through a-fine sieve, into a broad, clean, tin pan. Set the pan near enough the fire for the powdered starch to get warm, stirring it frequently. Then roll and tumble about the white fur among the powdered starch, till it is well saturated. Shut it up closely in a bandbox, and let it remain unopened for a fortnight. It will then look clean. When you put away white fur in the spring, proceed as above, (using a very large quantity of the pulverized starch,) and pat into the box some lumps of camphor tied p in thin white papers. Keep the box closely shut through the summer, and do not open it to look at the fur till you want it for cold weather. It will then be _ found a good clean white. In joining pieces of fur or swans-down, lay shi’ two edges together, and pass the needle and thread back and forward on the wrong side, (in the way that carpet-seams are sewed,) so as to unite the edges evenly and flat with- out making a ridge. Then line every seam by sewing or running strong tape along it, of course on the wrong side. Unless they are strengthened in this manner with tape, the stitches are liable, after a while, to give way, and the seams or joins to gape open, making rents inside that are very difficult to repair. a TO KEEP A MUFF. Always when returning a muff to its box, give it several hard twirls round. This will smooth the fur, and make all the hairs lie the _. TAKING CARE OF PICTURES, ET@- 813 same way. To prevent the wadding inside the muff from sinking downwards, and falling into clods, keep the mufi-box always lying on the side, instead of standing it upright. When you put it away till next winter, place within it some lumps of camphor wrapped in papers, and sprinkle the outside of the fur with powdered cam- phor. Then enclose the muff, completely, in one or two large newspapers, sewing or pinning them entirely over it, sides and ends, so that nothing can possibly get in. Do the same with all your furs; and after putting them away with these precautions, open them no more till the return of cold weather. The printing ink on the papers ° will assist in keeping out moths. a : TAKING CARE OF PICTURES.—An excellent way to preserve an oil-picture from the injuries of damp, mould, and mildew, is to take the precaution of covering the back of the canvas (before nailing it on the straining frame) with a. coating of common white lead paint; and when that is dry, give it a second coat. If you buya | picture that has been framed without this precaution, do not neglect having the back of it coated as above, before you hang it up. The simplest way of cleaning an oil-picture, is to mix some whisky and water very weak. If the mixture is too strong of the liquid, it may take off the paint, or , otherwise injure it. Dip into the mixture a very soft and very clean sponge, which you must first ascertain to be perfectly free from sand, grit, or any extraneous object. A good way to soften and clean a sponge, is to boil it in several successive waters, till there is no longer any ap- pearance of sand at the bottom of the vessel. Having carefully washed the picture with the sponge and whisky- water, dry it by going over it with a clean soft silk hand- kerchief. This is all that can be safely attempted by, 27 * 314 MISS LESLIE’S NEW REUEIPTS FOR COOKING. any one who is not a regular picture cleaner. Therefore, if the picture is smoked or much soiled, it is best to send it to a person who makes picture-cleaning his profession. Many a good picture has been destroyed by ae a cleaning. Till it has been made perfectly clean, no picture should be re-varnished ; otherwise the fresh varnish will work up the dirt, and make it look worse than ever. As long as a picture is the least wet (either with paint or varnish) it should be carefully guarded from dust; the smallest particles of which by drying into the surface will-njure it irreparably. No sweeping or dusting should be per- mitted where there is a picture not perfectly and thoroughly dry. If there is a fire in the room it should not be stirred, replenished, or touched in any way till the picture has been previously carried pei lest some of the flying ashes might stick to it. When a picture is finished, it would always be well for the artist to inscribe on the back of the canvas the subject of the painting, the. date of its completion, his own name and that of the person for whom it was painted. In short, a concise history of. the picture, arranged some- what like the title-page of a book. Had this excellent practice always prevailed, there would be no occasion for any doubts and controversies concerning the works of the old masters. Reo PES, A PORTRAIT PAINTER’S TRAVELLING BOX. ——The large wooden box for the easel and other things indispensable to a portrait painter, when travelling pro- fessionally, should be made broad, low, and square, so that ii may be used as a platform on which to place the chair of the sitter. When unpacked of its contents, and appropriated to this purpose, the box must be turned bottom upwards, and concealed under a cover of carpeting rs ws TRAVELLING BOXES, DIRECTIONS, ETC. 8185 or dragget brought along with it. The cover should fit smoothly and closely, and be so made that it can be lifted off, and folded up, whenever the platform is again to be used as a box. Fan eee 8 TRAVELLING BOXES.—As bandboxes are no longer visible among the baggage-articles of Jadies, the usual way of carrying bonnets, caps, muslins, &ec., is in tall square wooden boxes, covered with black canvas or leather, edged with strips of iron and brass nails, and furnished with a tray for small things. They are usually lined with paper or calico pasted all over the inside. This lining, however, is apt to peel off in places where most rubbed; and is then very troublesome; catching the corners of the tray so asto prevent its being lifted out "To obviate this inconvenience, when you bespeak the box, direct that the inside, instead of being lined with pasted paper or calico, shall be planed smooth, and either stained of some colour, or left the natural-tint of the wood. It is best that the tray should have a close bottom of strong linen. ©When there are only strips nailed across, (like open. lattice-work,) the small articles laid upon them are always falling through. A small bandbox can be easily carried inside of a trunk or box, keeping it steady by filling in heavy articles closely round it. The best way of securing a bandbox- lid, is to have a hole made in the rim or top of the lid, and a corresponding hole in the side of the bandbox, near ts cover. ‘l’hrough each of these holes pass a string of ribbon or ferret; securing one end by a large knot inside, and leaving the other end outside; so that you can tie them together in a bow-knot. It is best to have two pair of these strings, one pair on each side of the bandbox. Let your whole name (not merely the initials) be painted in white or yellow letters on each of you 816 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. travelling trunks or boxes; and also the name of the town in which you live. Have also’ your name and: residence painted in black on the leather part of your carpet-bag. | aie If you are clever at lettering, you can mark your. , trunks yourself with a small brush and a saucer of ready-' mixed paint, which you may buy at a paint-shop for a few cents. ‘The more conspicuously your baggage is lettered, the less liable you are to lose it. To make it still more easily distinguished, tie on the handles of each article a bit of ribbon; the same colour on every one— for instance, all blue or all red. . On returning home, let all the travelling cases, bags, straps, keys, &c., be kept together in one trunk; so that when preparing for your next journey you ae know exactly where to find them. oe ee A RIBBON SACK.—These bags are quite pretty, and very convenient for a short journey, ora visit of a day or two in the country. While on the journey, they are to be carried in the hand, and may contain whatever is necessary for a short absence from home ; for instance, clean night-clothes, tightly rolled up; stockings; hand- kerchiefs; sewing materials; books, &c.. To make a ribbon sack, take five or six pieces of very broad, very thick, strong ribbon; each piece at least three-quarters of a yard in length. Sew all these stripes closely to- gether, with very strong sewing-silk. Then fold or double this piece of joined ribbons,-leaving one end half a finger longer than the other. Sew up the two sides as you would a pillow-case, so as to form a square sack with a flap to turn over at the top. Round off, with your SCISSOTS, both corners of this flap, so as to make its edge semicircular. Then bind the top or mouth all, round (flap and straight-sides) with thick velvet ribbon of a dark - LADY § SHOE-BAG, BOOT-BAG, ETC. oLT colour. Cover, with the same velvet ribbon, a very thick strong cotton cord about three quarters of a yard in length ; and sew its two ends to the tops of the side-— seams; so as to form an arched handle like that of a basket. Work an upright button-hole near the edge of the flap, and sew on a handsome button to meet it, a little below the straight edge of the bao’s mouth. Ifthe ribbon is very thick and strong (broad belt-ribbon for instance) no lining will be necessary. Also, no lining is required if the sack is of stout old-fashioned brocade. No other sort of silk will be strong enough without a lining. Pein Wee A LADY’S SHOE-BAG.—Take a piece of strong linen or ticking. Fold or double it so as to leave a flap to turn over at the top. Then, with very strong thread, stitch the bag into compartments—each division large enough to contain, easily, a pair of shoes. Next sew up the sides, and bind the flap with broad tape. Put strings or buttons to the flap so as to tie it down. The shoes, when put in, must be laid together with the heel of one to the toe of the other; and if they are slippers with strings, tie the strings closely round both. These shoe- pags are very convenient when you are travelling. ag A BOOT-BAG.—Take a piece of very strong brown Imen or Russia sheeting; about a yard in length, and three-quarters wide. Fold it in the form of a pillow- case, and sew up the sides; leaving it at the open or top- end about'a finger’s length (or four inches) longer at the back than at the front, so as to turn over like a flap. Hem this flap. ‘Take two pieces of strong twilled tape, each about a yard or more in length. Double each tape in the middle, so as to make a double string. Sew these strings on one edge of the turn-over or flap, about half a quarter of a yard apart. Having rolled up each boot, a7i* 818 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. put them, side by side, into the bag. Pull down the flap over the opening or mouth; bring round the strings; and tie them tightly. The boots can thus be carried in a trunk or carpet-bag, without injuring other articles. — bi —o— ch ey ria A TOWEL-CASE.—Travellers often complain much. of the difficulty of procuring nice towels, in steamboats, at country inns, and at taverns in remote places. This inconvenience may easily be obviated by putting a few of your own towels into your trunk. In case of being obliged to proceed on your journey before your towels. are dry, take with you, on leaving home, a square oil- cloth or oiled silk case or bag, made like a large pocket- book with a flap to fold over, and to fasten down with two or more buttons and loops. Having squeezed your wet towels as dry as you can, fold or roll them into as small a compass as possible; and put them into the case. Before you go to bed, take them out, and hang them about your room to dry. In this towel-case there may be separate compartments for tooth-brushes, soap, and a spongan a CONVENIENT HAIR-BRUSHES.—We highly recommend to travellers those hairbrushes that have a looking-glass at the back, with a comb fixed on a pivot, and concealed beneath the mirror, so as to be drawn out when wanted. Those of black buffalo horn are the strongest. With one of these you:may always have a comb and a small mirror at hand, all three secupying no more space than a simple hair-brush. ~ | A TRAVELLING-CASE FOR COMBS AND BRUSHES.—Get about three-quarters of a yard of strong oiled silk of the best quality—double it—leaving one side, at the top, about half a quarter longer than the TRAVELLING CASES FOR BRUSHES, INK, ETC.-319 other, so as to fold over like a flap. Sew it strongly up, at the bottom and sides, with a felled seam. Then stitch it lengthways into compartments, like an old-fashioned thread-case—except that the divisions must differ in size; taking care to make each division rather large, that the articles may go in easily, and not rub against each other. ' Make one compartment large enough to contain a hair- brush ; allot another to a comb; others to tooth-brushes ; one to a nail-brush; one toa clasp-knife; one to a. pair of scissors; one to a vial of lavender orscamphor ; one to a sponge; and another to a cake of soap; and a large one to hold a towel. In short, make the divisions acéording to the size and number of useful articles you require in travelling. Sew two pair of strings to the flap, and tie” them fast when the articles are all in. Let your name be marked on the outside of the flap. This bag may be made of strong linen, or ticking. But oiled silk is better,.as you can then put into it tooth- ‘brushes and sponges when quite wet. If of oiled silk, let there be one compartment large enough to hold a wet towel. It is well in travelling always to take with you some towels of your own; and if after using them there is no time for drying, you can roll them up and carry them away wet, if you have furnished yourself with an oiled silk bag. —— TO CARRY INK WHEN TRAVELLING.—Have ready a small square bag of oiled silk, or thick buckskin, with a narrow tape string sewed on near the top. Buy a small six-cent vial of good ink. The vial must be broad and short with a flat bottom; so that it will stand alone, and answer the purpose of an ink-stand. If the seal on the cork has been cut away, get a longer and better cork, and wedge it in as tightly as possible. Cut off a finger-end from an old kid glove; put it over the 820 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECHIPTS FOR COOKING. cork, and draw it down closely till it covers both the top and the neck of the bottle, tying it on tightly with narrow tape. Then wrap the bottle in double blotting-paper, and put it into the little oil-cloth bag, securing the top well. To prevent all possibility of accidents, from ink stains, do not pack the ink-bottle in a trunk with’ your. clothing, but keep it in your travelling-basket or reticu.e. We know that ink thus secured has been carried many hundred miles, with the convenience of being always at hand to write with, whenever wanted, in a steamboat or at a stopping-place. The best way of carrying quill-pens is ina eo pen-case, to be had at the stationers for a trifle. Steel-pens may be wrapped in soft a twisted at each end. . We highly recommend a neat and convenient Pe called a travelling escritoir.. It occupies no more space than a cake of scented soap, and is so ingeniously con- trived as to contain a small ink-bottle with a lid so close- fitting as to be perfectly safe; a pen-holder; a piece of sealing-wax;} a wax taper; and some lucifer matches with sand-paper to ignite them on the bottom of the box. The whole apparatus can be safely carried in the pocket, or in a ladies reticule, or it may be put into a travelling-desk. It is to be purchased in Philadelphia, at Matrice By- water’s stationery store, No. 151 Walnut street, near Fifth. We know nothing better for the ad and the cost is trifling. aa a Le aa ean, Latte # : silos . BONNETS.—Before you send a straw bonnet to be whitened, it will be well to remove whatever stains or grease marks may be upon it. Do this yourself, as many professed bonnet-cleaners are either unacquainted with the best methods, or careless of taking the trouble; and will tell you, afterwards, that these blemishes would not come out. ‘You can easily remove grease marks from a TO CLEAN STRAW OR LEGHORN BONNETS, ETC. 321 straw, lexhorn, or Florence braid bonnet, by rubbing the place with a sponge dipped in fresh camphine oil; or by wetting it with warm water, and then plastering on some scraped Wilmington clay, or grease-ball; letting it rest half an hour, and then repeating the application till the grease has disappeared. Magnesia rubbed on dry will frequently remove grease spots, if not very bad. To take out stains, discoloured marks, or mildew, moisten slightly with warm water some stain powder composed of equal portions of ‘salt of sorrel and cream of tartar, well mixed together. Rub on this mixture with your finger. Let it rest awhile; then brush it off, and rub on more of the powder. When the stain has disappeared, “ wash off the powder, immediately, and thoroughly, with warm water. By previously using these applications, no trace of grease or stain will remain on the bonnet, after it has undergone the process of whitening and pressing in the usual manner. : In cleaning straw bonnets it is best to give them as much gloss and stiffening as possible. The gloss wil prevent dust from sticking to the surface, and the stiff ness will render them less liable to get out of shape when worn in damp weather. Fora similar reason, the wire round the inside of the edge should in all bonnets be very thick and stout. If the wire is too thin, even the wind will blow the brim out of shape. An excellent way of cleaning and ‘whitening straw or leghorn bonnets may be found in the House Book page 67. " In lining bonnets, always fit the lining on the outside of the brim. It is not only the least troublesome way, but the most certain of success. Nothing is more dis- figuring to a bonnet than an uneven puckered lining— | left too loose in some places, and stretched too tight in” others. If tne lining is drawn more to one side than the 822 MISS LESLIN’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. other, the brim will always set crookedly round. the face. _ The best way, is first to fit upon. the outside of the bon- net-front, a piece of thin, soft, white paper, pinning it on. smoothly and evenly, with numerous pins. . Then cut, it the proper shape; allowing it rather more than an inch all. round larger than the brim. From this paper cut out the silk lining; allowing still more for turning in at the edges, on account. of the silk ravelling. Then (having notched the edge of the lining all round) baste it on the inside of the brim, and try it on befére the glass, previous to sewing it in permanently. See that it is,perfectly smooth and even throughout. A white silk bonnet-lining should be of the most decided white, (a dead white, as it is called,) for if it has the least tinge of pearl, rose, blue or yellowish-white, it will be unbecoming to any face o1. complexion. Straw bonnets are frequently lined with white crape or tarletane. . The lining of a silk or velvet bonnet should always: be put in before the brim is sewed to the crown. . In trimming a bonnet, after the bows, bands, &c., have alr been arranged with pins, sew them on with a needle and thread; and afterwards withdraw the pins. If pins - are allowed to remain in, they leave a greenish speck whereyer they have been; besides denting the straw, and probably tearing it. Also, sew on the flowers, after you have arranged them to your satisfaction. Bonnet strings when somewhat soiied may be cleaned by rubbing them with scraped. Wilmington clay, or grease-ball, or else magnesia. Roll them on a ribbon- block with the clay upon them; let them rest a few hours; then brush off that clay, and put on some fresh Rot: the ribbon again on the block, and leave it till next day. You will find it look much cleaner. It is well always to buy an extra yard, or yard and a half of ribbon, to replace with new ones the bonnet strings when soiled. TO KEEP BONNETS AND SHAWLS WHITE, ETC. 323 To keep the bows of a bonnet in shape when put away in the bandbox, fill out each bow by placing rolls of wad- ding inside of all the loops. A piece of thin oiled silk introduced between the lining | and the outside, partly beneath the upper part of the brim, and partly at the lower part of the crown, will pre- vent any injury to the bonnet from perspiration of the head, or oiliness of the hair. In bespeaking a bonnet of a milliner, always request her to send you the frame to try on, before she covers it ; that you may see if it fits. _ When a bonnet is to be sent to a distant place in a wooden box, (bandboxes should never visibly travel,) to keep the bonnet steady, and prevent its tumbling or knocking about, sew very securely to the brim and back, some bits of strong tape, and fasten the other end of each bit of tape to the floor of the box, with very small tack nails. Fill all the loops and bows with wadding as above mentioned. A bonnet thus secured may travel uninjured from Maine to T'exas. — TO KEEP A BONNET WHITE.—If you havea white velvet or silk bonnet that looks well enough to wear a second season, lay beside it in the bandbox a cake of white wax, (such as you get at an apothecary’s for sixpence or a shilling,) cover the bandbox closely, and do not on any account open it till you are about to take the bonnet again into wear. You will then find the cake of wax much discoloured, but the bonnet as white as ever. Shawls of white silk or canton crape, or indeed any white articles, may be kept in the same manner by putting a cake of white wax in the box with them, and not opening it so as to admit the external air, till the season for wear- ing them has retufned. In bespeaking bandboxes, desire that they shall not be 324 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. lined with white paper. A lining of the coarsest brown paper is far preferable for preserving either the colours or the whiteness of any articles that are kept in them. The chloride of lime used in manufacturing white paper is very injurious to the colours of silks, and frequently causes in them spots and stains. The very coarse thick brown paper made of old ropes is far better; as the tar remaining about it partakes somewhat of the qualities of turpentine, and is therefore a preservative to colours. _ White ribbons, blonds, &c., should be kept wound on ribbon-blocks, and wrapped in the coarse brown iron- monger’s paper. WHALEBONES AND HOOKS.—The whalebones for dresses should always be perfectly straight, for if crooked they draw the body crooked wherever they are, and give it a warped or puckered look. Let them be stou. also; for if thin, they curve and break. In cutting them of the desired length, round off and smooth the edge of both ends; for if left rough, square, or sharp they will very soon pierce through the dress. If you case them in linen or iwilled tape, make the covering double, for about an inch at each end; and sew them on to the body-lining with very strong thread or silk. Secure them firmly and steadily at both ends, so that they may not slip up and down, and rub through to the outside of the body. For fastening dresses never use those hooks that have a sort “of bulb, or that spread out near the point. They catch very badly, and are troublesome both to fasten and un- fasten. Do not put black hooks on dresses that are to be washed, as they cause iron-mould. When a dress comes home from the wash with any of the hooks flattened in jroning, raise or open them by inserting beneath the hook the points of your scissors. See that not-a particle of colowred lining is introduced CUTTING PATTERNS, TO HEM BOBBINET, ETC. 325 - anywhere about a dress that is te be washed. No coloured lining-muslin will wash at all; but its colour or dye will run and streak the outside of the dress so as to spoil it. However dark a washable dress may be, the lining should be entirely of white linen or brown holland ; the smallest bit of coloured muslin will spoil itewhen washed. On no consideration let even a dark or black chintz dress have any black cotton cord about it; as when it comes from the wash it will be ruined with black streaks, from the dye of the cord. ee ee CUTTING OUT PATTERNS.—mIn taking the pat- tern or cutting out the shape of a cape, pelerine, mantilla, or any other article of dress, instead of using a newspaper for that purpose, (according to the general custom,) cut the pattern in coarse, low-priced muslin or calico. Then with a needle and thread sew or run all the different parts together, so that you can try it on and see if it fits, or if any alteration will be necessary in suiting it to your own ficure. Cut out the whole of the pattern, and not merely the half; otherwise you will not be able to try it on conveniently. The stiffness of paper and its liability to tear, render it far less suitable for pattern-cutting than coarse muslin; which, if not already in the house, can be bought for a mere trifle. —4+— TO HEM BOBBINET.—In making a collar, pele- rine, cape, scarf, or any article of bobbinet, you may hem it so as to prevent the usual inconvenience and disfigure- ment of the edges stretching out of shape after being washed, starched, and ironed. After turning down the hem, lay a very small cotton cord into the upper or ex- treme edge of the hem, and with a fine needle and thread secure the cord by running it closely along with short 28 326. MISS LESLIE'S 2 NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. — stitches. er pas thie tilts a second small cord into the other edge, or the edge that is to be hemmed down. It is well worth the trouble of thus going twice round with © a cord at each edge of the hem; which in consequence will remain ever firm and ‘straight after the. article 4 beenswashed. A When any part of a bobbinet article is cut bid or rounded in a semicircle, it will be best, instead of hem- ming, to face the edge with a bias slip of the same mate- rial, having a covered cording sewed in ; as in binding or facing the edge of a cape or pelerine. Without this precaution, the bias or rounded edge will lose all shape in being ironed. If new bobbinet is very stiff and full of creases, let it be damped and ironed before it is cut out. As bobbinet shrinks much in washing, every thing made of it should be allowed full large. It may be shrunk before cutting out, by dipping it into a pan or tub of cold water. As soon as it is wet all through, take it out and squeeze it with your hands till it ceases entirely to drip. Then open, stretch, and pull it, till you get it all straight and even. Next, fold it up smoothly, and wrap it in a clean towel. It will be ready for ironing by the . time an iron can be heated ; first trying the iron on some- thing very thin. ! A bobbinet, or any clear muslin ese should have the hems and tucks drawn out before washing; renewing them after the dress is done up. ‘The dress will never look well, if washed and cleassstanehied with the hem, &e., remaining in. a el : b TO STRENGTHEN THE HEM OF A SILK > DRESS.—In silk dresses the edge of the hem at the bottom of the skirt is apt to wear out (or cut as it is cailed) very soon, and look faggled or ravelled. ‘To prevent this, get some broad worsted braid of the same colour as the * CORDING DRESSES, WORKING SLIPPERS, ETC. 827 dress, or alittle darker, (but on no account lighter,) and run it on to the edge, on both sides, like a binding; with strong silk, and short close stitches. . he TO MAKE A COAT-DRESS OR GOWN SIT IN _ CLOSELY TO THE WAIST.—On finishing * the dress, take about a yard and a half (more or less) of rather broad twilled tape. Sew the tape strongly in three places to the lower extremity of the inside of the back, exactly where the body joins the skirt; using sewing-silk the colour of the dress. The tape must be fastened precisely in the middle, and at each of the side seams of the back. When you put on the dress, bring the tape round (pulling it downwards as you do so) and tie it in front under the skirt, and just below the ter- mination of the fore-body. By drawing the dress closely into the waist, it makes the back look hollow, and is a great improvement toghe figure. a ae CORDING DRESSES.—A dress that is to be washed, should be corded with the same material. A m-rino or mousseline de laine, if corded with silk, will be disfigured, after washing, by the silk always fading and making the dress look old. But a balzorine or barege had best be corded with silk, as they rarely bear washing, and the material is so slight that, if used for cording, it will fray and wear off almost directly The silk should be of the © darkest colour in the dress. Satin should always be corded with silk, (and silk of the best quality,) as satin . cording ravels and frays immediately. Velvet also should have silk cording. + DIRECTIONS FOR WORKING SLIPPERS.— Half a yard of canvas is a full pattern for a large pair 328 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ent of slippers. If the canvas is of extra width, three quarters of a yard will make two pair. It is well to get your shoemaker to cut out for you the size and form, in a piece of paper. They will look immensely large before they are made up, but will not be found so after wards. Hae Coloured engravings of slipper patterns are for sale in all the worsted and trimming stores. In making your selections, it is best to avoid those patterns that have white in them; as the white crewel will look soiled very soon, and give a dirty appearance to the whole slipper. You may, however, contrive to substitute for the white stitches the palest possible tints of pink, blue, or yellow. To work one pair of slippers, you will require from fifteen to twenty skeins of crewel. In selecting the crewel, place beside you the pattern, that you may match the tints with it; choosing them so as to correspond pre- cisely with those in the coloured engraving. It is best to go exactly by the pattern. If varied according to your own fancy, they will rarely look as well as when done in precise conformity to the taste and judgment of the prac- tised artist, who has designed the plate and its colouring. Generally speaking, you should have at least from four to six shades of each colour; the darkest to be nearly black, the lightest nearly white ; otherwise the effect will be dull and indistinct. Strong lights and shades are always of importance to brightness and beauty; even in worked slippers. Wind the crewels, separately, in balls;\and have a sufficient number of needles, so as to appropriate a needle to every shade. The needles must be large and blunt- pointed. Keep beside you, while working, something in which to stick the needles you are not using at the moment. A very simple and convenient thing for this purpose, is an empty gallicup, with a blank piece of —_— WORKING SLIPPERS, NEEDLE-WORK, ETC. 829 canvas stretched flat, and tied tightly over the top. Stick the needles into this*canvas; it is better than a pin- cushion. ae Slippers (like all other worsted work) should be done ma frame, the canvas stretched tightly; and tacked firmly in, with strong thread. Keep the pattern beside you all the time you are working; and follow every stitch precisely. Do the central part first; next the heel part; and then fill up with groundwork all the vacant space within the outline. The usual way is to work them in common cross-stitch ; but if done in tent-stitch or queen- stitch, the slippers will bé more elastic, much softer, and will take a smaller quantity of crewel. When you have finished working them, have the slippers made up by a very good shoemaker. ‘They will last a long time. Instead of canvas, you may work slippers on fine broad-cloth, such as is used for gentlemen’s coats. Cloth slippers require no filling up with groundwork; having only a cluster of flowers in the centre, and a small run- ning-pattern round the heel. You must baste upon the cloth a bit of canvas, a little larger than the space to be occupied by the flowers. Work the flowers upon this; taking every stitch quite through both the canvas and the cloth beneath it. When done, pull out the threads of the canvas from under the stitches, (they can be drawn out very easily,) and the flowers will remain in their proper form upon the cloth. This method of working slippers saves time, trouble, and crewel; yet they will be found less durable than if worked entirely on canvas, and with the whole ground filled up by crewel-stitches; cloth wearing out much sooner than worked canvas. When preparing to work slippers, do not have them previously cut out, as it wiil cause the canvas or cloth to stretch all round, and will spoil their shape ; besides being very troublesome to keep straight and even while working, 29% i 330 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. Having obtained from your shoemaker a paper or shape, (allowed extremely large, ) lay it down on the canvas, and mark out the form and size by a pen or pencil outline. Cloth slippers braided in a handsome pattern. with coloured braid, look much better and are done. far more expeditiously than when worked increwel. Bands or rims for velvet caps look very well when braided. The braid may be gold or silver. eee e NB tS _ TO WORK MERINO IN CROSS-STITCH.—If you determine to work merino in cross-stitch, in the common manner of worsted work, have ready a pattern accurately drawn and coloured, so as to represent the place and tint of every stitch ; and keep. it before you to look at, Having marked out, with a dot, the place for every sprig, baste over each place a bit of very fine canvas, leaving the raw edge. On this canvas work the sprigs; care- fully taking up with every stitch the merino beneath, as well as the canvas above it. Avoid drawing your hand too tight. When done, pull out, thread by thread, the canvas from under the needle-work; so as to leave the sprig resting on the merino only.. This you will find a much more easy process than it appears on description. Have a number of needles, one for every different shade, and thread them all in advance. A tumbler or gallicup with a piece of canvas stretched tightly, and tied down over the top, is a very convenient thing to have beside you to stick your threaded needles in, ia working worsted. —_———p—— TO BRAID MERINO DRESSES OR CLOAKS FOR CHILDREN.—Pattemis for braiding should be as continuous as possible, so as to avoid frequent cutting oft and fastening on of the braid. These patterns should “ - BRAIDING DRESSES OR CLOAKS, ETC. 3381 —— have nothing m them that stops short; all the parts fo} lowing and entwining, so as to connect with each other. For braiding, the dress must be cut out first, and the breadths sewed together, so that the border may run smoothly and regularly along, without any breaks or ill joined places. Wind your braid upon cards or corks, and reserve a sufficiency for raveling to sew on the rest with; which is far better than to sew it on with silk thread, as, of course, the raveling. matches the colour so exactly as to render the stitches imperceptible. The braid reserved for raveling should be cut into the usual length of needle-fulls; then ravelled, and put into long thread-papers. Having drawn the pattern on a strip of stiff white paper, prick it all along, according to its form or outline, with large, close pin-holes. ‘Then lay or baste it on the merino. ‘Take some pounce, (gum-sandarac finely pow- dered and sifted,) and with your finger rub it along the pricked outline of the paper-pattern. On removing the paper, you will find that the pounce-powder, going through the pin-holes, will have traced the pattern in small dots on the merino. ‘This will be a guide in sew- ing on the braid, which should be run on, with short, close stitches. A double row of braid, the inner or right- hand rowa much darker shade than the first, has a-raised or relieved look, which is very pretty ; particularly when the second row is of the same colour as the merino or ground, but of an infinitely darker shade. If you cannot match the merino with a braid exactly similar, select, always, one of a darker rather than a lighter shade. A light-coloured merino looks very well with a braiding of the same colour, but,of a shade con- suaerubly Garker. (Gray, fawn-colour, or scarlet merino appears to advantage braided with black; so, also, does ‘light blue or pale lilac. Salmon-colour looks well with 832 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. purple braiding ; and dark brown braided with light blue. or pink. The lining of a child’s — re Xie: of the same colour as the braiding. | brn daenaiela _ Braiding can be done with great ease and expan. A child’s dress or cloak may be bystane in two ts lasgann a Cloth isisels look very well braided in shaded pat- terns, with the rows of braid so close as to touch each other. CE: ER SATE TY » Cloth.covers for tabourets or stools can be braided: ‘so as to look infinitely handsomer and richer than those worked in worsted on canvas. ‘They should have a border all round, with corner-pieces, and a central pattern in the middle; all which can be done beautifully i in close braid- ing. |The pattern must be defined on the cloth by first. drawing it with a pen and ink on white paper; then vabldial the outline with a large pin, and laying pounce- powder along the pricked outline, so that the powder may fall through the holes, and thus trace it on the cloth, in the manner before mentioned. PR Lt i, ER DIRECTIONS FOR EMBROIDERING MERINO. | —Merino dresses are usually worked in small sprigs, re- | presenting a little flower or bud, with two or three green leaves. Blue, lilac, or purple flowers have generally a more tasteful effect for this purpose than red or yellow ones. They will be sufficiently brightened by a shaded. yellow spot in the centre. A beautiful sprig may be formed entirely of leaves, some of them comprising dif- ferent tints of green, and others of brown. Three green’ eaves, with two brown ones at the bottom of the sprig, ‘ook exceedingly gvell on a gray merino; also, on a scar- - et, crimson, or cherry-coloured ground. Mourning-gray should have black sprigs only. Gold-coloured flowers, if. properly shaded, look well on purple, dark brown, or EMBROIDERY, NEEDLE-WORK, ETC. 833. dark slate-coloured merino; but blue cr lilac will look better still. Blue and brown harmonize well; also very light blue and very dark purple. Pink flowers look best on a dark olive ground. Blue and red should never come together in a dress. The effect of all sprigs, spots, o1 stars will be greatly improved by working, on the right hand of each, a shadow of a colour similar to the merino but of a mich darker shade.; This dark shade along the right-hand side will give the sprig a relieved or raised appearance ; and, if well done, will make it look almost as if you could take it up with your fingers. Executed by a skilful embroidress, or by one who is a proficient in drawing, this mode of producing a shadow, that seems to come from behind the sprig, will-be found extremely beautiful. Weare surprised that is not more generally known and practised. Previous to working a dress, it is well to have the breadths of the skirts measured, and cut apart. The re- mainder, of course, is to be reserved for the body, sleeves, and pelerine; but do not have these parts fitted and cut out before embroidering. Though by that means you may save the trouble of doing a few unnecessary sprigs, you will lose more than you will gain; for the pieces, if cut out, will stretch out of shape, and ravel at the edges, so that it will be very difficult to put them well together when wanted. Also, if previously cut out into their respective shapes, the pieces cannot well be worked in a frame, which is always the best way of doing embroidery. You may work the dress with either soft-twisted silk, (not too fine,) or with Berlin wool or crewel. If worked with silk, it cannot possibly be washed to look well. Floss silk should never be used for this or any other em. broidery, as, though it fills up well, and looks beautifully at first, it almost immediately wears rough and fuzzy. Embroidery-stitch is far more elegant than cross-stitch, 884 MISS LESLIn’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. having none of its. stiffness, hardness, and ungraceful- ness; and being, besides, more easy, expeditious, and manageable ; and capable of a far erenien a of forms. me yey Prepare on a pasteboard drawing-card, an exact: wedloies of the sprig, drawn and coloured precisely as it is to»be worked; and you may put a dark back-ground behind one side of the sprig, of exactly the same tint as the me- rino. Mark the distances of the sprigs by measuring their places on the merino with a pair of compasses, (often called dividers,) or by means of a piece of card. Designate the place of each sprig by a dot with a red or white chalk pencil; the dot being the centre of the sprig. Rub, on a saucer, some water-colour paint of any colour that will show plainly on the merino, (which should first be stretched in a frame.) If you cannot get a frame, or prefer working on your hand, baste, under the place oc- cupied by each sprig, a small circular bit of stiff writing- paper; and be careful, while working, not to catch up the paper with the stitches of your ndédice When done, remove the paper, and the sprigs will look smooth and even. If you attempt to work it a on your hand, with no paper beneath, it is impossible to prevent: its puckering and drawing up. Fine embroidery must be worked with extremely close stitches in rows or ridges. Every other stitch should be short,and every other one long. In every row, the alternate long and short stitches should fit in, by extending’ a little beyond those of the neighbouring row, so as to blend well. If you have no knowledge of drawing, get your pattern- sprig done by some person that draws well, and that is familiar with the effect of lights and shades. ‘If your dress is to have a belt of the’ same, you may work a long strip of merino for that purpose; the pattern heing so arranged thatthe floweys will form a close row oe . oe CHINESS EMBROIDERY ON BOTH SIDES, ETC. 835 TE Te Te eT ec tcnnarnammamannmaias © iced or straight wreath. Allow this strip of merino full wide, so that there may be an ample sufficiency for turning in at the edges. Sleeve-bands, also, may be worked in this _ way. A two-yard-square of merino, embroidered in coloured flowers, and trimmed with a deep fringe, males a beau- tiful shawl. Ona dark brown or purple merino, flowers entirely of shaded blue, with light brown leaves and stalks interspersed among the green ones, will have a beautiful effect; very superior to the common tasteless and gaudy calico-style of introducing flowers of all colours—red, blue, and yellow. An olive merino shawl may have pink flowers entirely ; a slate, or dark gray, or a purple will look well with rich gold-coloured flowers. In all flower- borders, the introduction of brown leaves among the green will be a decided improvement. If the merino is light brown, or light gray, or pale olive, the flowers may be scarlet, cherry-colour, or crimson. For a black merino, the embroidery should be of shaded gray. Keep beside you, while working, a number of needles threaded with all the different shades of silk, and stuck in a’ flat pin-cushion, or something similar, so as to be always ready for use. a os CHINESE EMBROIDERY.—For this purpose, the embroidery-frame must be placed in a perpen- dicular or upright position, and two persons employed together; both equally skilled in needle-work. Get a carpenter to make an upright stand, somewhat in the form of a towel-rail, and about the usual height of a work- table ; having broad feet, that it may stand steadily, and a broad cross-bar just above them, and a shelf at the top, on which to lay the needle-cushions, silk balls, &c., with a raised ledge on each side of the shelf, to prevent their ¢ 306 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. rolling off. At each end of this shelf there must be slits down, into whieh put the upright ends of the Sra NAaTE: frame, secured with wooden pegs. : We will suppose that the article to be embroidered the same on both sides, is a plain canton-crape shawl, or a square of merino intended for a shawl. Stretch the shaw] tightly in the embroidery-frame, sewing it strongly to the linen; the pattern having been drawn on both sides with a camel’s-hair pencil dipped in water-colour paint, ofa tint a little darker than the shawl. The two ladies who are to work it, must sit one on each side; and as one sticks in the needle, the other must draw it through, and stick it in for the next stitch; to be drawn through by her companion. The fastenings on and off must be neatly concealed under the stitches. By thus working together, (each alternately sticking in and drawing out the same needle,) both sides will, of course, be embroidered exactly alike, so that not the slightest difference can be percep- tible. It is in this manner that canton-crape shawls are embroidered in China. ‘The sewing-silk must be of the best quality, not too fine or slack-twisted. Floss-silk will not do at all. , . ee ee * EMBROIDERING STANDARDS.—Military stand- ards have been successfully embroidered in the above manner. They should be made of very thick, strong India silk, satin not being the same on both sides. Instead of sew- ing-silk, standards had best be worked with chenille, such as comes on purpose for embroidering. Have a needle for every shade. An embroidered standard should always be copied from a painted model, executed by an artist; the model to stand in such a position that each of the two embroiderers may see it all the time. An outline of the mode] must be drawn on the silk. The most durable As at COLOURING FOR ARTIFICIAL FLOWERS, ETC. 837 colour for a standard is deep blue. Part of. the em- broidery (stars, for instance) may be done in gold or sil- ver thread. : -——+— FINE COLOURING FOR ARTIFICIAL FLOW- ERS.—For light blue and pink, buy, at a drug or paint store, what’ are called blue saucers and pink saucers. They contain the most beautiful tints of these colours. To use them, take a large clean camel’s-hair pencil, and dipping it into some water, liquefy a portion of the paint that is on the saucer, till you get the exact tint you desire. When you have enough, pour off the liquid into a tea- cup, and add a small drop of lemon-juice to each tea- spoonful of the colour. The lemon-juice (if used _pro- perly) will brighten and set the colour; and is indeed superior to any thing else for this purpose. But too much of this, or any other acid, will destroy the colour entirely. ‘Therefore be very careful in employing it; though no colouring for artificial flowers will be bright and clear without the addition of some little acid. Put the book-muslin, jaconet, white silk, or whatever mate- rials the flowers are to be made of, into the cup of liquid dye; and when the muslin has thoroughly imbibed the colour, take it out, stretch it evenly, and dry it in the shade. ‘Then press it with an iron entirely cold. A mixture of colour from both the blue and pink saucers will make lilac. ‘ For a yellow colour.—Get six cents’ worth of saffron ; put it into a bowl, and pour on cold water, in quantity ac- cording to the deepness or vividness of the tint that you wish. When it has infused sufficiently, pour off the liquid ; and, in proportion to its quantity, add to it, care- fully, four, five, or six drops of lemon-juice. for green.—Buy, ata druggist’s, one ounce of French berries. Put a tea-spoonful of them into a common-sized .” 338 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ~- tea-cup of boiling water. Cover it, ana tet at infuse naif _ an hour or more. Then (having poured it off ) add ta the liquid (according to its quantity) about five or six drops of lemon-juice. This infusion of French berries makes a bright grass-green. To render it lighter, add some saffron yellow. To make it darker, put to it some blue from the blue saucer. . For a brown dye.—Infuse, in cold water, some pieces of bark from the white or black walnut tree; exposing it for several days to the sun and air, while it is soaking. Crimson.—You may make a beautiful crimson for shading artificial flowers with a camel’s-hair pencil, by taking some of the fresh petals of the piony, when the * flower is in full bloom. Lay them ona plate, and mash and press them with the back of a silver spoon, till you have extracted as much of their red juice as you want. To about twelve drops of the piony-juice, add one small drop of lemon-juice ; and use the colour for shading the flowers, not for dyeing them. For a bright red shading.—Press out, in tHe: above manner, the juice of full-blown bergamot flowers; add- ing, also, (as above,) a drop of. lemon-juice to brighten and set the colour. . Blue shading.—A beautiful blue shading can be ob- tained. by pressing and mashing on a plate, the flower- leaves of the common blue flag or iris; adding, always, a very little lemon-juice. With this, and a camel’s-hair pencil, you can put the shades and streaks into blue flowers, whose first tint has been dyed from the blue saucer. A mixture of crimson piony-juice, and blue flag-juice, will make a fine purple for shading. - When a little touch of dark brown or black is required for flowers, dip into water the end of a cake of umber, . “ NEEDLE-WORK, MAKING A TABOURET, ETC.’ 339 pistre, or indian ink, from a colour-box; rub the paint on . a plate, and apply it with a camel’s-hair pencil. All these dyes and shading colours for artificial flowers will (as we know) be found beautiful on trial. An exact ‘knowledge of the precise proportions of the colouring ma- terials cannot, however, be correctly obtained without a little practice. —_— DIRECTIONS FOR MAKING A TABOURET.— A tabouret is a square stool, tall enough for a grown per- son to sit on, and about the usual height of a chair. Get a carpenter to make a strong square box of well-seasoned wood, planed smooth both inside and out. Instead of having the lid or cover-piece exactly at the top, it should be placed below it, four or five inches down the inside, so as to leave a vacant space between itself and the upper edges of the box; to the sides of which it must be well secured, either with glue, or with small headless tack- nails. ‘The wooden bottom of the box must be placed two or three inches up, so as to leave a space at each end of the lower corners for concealed castors, that will cause the tabouret to be moved easily on the carpet. The carpenter’s part of the work being thus accom- plished, the remainder of the tabouret can be easily com- pleted by the ladies of the family, and at far less cost than if done by an upholsterer. We have seen beautiful tabourets made in this seat and looking as if made entirely at a shop. Get about seven or eight yards of strong, broad, very stout’ webbing, such as 1s used by saddlers or trunk- makers. You may either procure it of them, or at one of the large fringe stores. Nail the webbing to the upper edges of the box, across the vacant top, so as to interlace in small open squares. ‘This is to give elasticity to the seat when finished. Make a square cushion of thick, 840 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. strong brown linen; allowing it, each way, three or for — mches larger than the top of the box; as the linen wil: take up that much, at least, in sewing and stuffing. Sew the linen strongly round three sides, and leave the fourth | open, for putting in the stuffing. Then stuffit, hardand . evenly, with curled horse-hair, which you may obtain at a cabinet-maker’s or an upholsterer’s. Afterwards, cover this cushion with damask, cloth, velvet, or some other handsome and durable article, and bind the edges all round. Next cover the four sides of the exterior of the box with the same material as the outside covering of the cushion ; stretching it on very tightly and smoothly, and securing it to the wood with small tack-nails. While one person is driving in the nails, another must hold the box fast, and stretch and smooth the covering. When this has been neatly accomplished, nail on the cushion to the top edge of the box, above the webbing ; hammering the tacks into the binding. Finish by tacking a hand some fringe all round the cushion, so as to conceal the binding. If you cannot get a fringe exactly the colour of the outside cover, choose one that is a good contrast,— either much darker or much lighter. A light blue ta- bouret may have purple, brown, black, or deep orange- coloured fringe. One of crimson or scarlet may haye a fringe of black, dark green, or gold-colour. For a green tabouret, the fringe may be black, purple, or lilac. A brown or purple tabouret may have a light blue or gold- coloured fringe. A gray one may be fringed with dark brown, dark green, or purple. Light blue may be fringed with a very dark blue; light green with a very dark green; pink with crimson; light brown with a very dark brown; and bright scarlet with very deep crimson. You may suspend, all round, deep festoons of thick, rich cord, corresponding with the fringe; one festoon to hang SUMMER HEARTH, FIRE SCREENS, ETC. 841 at each of the four sides. The corners may be finished with long tassels.’ In a similar manner, you can make an excellent and handsome footstool, employing a carpenter to construct the frame or box. The footstool may be covered with rich carpeting, trimmed with worsted fringe. THE SUMMER HEARTH.—Summer blowers, ‘of handsomely ornamented iron, are now much used to con- ceal the empty coal-grates, during the season of warm weather. Like chimney-boards, they render the room very close, by entirely excluding the fresh air that may enter from the chimney. Certainly, in a bed-chamber, it is best that the fire-place should always be left entirely open. BREAKFAST PARTIES.—Black tea; green tea; coffee; chocolate; hot cakes of various sorts; omelets ; birds; game; oysters, stewed, fried, and pickled; cold tongue; cold ham; biscuit sandwiches; boned turkey, cold; potted or pickled lobster; raised French pie; pigeon, partridge, or moorfowl pie; mushrooms fried, broiled, or stewed; jellies; marmalade; honey; fresh ~ ECONOMICAL DINNERS—SPRING, ETC. 869 fruity or sweetmeats, according to tne season; a large almond sponge-cake. The table decorated with flowers. At a breakfast party the dress of the ladies should be more simple than at a dinner or a supper party. $e ECONOMICAL DINNERS FOR SMALL FAMI- LIES.—The receipts for these plain dishes are generally to be found in Miss Leslie’s “ Directions for Cookery,”’ a work to which the present book is supplemental. SPRING.—Boiled ham; spinach; asparagus; poke; potatoes*—Rhubarb pie. Veal cutlets; cold ham; spinach; turnips; poke; as: paracus—Baked batter pudding. Broiled halibut cutlets; cold ham; spinach; turnips; asparagus—Boiled indian pudding. Calf’s liver fried with ham; asparagus; turnips; poke; spinach—Rhubarb pudding. Boiled leg of mutton; stewed onions; turnips; car- rots—Baked rice pudding. Family soup ; fried ham and eggs; asparagus; beets; spinach—Baked indian pudding. Corned beef; cabbage ; carrots; stewed onions; beets —Fritters. Broiled shad; cold corned beef; carrots; spinach ; asparagus—Lastern pudding. i Veal pie; fried ham and eggs; asparagus; spinach ; turnips—Gooseberry fool. * There is no necessity for repeating the mention of potatoes. It will ef course be understood that potatoes shuuld constitute a portion of every dinner. Also that pickles should always be on the table with beef and mutton. 870 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. Roast veal; peas; asparagus; tne pudding. . Boiled rock-fish; hashed veal; peas; nae aspa- ragus—Farmer’s rice pudding. Boiled ham; peas; beans ; spinacie-uflinelaaierll pie. Veal soup; cold ham; stewed onions; beans; peas— Currant pie. Roast beef; horse-radish; peas; beans; asparagus— Custard in a dish. Fresh cod-fish boiled; cold roast beef; Lomemdish s peas; beans; spinach—Eastern pudding. Mutton soup; the meat that was boiled in it; stained onions ; turnips; suet dumplings—Currant pie. Roast lamb with mint-sauce; asparagus; peas; spinach—Custard in a dish. ~ Boiled black-fish; cold roast lamb; spring salad ; beans; peas—Gooseberry pudding. Green pea-soup; veal pleted salad ;. peas ; sear Currant pie. Boiled ham; fried chickens; peas; beans; salad— Fritters or pancakes. Roast fillet of veal; cold hal peas; beans; salad— Gooseberry pie. ; Hashed veal; broiled ham with eggs; peas; beans— Boiled indian pudding. - _ Boiled sea-bass; beef-steaks ; onions ; beans; peas— Currant pie. ' Stewed breast of veal; fried ham with eggs; peas; beans—Gooseberry pudding. Fresh cod-fish boiled; mutton chops; stewed onions, beans ; peas—Baked batter pudding. Baked beef with a batter pudding under it; beans; peas—Gooseberry pie. Broiled mackerel; stewed mutton; stewed onions; beans ; peas—Boiled rice pudding. ~ PLAIN DINNERS FOR SUMMER. 371 Boiled halibut ; beef-steaks; onions; beans; peas— - Currant pudding. Salt cod-fish; stewed onions; veal cutlets; beans; -peas—Baked rice pudding. aaa PLAIN DINNERS FOR SUMMER.—Clam soup ; beef-steaks ; stewed onions; peas; beans; summer cab- bage—Cherry pie. Boiled ham; veal cutlets; cucumbers; beans; peas— Custard pudding. Cat-fish soup; cold ham; cucumbers; peas; beans— Cherry pie. Stewed fillet of veal; cold ant squashes ; beans ; beets—Batter pudding, baked. Boiled black-fish ; beef-steak pie; squashes; beans ; beets—Cherry pudding. Fried sea-bass; stewed knuckle of veal; cucumbers; squashes; beans—Raspberry pudding. Boiled mackerel; beef-steaks; onions; cucumbers; beans; squashes—Baked rice pudding. Clam soup; stewed fillet of veal; cucumbers; beets; fried egg-plant—Sweet potatoe pudding. Beef-steaks with stewed onions; boiled crabs ; cucum- _bers; squashes; boiled corn—Raspberry pie. Stewed leg of mutton; turnips; squashes; beets; cu- cumbers—Blackberry pie. Boiled ham; clam fritters; beans; summer cabbage ; corn—Custard pudding. ° Clam pie; cold ham; sweet potatoes; lima beans ; squashes—Boiled batter pudding. Boiled fowls; fried ham and eggs; lima beans; sweet potatoes; beets—Raspberry pie. Roast ducks; stewed egg-plant; lima beans ; ; sweet potatoes ; turnips—Custasd. ie 872 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. Boiled leg of mutton; nasturtian sauce; turnips; to- matoes ; beets—Blackberry pie. | Pilau; clam pie; lima beans; mashed pacsinden to. matoes—Boiled indian pudding. Beef-steak pie; stewed egg-plant; turnips; lima beans ; boiled corn—Boiled rice pudding. ? Boiled rock-fish; stewed breast of veal; sweet pota- toes ; tomatoes; lima bes~s—Green corn pudding. Roast pig with apple sauce; turnips; lima beans; sweet potatoes—Raspberry { ‘e. Boiled har.; fried chickens; lima beans; tomatoes, boiled corn—Green gage pie. Pot-pie; mashed turnips; lima beans; sweet potatoes, cucumbers—Fritters. Fried sea-bass; boiled tuwls; cauliflower; tomatoes ; lima beans—Peach pie. Roast ducks; cauliflower; tomatoes; lima beans— Green gage pudding. Boiled ham; clam fritters; summer cabbage; lima beans—Apple pie. Fried chickens; cold ham; cauliflower; tomatoes , sweet potatoes—Sweet potatoe pudding. , Fried calf’s liver; cold ham; chitterlings or - calf’s tripe; tomatoes; cauliflower; sweet potatoes—Peach pie. ; Stewed beef’s heart; clam fritters; sweet potatoes ; tomatoes ; squashes—Squash pudding. Corned beef; cabbage; carrots; stewed onions; to- matoes—Plum pie. Veal cutlets; cold corned beef; tomatoes ; squashes ; boiled corn—Blackberry pudding Harico of mutton; fried chickens; sweet potatoes ; ‘ima beans; beets; boiled corn—Peach pudding. Chowder; mutton chops; turnips; stewed tomatoes ; boiled corn—Huckleberry pudding . PLAIN DINNERS FOR AUTUMN. 373 - Stewed -breast of veal; tomatoes; cauliflower; lima beans—Green gage pudding. Clam pie; veal cutlet; lima beans; boiled corn— Boiled indian pudding. Halibut cutlets; roasted beef’s heart; tomatoes; sweet potatoes ; boiled corn—Plum pie. Cat-fish soup; chicken pie; beans; peas; tomatoes —Raspberry pudding boiled. Sea-shore dinner.—Chowder; crabs; broiled mack- erel; potatoes—Raisin pudding. a pt eke PLAIN DINNERS FOR AUTUMN.—Fresh pork, stewed with sweet potatoes; lima beans; tomatoes; corm —Plum pie. Roast ducks ; stewed ego-plant ; tomatoes ; lima beans ; squashes ; turnips—Peach pie. Ochra soup ; beef-steaks ; tomatoes ; lima beans ; sweet potatoes—Sweet potatoe pudding. Roast leg of pork, with apple sauce; sweet potatoes ; lima beans—Custard. Rabbit soup; boiled ham; cauliflower; lima. beans ; tomatoes—Peach pie. Ham pie; veal cutlets; salsify ; sweet Camincke ; lima beans—Peach pudding. Rabbit pot-pie; broiled ham with eggs; lima beans: sweet potatoes—Baked bread pudding. Pigeon soup; beef-steaks; onions; tomatoes; lina beans ; sweet potatoes—Apple pie. Stewed beef; tomatoes; turnips; ‘salsify ; sweri pota- toes; turnips—Bread and butter pudding. Ox-tail soup; fried rabbits; lima beans; beets; sweet potatoes—Peach pie. 32 374 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. — Roast leg of mutton ; stewed onions; russian eeES 3 ; peets—A pple rice pudding. siak fe Mutton harico; fried chickens ; ers : salsify ; ; lima beans—Eastern pudding. v aby Pork-and beans ; stewed rabbits; tomatoes; sweet po- tatoes ; russian turnips—Boiled indian pudding. Oyster soup; roast goose with apple sauce; turnips ; sweet potatoes—Sweet potatoe pudding. Boiled fowls with celery sauce; oyster fritters; tur- nips; sweet potatoes; winter-squash—Apple pie. Roast pork with apple sauce; turnips} salsify ; toma- toes ; sweet potatoes—Baked batter pudding. . Roast beef with horse-radish ; sweet potatoes ; turnips ; tomatoes ; cold-slaw—Baked apple pudding. Mutton soup; the meat that was boiled in it; hashed beef; turnips ; beets; tomatoes—Baked rice pudding. Fresh pork stewed with parsnips; turnips; winter- squash or cashaw—-Apple dumplings. Beef bouilli; oyster fritters; turnips; stewed onions ; Wwinter-squash—A pple pie. Stewed lego of mutton ; russian turnips ; uae potatoes ; salsify—Baked bread pudding. Hashed mutton; fried ham with eggs; turnips ; toma- toes ; winter-squash—A pple pudding, boiled. Beef-steak pot-pie ; turnips; tomatoes; stewed pump- kin—Fritters or pancakes. Boiled corned pork ; cabbage; winter-squash ; turnips —Bread and butter pudding. ? Roast mutton ; turnips; cold-slaw ; beets; tomatoes— Boiled rice pudding. Bean soup; cassarole of mutton; turnips ; ‘beets; Sold slaw—Apple pie. — Pork pie with apples in it; veal cutlets; ‘turnips; beets ; comatoes—Boiled indian pudding. << PLAIN DINNERS FOR WINTER. 3875 Corned beef; cale cannon; tomatoes; beets’; turnips ; carrots—Indian fritters. Cold corned beef;- tripe and oysters; stewed onions ; cold-slaw—Pumpkin pudding. | ’ Fresh beef stewed with parsnips; tomatoes; turnips ; beets—Baked rice pudding. Boiled ham; cabbage; tomatoes; stewed pumpkin; turnips—A pple pie. : Stewed beef’s-heart ; cold ham; winter-squash ; beets —FEastern pudding. Pigeon pie; smoked tongue; winter-squash ; turnips ——Apple rice pudding. Ox-tail soup; veal cutlets; turnips; tomatoes ; winter squash—Dried peach pudding. : oe PLAIN DINNERS FOR WINTER.—Boiled ham cabbage; beets; cold-slaw; hominy—Apple pie. Chicken pie; cold ham; turnips; beets; hominy— Boiled batter pudding. Pease soup; beef-steaks; onions; turnips; beets ; cold-slaw—Baked rice pudding. * Roast goose with apple sauce; turnips; beets; win- ter-squash—Cranberry pie. Pork and beans ;. stewed fowl ; Winter-squash ; turnips —Eastern pudding. Salt cod-fish with onions and eggs; parsnips; pigeon dumplings; turnips; beets—Apple pie. Pickled pork with pease-pudding; winter-squash ; homin y—Molasses pie. Roast turkey with cranberry sauce; turnips; winter- squash ; salsify—Custard pudding. Pork pie with apples ; oyster fritters ; turnips ; stewed pumpkin—Boiled bread pudding. Round of beef stewed ; parsnips ; cale cannon ; carrots; turnips—Baked indian pudding. i 876 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. Fried rabbits; cold beef; turni UPS § winter-squash ; ho- miny—Boiled batter pudding. Pot-pie; winter-squash ; turnips; beets—Pumpkin pudding. | Boiled corned pork with indian dumplings ; med pumpkin ; turnips—Baked bread pudding. Bean soup; beef-steaks; onions; turnips; winter squash—Squash pudding. _ Boiled leg of mutton with nasturtian sauce; turnips» stewed pumpkin; hominy—Pumpkin pudding. Salt cod-fish ; onions; eggs; paren pork-steaks— Apple pot-pie. Boiled ham ; cabbage ; winter-squash ; hominy—Dried peach pie. Pilau; mutton chops; turnips; ite Rep hetros volte slaw—Apple bread pudding. Roast fowls; turnips; winter-squash ; salsify—Cran- berry pie. Roast beef; horse-radish; winter-squash; turnips cold-slaw—Pumpkin pudding. Family soup; veal cutlets; turnips ; ronicasiaitied parsnips—Dried apple pie. Roast pork; apple sauce; turnips; stewed pumpkin ; parsnips—Baked rice pudding. Beef-steak pudding; fried ham and eggs; turnips ; winter-squash—Rice custard. Boiled fowls; oyster fritters ; turnips ; winter-squash —Carrageen blanc-mange. Beef-steak pot-pie ; turnips; parsnips.; winersquah —Apple bread pudding. Corned beef; cabbage; turnips; carrots; beets—In- dian fritters. Stewed rabbits; cold corned beef; cale cannon}; wins ter-squash; parsnips—Boiled indian pudding. * FAMILY DINNERS FOR SPRING. 377 Ox-tail soup; roast leg of mutton; turnips; winter- squash ; parsnips—Apple dumplings. Beef-steaks broiled; muttan harico; onions; hominy ; turnips; beets—Indian fritters. Christmas dinner.—Roast turkey; cranberry sauce ; boiled ham; turnips; beets; winter-squash—Mince pies. New Year's dinner.—A pair of roast geese with apple sauce; smoked tongue; turnips; cold-slaw; winter- squash—Plum pudding. —4— ‘VERY NICE FAMILY DINNERS FOR SPRING. —Spring soup; roast fillet of veal; (potatoes always 5) peas; stewed spinach—Rhubarb pie; custards. Stewed rock-fish: roast lamb with mint sauce; peas: asparagus ; pdlke—Gooseberry pie; boiled custard. Clam soup ; roast loin of veal; stewed peas; spinaca , asparagus—T'apioca pudding; gooseberry fool. Stewed sea-bass; roast beef; stewed spinach ; stewee peas; asparagus; beets—Currant pie; custards. Stewed halibut; chicken pie; stewed peas; stewed beans; asparagus—Boiled lemon pudding; gooseberry pie. _ Green pea soup; roast fillet of veal; beans; peas; asparagus—Gooseberry pudding; boiled custard. ,Boiled ham; roast ducks with apple sauce; stewed peas; beans; asparagus—Currant pie; green custard. Cat-fish soup ; roast lamb with mint sauce; peas; as- paragus; spinach—Ground rice spudding; gooseberry fool. Clam pie; roast loin of veal ; stewed peas ; asparagus ;, stewed spinach—Currant pudding; red custard. Maccaroni soup; roast ducks with apple sauce; peas; asparagus ; spinach—Currant pie; gelatine custard. 32* 878 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. Baked shad; stewed fillet of veal ; peas ; asparagus ; spinach—Soufilé pudding ; gooseberry pie. Roast lamb with mint sauce; rte W See peas; beans; asparagus—Ground rice pudding ; currant le. Corned fillet of veal ; clam pie; stewed peas; spinacn; veans ; asparagus—Gooseberry pudding; green fritters. Roast beef; stewed sweetbreads with oysters; beans; peas; asparagus—Gelatine blanc-mange; gooseberry fool. Halibut cutlets; stewed lamb; peas; beans; aspara- gus; beets—Maccaroni pudding; currant pie. Boiled ham; fowl and oysters; asparagus; spinach peas—Gooseberry pie; custards. Green pea soup; chicken pie; broiled ham; peas; aspargus; beans—Biscuit pudding; gooseberry fool. —_+— - FAMILY DINNERS FOR SUMMER—VERY NICE.—Fresh. salmon ‘stewed ; roast ducks with stewed currant sauce; beans; peas; turnips—Cherry pie; cus- tards.’ . Clam soup; roast fowls; peas; turnips 5 adits Raspberry charlotte; green fritters. | Boiled ham; sweetbreads with cal Rewienty Lidin beans; tomatoes; baked egg-plant—Sunderlands ; straw- berries and cream. | Roast fillet of veal; smoked tongue; lima beans; to- matoes; stewed ego-plant—Sweet potatoe pudding; fla- voured curds and whey. % Baked salmon; terrapin veal ; chiblond pie; sweer potatoes; lima beans; tomatoes—Charlotte pudding, strawberries and cream. _ Chickens stewed whole; boiled ham; summer ‘cab- bage; beans; sweet potatoes—Maccaroni pudding; raspberries and cream. | VERY NICE FAMILY AUTUMN DINNERS. 879° es Roast beef; fried chickens; cauliflowers; tomatoes ; lima beans; sweet potatoes—Cherry pie; custards. Roast ducks with currant sauce; smoked tongue; stewed onions; lobster salad; stewed beans; peas— Boiled lemon pudding; strawberries and cream. Bei:ied ham; tomato chickens; beans; turnips; egg plant; sweet potatoes—Sweet potatoe pasha? rasp- berries and cream. Clam pie; stewed wild ducks; sweet potatoes; turnips; squashes ; egg-plant—Peach pie: custards. Salmon cutlets; chicken pie; smoked tongue; lima beans; sweet potatoes; squashes—Sweet potatoe pud- ding; floating island. Chicken gumbo; boiled ham; young corn omelet; lima beans; sweet ie ti pie; flavoured curds and whey. | : Roast pig with apple sauce; chicken pie ; lima beans ; tomatoes young corn omelet—Charlotte pudding; custard. *Ochra soup; roast beef; tomatoes; lima beans; squashes; turnips—Squash pudding; fritters. Stewed sea-bass; boiled ham; clam fritters; sweet potatoes; tomatoes; lima beans—Peach pie; boiled custard. Baked salmon-trout; pigeon pie; tomatoes; lima beans ; sweet potatoes; cucumbers—Sweet potatoe pudding ; peaches and cream. Sea-shore dinner.—Oyster soup; clam pie; stewee rock-fish ; crabs; mashed potatoes—-Boiled lemon pud- ding. —+— VERY NICE AUTUMN DINNERS FOR FAMI- LIES.—Autumn soup; Roast fowls; smoked tongue: lima beans; squashes; sweet potatoes—S weet potatoe pudding ; apple pie. 880 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. Italian pork ; roast ducks with apple sauce; squashes ; egg-plant; lima beans—Peach pie; gelatine custard. Oyster soup; roast beef; sweet potatoes; squashes ; egg-plant; lima beans—Quince pudding; bread fritters. Sea-bass with tomatoes ; boiled ham ; pigeon pie ; sweet potatoes; stewed red cabbage ; lima beans—Squash purl ding; preserved peaches. . Ham pie; sweetbreads with oysters ; sweet roiatoeary lima beans; egg-plant—Boiled lemon pudding ; preserved quinces. Rabbit soup; roast beef; cold-slaw; lima beans; to- matoes ; sweet potatoes—Sago pudding; preserved to- matoes. Roast pork with apple sauce; sweet potatoes; lima beans ; ego-plant—Sweet potatoe pudding; fritters. Boiled ham ; roast fowls ; stewed red cabbage ; turnips; sweet potatoes; lima beans—Squash pudding ; apple pie. | Roast fillet of veal; cold ham; broccoli; turnips ; lima beans; sweet Poatieanp eae rice pudding; pre- served peaches. Stewed pork with sweet potatoes; fried rabbits; onions; turnips; lima beans—Peach pudding ; custards. Roast goose with apple sauce ; smoked tongue ; onions; turnips; lima beans; sweet potatoes—LEve’s pudding; floating island. _ Oyster soup; chicken pie; beef-steaks; onion sauce ; tomatoes ; turnips 5 sweet potatoes —Sweet potatoe pud- ding; preserved peaches. os Roast fowls; corned beef; stewed red cabbage; tur- nips; tomatoes—Apple custard ; preserved tomatoes. Boiled rock-fish ; roast pork with apple sauce; sweet potatoes; turnips; tomatoes—Baked EPP pudding ; * fritters. Oyster soup; venison steaks; tomato sweetbreads ; YERY NICE FAMILY WINTER DINNERS. 3881 turnips.; sweet potatoes—Pumpkin pudding; preserved tomatoes. ; Venison pie; smoked tongue; broccoli; sweet pota- toes; turnips; winter-squash—Eve’s pudding ; fritters. Roast venison ; oyster fritters ; turnips ; Sweet pota- toes; winter-squash—Apple pie ; boiled custard. Ochra soup; roast fowls; smoked tongue; turnips; sweet potatoes; broccoli—Pumpkin pudding; baked pears... le Wi WINTER DINNERS FOR FAMILIES—VERY NICE.—Winter soup; roast beef; stewed onions; cold- slaw; turnips—Apple pie; custards. Boiled ham; oyster pie; turnips; parsnips; stewed pumpkin—Baked rice pudding ; preserved tomatoes. Chicken pot-pie; oyster fritters; turnips; parsnips ; beets—Pumpkin pudding; preserved peaches. Boiled turkey with oyster sauce; smoked tongue ; tumips ; salsify ; beets—Cranberry pie; custards. Roast fowls with cranberry sauce; oyster fritters; - turnips; beets; winter-squash—Potatoe pudding; pre- served quinces. Bean soup; roast pork with apple sauce; turnips; pumpkin; beets—Pumpkin pudding; preserved to- matoes. ors: Roast beef; scolloped oysters; turnips; parsnips; stewed beets ;* winter-squash—Cranberry pie; _ boiled custard. Pease soup; roast fowls; turnips; beets; La tlds hominy ; winter-squash—Squash pudding; baked apples. Roast turkey with cranberry sauce; boiled ham; win- ter-squash; turnips; salsify—Mince pudding; lemon custards. Ham pie; oyster fritters; turnips; winter-squash ; salsify ; stewed beets—Raisin pudding; baked pears. 882 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. | : | Venison soup; roast fowls; stewed beets; turnips winter-squash—Sago pudding ; baked apples. Roast venison with currant jelly ; chicken curry ; tur - nips; winter-squash; salsify—-Cranberry pie; custards Roast fowls; boiled corned beef; cabbage; carrots parsnips; turnips—Apple pie; boiled custard. Roast beef; stewed fowls; cold-slaw; stewed beets turnips; hominy; salsify—Plum pudding; cranberry pie. ~Soup a la Julienne; roast goose with apple sauce; scolloped oysters; turnips; stewed onions; stewed beets —Pumpkin pudding; preserved pears. Roast mutton; chicken curry; cold-slaw; beets; tur- nips; stewed pumpkin—Eve’s pudding; baked apples Venison pasty ; fricasseed chickens; turnips; salsify ; winter-squash—Plum pudding; preserved tomatoes. Roast beef; fricasseed fowls; cold-slaw; beets; tur- nips; winter-squash—Mince pie; custards. Boiled turkey with oyster sauce; boiled ham; stewed beets; turnips; cold-slaw—Pumpkin pudding; baked apples. Bean soup; cold ham; reast fillet of veal; stewed beets; turnips; winter-squash—Mince pie; boiled cus- . tard. A-la-mode beef; scolloped oysters ; turnips; carrots ; beéts; cold-slaw—Carrot pudding; preserved pears. Christmas and New Years’ dinners.—Boiled turkey with oyster sauce; two roast geese with apple sauce; roasted ham; chicken pie; stewed beets; cold-slaw; turnips; salsify ; winter-squash—Plum pudding; mince pie; lemon custards; cranberry pie. . Roast turkey with cranberry sauce; boiled fowls with celery sauce; boiled ham; goose pie; turnips; winter- squash; salsify; cold-slaw; beets—Mince pudding boiled ; lemon pudding baked; pumpkin pudding. COMPANY DINNERS FOR SPRING. 883 Mock turtle soup; roast turkey with cranberry sauce ; boiled turkey with celery sauce; roasted ham; smoked tongue; chicken curry; oyster pie; beets; cold-slaw; winter-squash ; salsify; fried celery—Plum pudding ; mince pie; calves’-feet jelly; blanc-mange. —+—. COMPANY DINNERS—SPRING.—1. Oyster soup; boiled sheep’s-head fish; roasted ham; white fricassee ; chickens stewed whole; terrapin veal; sweetbread cro- quettes ; asparagus; stewed peas; stewed spinach; fried celery ; maccaroni—Lemon pudding; almond pudding; calves’-feet jelly; vanilla ice-cream. 2. Maccaroni soup; stewed rock-fish; boiled ham; brown fricassee; veal rissoles ; chicken rice pudding, Jarded sweetbreads; asparagus loaves; asparagus ome- let; French spinach; French peas; stewed beets—Rhu- barb cups; transparent pudding ; charlotte russe ; lemon ice-cream. 3. French white soup; baked sheep’s-head fish; boiled ham; lamb cutlets, the French way; roasted sweetbreads; beef’s tongue stewed; French chicken pie; maccaroni; stewed peas; stewed beans; aspara- gus; stewed spinach—Omelet soufflé; orleans pudding; blanc-mange; orange ice-cream. 4, Fine clam soup; halibut cutlets; roasted ham; brown fricassee; broiled sweetbreads; pigeon pie; lob- ster rissoles; asparagus omelet; maccaroni; lettuce peas; asparagus ; French spinach; potatoe snow—Boiled al- mond pudding; sweetmeat fritters; vanilla flammery ; cake syllabub. 5. Green pea soup; stewed sea-bass; French ham pie; baked tongue; cutlets a la Maintenon; fricasseed chickens ; maccaroni; asparagus; stewed peas; stewed beans— Marietta pudding; Spanish blanc-mange; calves’. feet jelly; lemon ice-cream. - 884 MISS LESLIR’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. 6. Asparagus soup; stewed halibut; roasted ham ; chicken curry ; fricasseed sweetbreads ; terrapin’ veal ; thicken patties; maccaroni; lettuce peas; potatoe snow ; stewed beans; stewed beets—Lady’s pudding; ote custard; wine fritters; gooseberry water-ice. +i 7. Friar’s chicken; halibut cutlets; boiled ea French chicken pie; sweetbread croquettes; lamb cut- lets, French way; lobster patties; Columbus eggs; ‘French peas; stewed beans; stewed beets; potatoe snow—Orleans pudding?; ; orange tarts ; pistachio cream ; iced jelly. 8. Rich veal soup; stewed carp ; boiled ham 3 sweet- breads stewed with oysters; roast ducks; soft crabs ; chicken rice pudding; stewed peas; stewed beans; stewed beets: potatoe snow—Maccaron pudding; red custard ; chocolate cream; almond ice-cream. COMPANY DINNERS—SUMMER.—1. Duck soup; fresh salmon stewed; roasted ham; French snicken pie; veal olives; sweetbreads with cauli- _ flowers; baked clams; stewed lobster; fried artichokes; scolloped tomatoes ; lettuce peas; stewed beans; lettuce chicken salad—Pine-apple pudding; currant ice; iced jelly ; strawberries and cream. 2. Pigeon.soup; cream trout; baked tongue; terrapin veal; clam sweetbreads; chicken curry; roast ducks fried cauliflower; French peas; stewed beans; lobster salad—Lady’s pudding; pine-apple tarts; raspberry charlotte; strawberry ice-cream. - 3. The best clam soup; roasted salmon; boiled ham; rice pie; tomato chickens; sweetbread eroquettes; veal olives; lobster patties; cauliflower maccaroni; lima beans; stuffed ege-plant; sweet potatoes—Charlotte russe; cherry water-ice; vanilla nai its iced jelly. COMPANY DINNERS FOR SUMMER. 88) A, Lobster soup; baked salmon-trout; tongue pie; roast ducks ; fricasseed chickens; sweetbreads with cauliflowers; reed-birds; lettuce peas; stewed beans; stewed beets; Sydney Smith’s salad—Almond pudding ; orange pudding; vanilla ice-cream; Spanish blanc- mange. * , | 5. Maccaroni soup; salmon steals; French ham pie; chickens stewed whole; white fricassee ; lobster rissoles ; tomato sweetbreads; lima beans; sweet potatoes; young’ corn omelet; potatoe snow; fried cauliflower; salad— French charlotte; vanilla blanc-mange; lemon custards; raspberry ice-cream. | . 6. Rich white soup; boiled salmon; roasted ham ; stewed ducks; boiled fowls; plovers ; scolloped tomatoes lima beans; sweet potatoes; cauliflower omelet ; lobster salad—-Marietta pudding ; raspberry charlotte ; iced jelly ; pistachio cream. 7. Normandy soup; roasted salmon; boiled ham; French chicken pie; brown fricassee; sweetbreads with cauliflowers; lobster patties; birds with mushrooms ; lima beans; scolloped tomatoes ; sweet potatoes ; turnips ; stewed egg-plant; salad—Orleans pudding; maccaroni pudding ; Spanish blanc-mange; peach ice-cream. 8. Mock turtle soup; baked salmon; roasted ham; tongue pie; fricasseed chickens ; stewed ducks; plovers; clam sweet breads; broccoli and eggs; sweet potatoes ; onion custard; lima beans; salad—Orange tarts; char- lotte russe; maccaroni blanc-mange; Marlborough pud- ding; lemon ice-crean. Sea-shore dinner.—Clam soup; roast salmon; boiled ham; sea-coast pie; stewed oysters; fried oysters ; stewed lobster; crabs; baked clams; mashed potatoes— Biscuit pudding; sweetmeat fritters; cake syllabub; orange flummery. > 33 886 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. COMPANY DINNERS—AUTUMN.—1. Mock tur- tle soup; stewed rock-fish ; roasted ham; boiled fowls ; : stewed ducks; fried rabbits; stuffed egg-plant; broccoli and eggs; fried artichokes ; stewed mushrooms ; potatoe snow; sweet potatoes—Chocolate pudding; meringued apples; cake syllabub; peach ice-cream. ~ -2. Venison soup; baked salmon-trout; boiled ham ; French chicken pie; roast ducks with cranberry sauce ; veal olives; sweetbread omelet; stewed red cabbage; turnips; onion custard; sweet potatoes—Boiled almond pudding; orange tarts; sweetmeat fritters; vanilla ice- cream. 3 : 3. Rich brown soup; sea-bass with tomatoes; ham pie; fricasseed chickens; roast goose with apple sauce ; oyster omelet; birds with mushrooms; scolloped toma- toes; coid-slaw; sweet potatoes; broccoli and eggs; fried artichokes ; onion custard—Lady’s pudding; sweet- meat tarts; lemon custards; almond ice-cream. 3. Normandy soup; stewed rock-fish; tongue pie; roast fowls; partridges in pears; stewéd ducks; oyster loaves; lima beans; tomatoes broiled; stewed mush- rooms; cold-slaw; sweet potatoes—Orleans pudding; orange custards; Spanish blanc-mange; vanilla ice-cream. 4. Soupe a la Julienne; cream trout; roasted ham ; stewed wild ducks; tomato sweetbreads; French oyster pie; white fricassee ;, mushroom omelet; stewed red cabbage; lima beans; winter squash; sweet potatoes ; turnips—Marrow pudding; lemon custards; meringued apples; peach ice-cream. 5. The best oyster soup; stewed rock-fish; boiled ham; roast wild ducks with currant jelly; chicken rice pudding; birds in a grove; terrapin veal; sweetbread croquettes; turnips; sweet potatoes; onion custard ; broiled tomatoes—Vanilla flummery ; omelet souffié sweetmeat tarts; lemon ice-cream. COMPANY DINNERS FOR AUTUMN AND WINTER. 387 6. Meg Merrilies soup; boiled rock-fish; roasted ham; stewed wild ducks; French oyster pie; roasted phea- sants; Columbus eggs; mushroom omelet; lima beans ; sweet potatoes ; turnips; winter-squash ; beets—Orange flummery ; sweet potatoe pudding; calves’ feet jelly; lemon ice-cream. 7. Rich white soup; sea-bass with tomatoes; baked tongue; roast goose with apple sauce; fricasseed fowls ; venison steaks with currant-jelly ; oyster omelet; broiled mushrooms; turnips; sweet potatoes; winter-squash ; lima beans—Cocoa-nut pudding ; sweetmeat tarts ; lemon custards; chocolate ice-cream. 8. Hare or rabbit soup; stewed rock-fish ;~boiled ham ; pigeon pie; roast fowls; brown fricassee’; partridges in pears; woodcocks; oyster loaves; turnips; sweet pota- toes; winter-squash ; beets; cold-slaw—Sweet potatoe pudding; orange tarts; whipped cream; Spanish blanc- mange. —G— COMPANY DINNERS—WINTER.—1. Mulliga tawny sou;, fresh cod-fish fried; boiled ham; roast turkey with cranberry sauce; fowls stewed whole; oyster pie; potatoe snow ; turnips; parsnips; winter squash—Cocoa-nut pudding; lemon pudding; mince pie; calves’ feet jelly. 2. Clear gravy <.up; stewed rock-fish ; roasted ham + boiled turke* with oyster sauce; venison pie; brown tricassee; sweet potatoes; turnips; parsnips; beets— Orange pudding; almond pudding; meringued apples; chocolate cream. , 3. Venison soup; fresh cod-fish boiled; smoked tongue; pair of roast geese with apple sauce; oyster pie; French stew of rabbits; turnips; potatoe snow; parsnips; onion custard; beets—Transparent pudding ; orange tarts; mince-pie; floating island. B88 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. 4. Mock turtle soup; boiled rock-fish ; a ple ; smoked tongue; roast turkey with cranberry sauce; boiled fowls with celery sauce; oyster loaves; sweetbread ‘cro-. quettes ; turnips; parsnips; beets; maccaroni—Charlotte russe; mince-pie; calves’ feet jelly ; blanc-mange. as 5. Rich brown soup; fresh cod-fish*stewed; boiled ham; venison roasted; red-head ducks with currant jelly ; oyster patties; veal rissoles; turnips; parsnips ; beets ; winter-squash ; cold-slaw—Mince-pudding ; ome- let soufflé ; orange flummery ; vanilla ice-cream. 6. Rich white soup; fresh cod-fish fried; roasted ham; venison pie; ‘boiled turkey with oyster sauce; partridges in pears; chicken rice pudding; potatoe snow; beets; turnips; winter-squash; stewed red cab- bage—Plum puddings chocolate blanc-mange; cocoa-nut cream ; apple-jelly. 7. Meg Merrilies soup; stewed rock-fish; boiled ham; canvas-back ducks roasted; French oyster pie; fricasseed chickens; veal olives; winter-squash ; potatoe snow; beets; turnips; maccaroni—Orange pudding ; cocoa-nut pudding; cake syllabub; chocolate ice-cream. 8. Maccaroni soup; fresh cod-fish stewed; smoked tongue; canvas-back ducks stewed ; partridge pie; fricas- seed fowls; stewed sweetbreads with oysters ; turnips ; potatoe snow; parsnips; beets ; cold-slaw—Orleans pud- ding; Italian charlotte; apple compote; orange-jelly. Christmas dinners.—Mock turtle soup; stewed rock- fish; roasted ham; roasted venison” with currant-jelly ; boiled turkey with oyster sauce; roast geese with apple sauce; French oyster pie; fricasseed-chickens ; potatoe snow; parsnips; beets; winter-squash; cold-slaw — Plum pudding; mince-pies; orange tarts; cream cocoa- nut pudding; Spanish blanc-mange ; apple-jelly; vanilla ice-cream. - LARGE DINNER PARTIES. + 889 New Year's dinner.—Venison soup; stewed fresh cod; boiled ham; roasted turkey with cranberry sauce ; roast goose with apple sauce; partridge pie; winter- squash; beets; potatoe snow; cold-slaw—Columbian pudding; lemon tarts; charlotte polonaise; vanilla blanc-mange ; trifle. j ne ae ane LARGE DINNER PARTIES.—1. Spring.—Rich brown soup at one end; rich white soup at the other; two dishes of sheep’s-head fish, one baked, one stewed, or else baked. salmon-trout and cream trout; roasted ham ; smoked tongue; chickens stewed whole; roast ducks with cranberry-jelly ; sweetbreads with oysters ; terrapin veal ; white fricassee ; brown fricassee ; sweetbread croquettes ; lobster rissoles ; oyster loaves; lobster patties ; asparagus loaves; French spinach; French peas; cauliflower macca- roni; stewed beans; fried cauliflower; fried artichokes ; stewed spinach; asparagus omelet; cauliflower omelet-— Columbian pudding ; orange tarts; lemon tarts ; charlotte polonaise ; green custard; red custard; pistachio cream ; maccaroon blanc-mange; vanilla blanc-mange; goose- berry-water ice; currant-water ice; almond ice-cream ; calves’ feet jelly. 2. Summer.—Turtle soup; fresh salmon stewed ; sal- mon steaks; baked turtle; boiled ham; baked tongue; roast ducks with cherry-jelly ; chicken curry; chicken patties; sweetbreads and cauliflowers; tomatoe sweet- breads; lobster pie; stewed lobster ; birds in a grove; thatched house pie; plovers roasted; rice pie; mush- room omelets; broccoli and eggs; fried artichokes ; stewed peas; stewed beans; stewed beets; potatoe» snow; lettuce peas; scolloped tomatoes ; mashed sweet potatoes; stuffed egg-plants ; stewed egg-plant ; Sydney Smith’s salad—Pine-apple tarts; lady’s pudding ; trans 33* 390 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. parent pudding; marmalade puddings ; ‘French | char- lotte; Italian charlotte ; iced jelly ; vanilla blanc-mange ; almond blanc-mange ; orange ice-cream; strawberry ice- sream. : 7 3. Autumn.—Meg Merrilies soup ; sea-bass with to- matoes; salmon-trout; roasted ham; smoked tongue ; 3 roast fowls 3 ; partridge pie; birds with mushrooms ; par- tridges in pears; terrapin; young geese with apple sauce; tongue pie; chicken gumbo; woodcocks roasted ; rice croquettes ; Columbus eggs ; onion custard ; mush- room omelet; cauliflower omelet ; scolloped tomatoes ; baked egg-plant ; potatoe snow ; lima beans; fried sweet potatoes ; mashed sweet potatoes—Cream cocoa-nut pud- ding; chocolate pudding; sweet omelet ; preserved pine- apple; preserved citron-melon; Spanish blanc-mange; calves’ feet jelly; meringued apples; orange-water ice ; peach ice-cream; biscuit ice-cream. 4. Winter.—Mock turtle soup; oyster soup; rock- fish stewed; fresh cod-fish fried; boiled ham; baked tongue ; roast turkey with cranberry-jelly; boiled turkey with oyster sauce ; roasted canvas-back ducks with eur- rant-jelly ; stewed canvas-back ducks; partridges in pears; salmi of partridges; French oyster pie; turnips ; potatoe snow ; winter-squash ; fried salsify ; fried celery ; onion :custard—Plum pudding; mince-pie; charlotte polonaise; charlotte russe; calves’ feet jelly; pistachio | cream; cocoa-nut cream; chocolate ice-cream; orange ice-cream. ; oo TEA PARTIES.—Have black tea, green tea, and coffee. Immediately after the first cups are sent in, let fresh tea be put into the pots, that the second cups may not be weaker than the first. With the cream and sugar TEA AND SUPPER PARTIES. 391 send round a small pot of boiling water to weaken the tea of those who do not like it strong; or for the conve- nience of ladies who drink only milk and water, and who otherwise may cause interruption and delay by sending out forit. When tea is handed round, it is not well to have hot cakes with it; or any thing that is buttered, or any sort of greasy relishes. Such things are frequently injurious to the gloves and dresses of the ladies, and can well be dispensed with on these occasions. It is suffi- cient to send round a waiter with large cakes of the best sort, ready sliced but the slices not taken apart. There should be an almond sponge-cake for those who are un- willing to eat cakes made with butter. | Immediately on tea being over, let the servants go round to all the company with waiters having pitchers of cold water and glasses, to prevent the inconvenience of ladies sending out for glasses of water. In less than an hour after tea, lemonade should be brought in, accompanied by baskets of ‘small mixed cakes, (maccaroons, kisses, &c.,) which it is no longer cus- tomary to send in with the tea. Afterwards, let the- blanc-mange, jellies, sweetmeats, ice-creams, wines, liquors, &c., be handed round. Next, (after an hour’s interval,) the terrapin, oysters, and chicken salad, &c These are sometimes accompanied by ale, porter, or cider ; sometimes by champagne. At the close of the evening, it is usual to send round a large plum-cake. If the plan is to have-a regular supper table, it is not necessary to send in any refreshments through the even- ing, except lemonade and little cakes. When the company is not very numerous, and is to sit round a tea-table, waffles or other hot articles may there be introduced. Take care to set a tea-table that will certainly be large enough to accomodate all the guests without crowding them | 892 MISS LESLIBN’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. SUPPER DISHES FOR A LARGE COMPANY. -—*Boned turkey with jelly ; partridge pie ; game dressed in various ways; cold ham glazed thickly all over with a mixture of bread-crumbs, cream, and yolk of egg; two smoked tongues, one placed whole in the centre of the dish, the other cut into circular slices and laid round it; cold alamode beef; French chicken salad ; Italian chicken salad; marbled veal; potted lobster ; pickled lobster ; terrapins; cream oysters; fried oysters; pickled oysters ; ; oyster patties; biscuit sandwiches; charlotte polonaise; charlotte russe; French charlotte; calves’ feet jelly; trifle; Spanish blanc-mange; chocolate blanc-mange, coffee blanc-mange; maccaroon blanc-mange; vanilla blanc-mange ; pistachio cream ; cocoa-nut cream ; chocolate cream; vanilla cream; lemon custards; orange custards ; green custard; red custard; meringued apples; whipt cream meringues; iced grapes; orange-water ice; damson- water ice; vanilla ice-cream; lemon ice-cream; almond ice-cream ; chocolate ice-cream ; biscuit ice-cream; mac- caroon ice-cream; preserved pine-apple; preserved. cit- ron-melon ; preserved limes; preserved oranges ; brandy peaches; brandy green gages; port win jelly 5 pink champagne-jelly ; frozen punch, &c. ; plumecake ; lady- cake; almond sponge-cake; frothed chocolate with dry toast. An elegant supper table may be decorated with a pro- fusion of real flowers tastefully disposed in pyramids and other forms; or with the sugar temples, obelisks, pago- das, baskets, &c., made by the confectioners. Unless at a very large and splendid supper it is bad taste to ite duce these sugar ornaments. yo iyct se / * From these may be selected supper dishes for a small assem- blage, or for a company of moderate size. i Aa oa OYSTER SUPPERS, © 398 OYSTER SUPPERS.—It is customary at oyster sup- -pers to have a great portion of the oysters roasted in the shell and brought in on large dishes “hot and hot.” Near every two chairs should be placed a small bucket to receive the shells. An oyster knife, and a clean coarse towel must be laid beside every plate, for the pur- pose of opening the oysters; an office that is usually performed by the gentlemen. The oysters should all be of the largest and best kind. Besides those that are roasted, there should be other dishes of them, fried, stewed, and pickled. Also, oysters in pies or patties ;— cold-slaw; beets; pickles; and celery; bread in the form of rolls; and butter made up into handsome basket or pine-apple shapes. Ale and porter are frequently in troduced at oyster suppers. : ——— DESSERTS.—At dinner parties, an excellent cus- tom is now beginning to prevail, of having the dessert served up in another apartment, distinct from the dining-room, If the dessert-room opens into a con- servatory, so much the better. The table appears to far greater advantage when already set out; and it can be arranged with greater elegance than when the first dishes have to be removed in presence of the company ; who also, are thus relieved from the odor of meat, poultry, &., by adjourning to a fresh atmosphere. This plan can be adopted in any house that has two parlours, with folding doors to close between. 394 THE LADY’S RECEIPT-BOOK. LUNCHEONS.—In England, where the dining - hours are much later than in America, and where the upper classes do not sit down till seven, eight, or nine, — it is customary to have something in the afternoon, a rather substantial meal, at which more is actually eaten than at the principal repast. The custom of setting a luncheon table is now very prevalent on this side the Atlantic, when the dinner hour, from fashion or con- venience, is fixed at five or six o’clock, or later. An American lunch is usually at one or two. The dishes proper for a handsome lunch table, are either cold ham; tongue; cold pies of pigeons, or game ; oysters pickled, raw, fried or stewed; lobster salad ; pastry; sweetmeats, and cakes; to which may be added chocolate, with dry toast, and small French rolls, or milk biscuits, by way of bread. No soup or fish, or hot meat or poultry. In winter, where a. sump- tuous table is kept, terrapin, canvas back ducks, and red-necks,. are often introduced at lunch. Also hot game. iisied In plain families, the usual lunch is cold ham, or cold roast meat; raw or pickled oysters; baked potatoes served up hot; cheese, gingerbread, or other cake; and fruit. : In the list of articles suited for company dinners, suppers, &c., (also in the above dishes for lunch,) it is not, of course, intended that al/ those things are to » be provided at once. This would be preposterous, even at a large public banquet. | —" ADDITIONAL RECEIPTS FOR ALL. 395 ., el ADDITIONAL RECEIPTS. —eaS SS eD BUENA VISTA CAKE.—Put half a pound of pow- dered white sugar into a deep pan, and cut up in it half a pound of fresh butter. Stir them together hard, till perfectly light. Add a nutmeg powdered. (This cake should be highly-flavoured with nutmeg.) Beat four eggs in a shallow pan, till they are very thick and smooth. Then stir them, gradually, into the pan of beaten butter and sugar; in turn with three-quarters of a pound. of sifted flour. Add a wine-glass of rose-water. . Have ready three large wine-glasses of cream or rich milk, divided equally in two portions, and put into two cups. Take one yeast-powder, of the very best sort; dissolve in one cup of the cream, the contents of the blue paper, (or the carbonate of soda,) and in the other cup the con- tents of the white paper, (tartaric acid,) and mix the first with the cake-batter; and then, immediately after, stir in the other, lightly and slowly. Transfer the batter to a large well-buttered square pan, and set it immediately into a brisk oven. Bake it steadily an hour, or more. If not thoroughly baked, it will be heavy. When: cool, cut it into squares, and sift powdered sugar over it. It will be still better to ice it, adding rose-water or lemon- juice to the icing, It is best when fresh, the day it is baked; though very good the following day. This cake will be found excellent, if the foregoing directions are exactly followed. If wanted fresh for tea, 895 396 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. -at a short notice, it otntbe made and baked in two hours. For instance, if commenced at five o’clock in the after- noon it may be on the table at seven. The above quan- tity of ingredients will make enough to fill a large cake- basket. If you wish to have a large Buena Vista cake baked in a loaf, take double the above quantity of ingredients, viz., one pound of butter, one pound of powdered sugar, a pound and a half of flour; eight eggs, two nutmegs, and two wine-glasses of rose water; six wine-glasses of cream or milk, and two yeast-powders; that is, two of the blue papers and two of the white. Put the mixture into a circular pan, and setting it directly in a brisk oven bake it from four to five hours in proportion to its thick- nesa, keeping up a steady heat all the time. When done, - ice and ornament it; flavouring the icing with rose or lemon. One of i decorations should be the words Buena Vista. All cakes that have milk or cream in them require longer baking than those that have not; and the heat of the oven must be well kept up. YEAST-PGOWDERS.—Get at a druggist’s a pound of super-catbonate of soda, and three-quarters of a pow.d of tartarie acid. Both these articles must be of the vecy best quality. Prepare an equal number of square blae papes, and square white papers; nicely folded. To be very accurate, weigh the articles alternately. In every blae paper put a hundred grains of the super-carbonate of sla, and in each white paper ninety grains of tartaric acid; and then fold them up so as to secure their con- tents. If you have not suitable scales and weights, you may guess tolerably well at the proportions of the arti- eles by measuring a full tea-spoonful of the soda for each blue paper, and three-quarters of a tea-spoonful of the my ‘ FINE WAFER CAKES. : aBgy acid for each white paper. Put them up in boxes, and keep them in a dry place. The contents of one blue paper and of one white paper are considered as one yeast- ie half the contents of each paper are called half a yea -powder. , Yeast-powders of themselves have not sufficient power to raise bread or cakes so as to make them light enough to be wholesome. They should only be employed when real yeast, or eggs, are also used. Then they add greatly to the lightness of the cake. They are also an improve- ment to batter puddings. They must always be added at the last. _ To use them, dissolve first the soda in a wine-glass and a half of milk or lukewarm water, and when thoroughly melted, stir it into the batter. Then melt in another cup the acid, with a similar quantity of milk or water, and stir it in at the last. * These powders entirely destroy the flavour of lemon or orange-juice. But they will convert sour milk into sweet. A yeast-powder added to buckwheat batter that has al- ready been raised by real yeast, will render it surpris- ingly light. One blue and one white powder will suffice for two quarts of batter. ——— FINE WAFER CAKES.—Wash and squeeze half a pound of fresh butter in a pan of cold water. Then take it out, and cut it up in another pan, into which you have sifted half a pound of powdered white sugar; and stir them together with a spaddle (a round stick flattened at one end) till they are very light and creamy. Then stir in half a grated nutmeg, a small tea-spoonful of powdered mace, a glass of sherry or Madeira, and a glass of rose or lemon brandy. Put the whites of four eggs into a deep plate, beat them to a stiff froth with a whisk, and add the beaten white of eggs gradually to the mixture. 34 398 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. Lastly, stir in as much sifted flour as will make a light — soft dough or paste. Divide it into equal portions; flour your hands, and roll each portion in your palms till it becomes round like a small dumpling. 7 age ne heated the wafer-iron, butter the inside, and put in one of the dumplings, making it to fit well. Put the wafer- iron into a clear hot fire, and bake each cake five minutes. When done, take them out carefully and lay them sepa- rately on an inverted sieve to cool. This mixture may be more easily baked in ee, flat cakes. Roll out the dough into a thin sheet, and then cut it into round cakes with the edge of a tumbler, or with a tin cutter of that circumference. Butter large square iron pans, and lay the cakes in them, but not so close as to touch. Put them into a quick oven, and bake them brown. » ——— oe LANCASTER GINGERBREAD.—Cut up a quarter of a pound of fresh butter into two pounds of sifted flour; rub it well in, and add a small teacup of ground ginger, and a tea-spoonful of powdered cinnamon. Stir i in a pint and a half of West. India molasses, and milk enough to make it into a thick batter. Lastly, add a tea-spoonful of soda dissolved in a little tepid water; and immediately after dissolve in another cup a salt-spoonful of tartaric acid, and stir that in. Stir the whole very hard. But- ter square pans, put into them the mixture, and bake it well; seeing that the oven is not so hot as to scorch it. It requires very long baking. When cool, cut it into squares. Never put allspice into gingerbread or any other cake — It communicates a disagreeably bitter taste. Allspice is now rarely used for any purpose; cloves being far better. Hither of them will considerably darken the colour of the cake. ) ICING FOR CAKES, CINNAMON BREAD, ETc. 899 WARM ICING FOR CAKES.—Beat to a stiff froth the whites of four eggs; then beat into them, gradually, ' (a spoonful at.a time,) a pound of finely-powdered loaf- sugar. Next put the beaten white of egg and sugar into { @ very clean porcelain-lined kettle, (or something that will not discolour it,) and boil and skim it till the scum ceases to rise. ‘Then remove it from the fire; and while it is warm, stir in the juice of two ee lemons or oranges, or a tea-spoonful of extract of roses, or a wine- glass of rose-water, or a large table-spoonful of extract of vanilla. Have ready your cake, which must first be dredged with flour all over, and the flour wiped off with a clean cloth. This will make the icing stick. With a spoon, place a large portion of the warm icing on the centre of the top of the cake; and then with a broad- pladed knife, (dipped now and then into a bowl of cold water) spread it thick and evenly all over the surface. When done, let it dry gradually. It is best that the cake, when iced, should be warm from the oven. This warm icing is now much in use. It spreads easily ; rises up high and thick in cooling; and has a fine gloss on the surface. To give it a fine red or pink colour, -use cochineal. For green colouring, pound in a mortar some raw spi- nach till you have extracted a tea-cup full of green juice. Put the juice into a very clean porcelain or earthen pan, set it over the fire, and give it one boil up, (not more, ) and when cold it will be fit for use. This is the best way of preparing green colouring for all culinary purposes. —_o—- CINNAMON BREAD.—On a bread-baking day, (hav- ing made more than your usual quantity of wheat bread,) when the dough has risen quite light, so as to be cracked all over the surface, take out as much as would suffice for a moderate-sized loaf, (for instance, a twelve-cent one, ) ‘400 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. and make it into a large round cake. Having dissolved a yeast-powder in two separate cups in a little lukewarm water, the carbonate of soda in one cup, and the tartaric © acid in another, mix the first with the dough of the cake, and then mix in the second. Have ready a half-pint of brown sugar, moistened with fresh butter, so as to make it a thick stiff paste, and flavoured with a heaping table- spoonful of powdered cinnamon. Make deep cuts or incisions, at equal spaces, over the cake, and fill them with the above mixture, pressed in hard; and pinch the dough with your thumb and finger, so as to close up each cut, to prevent the seasoning from running out. Set it immediately into the oven with the other bread, and bake it thoroughly. When cool, brush it over with white of egg, in which some sugar has been melted. This is an excellent plain cake for children, and can be prepared any bread-baking day. It is much improved by mixing with the dough two _large heaped table-spoonfuls of butter that has been melted in a teacup of warm milk, and also one or two beaten eggs. Do this before you add the yeast-powder. - —+— SNOW CREAM.—Take a large pint of very rich cream, and half a pound of the best loaf-sugar, powdered. — Rub off, on a lump of sugar, the yellow rind of three large lemons or oranges, (or, four or five, if small; ) scrap- ing it off the sugar with a teaspoon as you proceed, and transferring it toa saucer. Then powder this lump of sugar, and add it to the rest. Mix with the sugar the juice of the fruit, and the grated rind; and then mix the whole with two quarts of clean snow, in a broad pan. Set the pan into a tub, and pack it closely all round with coarse salt and snow; taking care that they do not quite reach to the edge of the pan, lest some of the salt should get in, and spoil the whole. ‘While packed in the snow LEMON HONEY, SNOW CREAM, ETC. 401 and salt, beat the mixture very hard till it is smooth and stiff. Then set it on ice, or in a very cold place, till wanted for use. Turn it out into a glass bowl. This is a good and easy way of imitating ice-cream ii families that are not provided with the regular apparatus of a freezer and moulds. The pint of cream must be very rich, and the flavouring very high. All flavouring loses much strength in freezing. You may flavour it with vanilla, by boiling a vanilla bean in half a pint of milk, till the vanilla taste is well infused. Then strain the iii and mix it with the cream. Or, instead of vanilla, you may boil in the milk a handful of shelled bitter almonds, or peach-kernels, to be afterwards strained out. % ——¢—— LEMON HONEY.—Take three large ripe lemons, (or four. or five small ones,) and (having rolled them under your hand on a table, to increase the juice,) rub off on a piece of loaf-sugar the yellow rind or zest, scraping it up with a teaspoon as you proceed, and putting it aside on a saucer. Then squeeze the juice of the lemons through a strainer, upon a pound of loaf-sugar, (broken small or powdered,) and add the zest or grated rind. Cut up, among the sugar, a large quarter of a pound of the best fresh butter. Break six eggs into a shallow earthen pan, and beat them till as light as possible. Then mix in, gradually, the sugar and lemon, stirring all very hard. Put the whole into a porcelain-lined kettle; set it over a moderate fire that has no blaze, and (stirring it all the time) let it boil till it becomes of the consistence of very thick honey. Ifthe weather is warm, you may add to its thickness by stirring in a table-spoonful of ground arrow- root, or of sifted flour. When done, put it warm into glass jars; cover them closely, and seal the covers. It | 34% 402 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECKIPTS FOR COOKING. - will keep in a cool dry place a month or more. If made in winter, it will continue good for two months. . 1! ORANGE HONEY is made as above, except that you must have five or six oranges, all of the largest size, . using the juice only and none of the rind. Orange peel will give it an unpleasant taste after it has been keptia few days. | ) oS RAISIN CURRANTS.—Strip as many ripe currants from the stems as will fill a quart measure when done > Put them into a porcelain-lined kettle; mash them, and add three quarters of a pound of sugar—brown will do. Prepare three quarters of a pound of the largest and best raisins, washed, drained, seeded, and cut in half. Or, use the small sultana or seedless raisins. When the cur- rants and sugar have come to a boil, and been skimmed, mix in the raisins, gradually, and let them boil till quite soft; skimming the surface well; and after each skim- ming stir the whole down to the bottom of the kettle. ‘When done, take it up in a deep.dish, and set it to cool. This is a nice, plain dessert. For a larger quantity, take two quarts of stripped cur. rants; a pound and a half of sugar; and a pound and a half of raisins. None but raisins of the best quality should be used for this or any other purpose. Low- priced raisins are unwholesome, being always of bad quality. * eee CURRANT-RAISIN JAM.—Wash, drain, seed, and chop fine two pounds of the best bloom or muscatel raisins, and put them into a large pan till wanted. Having stripped them from the stems, squeeze through a linen bag into a large bowl as many ripe currants as will yield three quarts of juice. Sweeten this juice with two pounds a es PINE APPLES, MARMALADES, ETC. 403 . - and a half of sugar. Having put the minced raisins inte a preserving kettle, pour the currant-juice over them, and give the whole a hard stirrmg. Set it over the fire, and boil and skim it, (stirring it down after skimming,) till it is thoroughly done, forming a thick smooth jam or - marmalade. When cool, put it into jars. Cork them closely, covering the corks with paper tied down over the top, and set them away ina dry place. It isan excel- lent jam for common use, and very nice with cream. ———- ‘TO KEEP PINE-APPLES, WITHOUT COOKING. —Take large fine pine-apples—the ripest you can procure Pare and slice them thin, removing the hard core from the centre. Weigh the slices, and to edch pound allow a pound of double-refined powdered loaf-sugar. Spread the slices on large flat dishes, with a layer of sugar both under and over them. Let them stand several hours; then put them up (without any cooking) in large glass tumblers, with the syrup that has issued from them; and put a thick layer of sugar at the top of each tumblerful. Cover the glasses closely, and tie a piece of bladder over each. » if the sugar is of the best-quality, and the pine-apples ripe and without blemishes, they will keep perfectly well, done as above, and retain the flavour of the fruit better than when cooked. They must be kept. in a dry cool place. —_—o—— FINE PINE-APPLE MARMALADE.—Take pine- ‘apples of large size, and as ripe as possible. Having removed the green leaves, cut each pine-apple (without paring) into four quarters; and then, with a large coarse tin grater, grate them down as near the rind as you can go. Do this in a large dish, carefully saving the juice. Then weigh the grated pine-apple, and to every pound PA | a 404 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. allow three large quai rters « of a rand of the best irae refined loaf-sugar, finely powder Too much sugar will, after boiling, cause the marmalade to candy i in the. jars. Mix with the sugar the pine-apple and all its juice, and put them into a preserving kettle over a moderate, but very clear, fire. Boil them slowly together, skimming. . them when necessary, and frequently stirring them up from the bottom with a silver spoon. Let them boil till they become a very thick smooth mass, of a fine gold colour. Put the marmalade warm into glass jars. Lay upon the surface a double tissue paper, cut circular, and fitting exactly; then cover the jars, and tie a Piece of bladder over each. al Instead of grating the pineapple, you may pare, core, and cut it into small thin pieces; but it will require a longer time to boil, and will be less smooth and beautiful. With a coarse grater the trouble is not much. MELON MARMALADE.—Take, fine large citron melons, and cut them into quarters, haying removed the seeds. Weigh the pieces, and to every pound allow,a pound of the best double-refined loaf-sugar. ‘To every three pounds of melon allow two lemons, and a tea-spoon-_ ful of ground white ginger. Then grate the melon slices on a coarse grater, but not too close to the rind. Grate off the yellow rind of the lemons, and add it with the ginger to the sugar, which must be finely powdered, Then mix, the whole with the grated melons in a preserving kettle. Set it over a moderate fire, and boil, skim, and stir it till it is a very thick smooth jam. Put it warm into glass * jars, or large tumblers; lay a double round of tissue paper on the surface of the marmalade; cover the jars tlosely, and tie a piece of bladder over acai tite 8 Pumpkin marmalade may be made in the above man ner, omitting the ginger. ae . Hs , 1 two large table-spoonf if over the fire. When the lard : Toil p st in 1 the chickens with an onion ned te o them ‘well with: flour, and seaso be you like fas oe Then stir into it two heaped tea-spoonfuls of Pict powder. Afterwards, let it stew five or six minutes longer, and then send it to table i. a deep dish; having a dish of boiled rice to be eaten with it by ree who like rice. . This gumbo will be much improved by stewing with it three or four thin slices of cold boiled ham, in which case omit the salt in the seasoning. Whenever cold ham is an ingredient in any dish, no other salt is required. A dozen fresh oysters and their liquor, added to the stew about half an hour before it is taken up, will also be an improvement. — : If you cannot conveniently obtain hb iid stir the gumbo frequently with a stick of sassafras root. This isa genuine southern receipt. Filet gumbo may be made of any sort of poultry, or of veal, lamb, oe or kid. ee) a FINE CABBAGE SOUP.—Take a fine large cab- bage, and, after removing the outside leaves, and cutting the stalk short, divide the cabbage into quarters, more * Pronounced Feelay. ~ . » PICKLED CABBAGE, CABBAGE SOUP, ETC. 407 ee than half ssl awe but not quite to the stem. Lay the cabbage in cold water for half an hour or more. Then set it over the fire in a pot full of boiling water, and let it boil for an hour and a half, skimming it frequently. Then take it out, drain it, and 1 laying it in a? deep pan, pour on cold water, and let the cabbage remain in it till cold all through. Next (having drained it from the cold water) cut the cabbage into shreds o or small pieces, and put it into a clean pot containing three pin.s of rich boil- ing milk, into which you have stirred a quarter of a pound of the best fresh butter ; adding a very little salt and pepper. Boil it in the milk about two hours, or till thoroughly done, and quite tender. Then cut up some pieces of bread into small squares. Lay them in a tureen, and pour the soup upon them. : This, being made geipost meat, is an excellent apap for Lent or fast-days. — It is still better when cauliflowers or brocoli are sub- stituted for cabbage; adding a few blades of mace, or some grated nutmeg. . nt te | EXCELLENT PICKLED CABBAGH.—Shred very fine, with a cabbage-cutter, a large fresh red cabbage. Pack it down (with alittle salt sprinkled between each layer) in a large stone jar. The jar should be +hree parts full of the shred cabbage. Then tie up, in a bag of very thin clean muslin, two table-spoonfuls of whole black pepper; the same quantity of cloves; and the same of cinnamon, broken very small, but not powdered. Also a dozen blades of mace. Put two quarts of the best cider- vinegar into @ porcelain-lined kettle; throw in the bag of spices, and boil it. Five minutes after it has come to a hard boil, take out the bag of spice, and pour the vinegar hot over the cabbage in the jar; stirring it up from the bottom, so that the vinegar may get all through 408 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. the cabbage. Then iy the bag of spice on the top, and while the pickle is hot, cover the jar closely. It will be fit for use in two days. If you find, after awhile, that the site tastes too — much of the spice, remove the spice-bag. © 2 You may pickle white cabbage in the same way; pon ting the cloves, and boiling in the vinegar a second muslin bag, with three ounces of turmeric, which will give the cabbage a fine bright yellow colour. Having put up the cabbage into the jar, lay the turmeric-bag half way down, and the spice-bag on the top. But the turmeric-bag need not be put into the jar if the vinegar has sufficiently coloured the cabbage. Small onions may be pickled, as above, with turmeric. Always, in prepating onions, for any purpose, peel off the thin outer skin. een aimed MADEIRA HAM.—Take a ham of the very finest sort; a Westphalia one, if you can obtain it. Soak it in water all day and all night; changing the water several times. A Westphalia ham should be soaked two days and nights. arly in the morning of the day it is to be cooked, put it over the fire in a large pot, and boil it four hours, skimming it well. Then take it out; remove the skin, and put the ham into a clean boiler, with sufficient Madeira wine to cover it well. Boil, or rather stew it. an hour longer, keeping the pot.covered, except when you remove the lid to turn the ham. When well stewed take it up, drain it, and strain the liquor into a porcelain- lined saucepan. Have ready a sufficiency of powdered white sugar. Cover the ham all over with a thick coat- ing of the sugar, and set it into a hot oven to bake for an hour. Mix some orange or lemon-juice with the liquor, add- NEW WAY OF DRESSING TERRAPINS, ETC. 409 Ing sugar and nutmeg. Give it one boil up over the fire, and serve it up in a tureen, as sauce to the ham. What is left of the ham may be cut next day into thin slices, put into a stew-pan, with the remains of the "liquor or sauce poured over it, and stewed for a quarter of an hour. Serve it up all together in the same dish. Instead of Madeira you may use champagne. Bottled cider is also a good substitute. Fresh venison, pheasants, partridges, grouse, or any other game, (also canvas-back ducks,) cut up and stewed with a mixture of Madeira wine, orange, or lemon-juice, sugar, nutmeg, and a little butter will be found very fine. The birds should first be half roasted, and the gravy saved to add to the stew. eo & NEW WAY OF DRESSING TERRAPINS.—In buying terrapins, select those only that are large, fat, an thick-bodied. Put them whole into water that is boiling hard at the time, and (adding a little salt) boil them till thoroughly done throughout. Then, taking off the shell, extract the meat, and remove caredully the sand-bag and gall; also all the entrails. ‘They are disgusting, unfit to eat, and are no longer served up in cooking terrapin for the best tables. Cut the meat into pieces, and put it into a stew-pan with its eggs, and sufficient fresh butter to stew it well. Let it stew till quite hot throughout, keeping the pan carefully covered that none of the flavour may escape; but shake it over the fire while stewing. In another pan, make a sauce of beaten yolk of egg, highly flavoured with Madeira or sherry, and powdered nutmeg and mace, and enriched with a large, lump of fresh butter. Stir this sauce well over the fire, and when it has almost come to a boil, take it off. Send the terrapin to table hot in a covered dish, and the sauce separately in a sauce-tureen, to be used by those who 35 1 410 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. like it, and omitted by those who prefer the genuine - flavour of the terrapin when simply stewed with butter. This is now the usual mode of dressing terrapins In Maryland and Virginia, and will be found superior to any other. ai . oa No dish of terrapins can be good unless the terrapins themselves are of the best quality. It is mistaken eco- nomy to buy poor ones. Besides being insipid and taste- less, it takes more in number to fill a dish. The females are the best. —»— A TERRAPIN POT-PIE.—Take several fine large terrapins, the fattest and thickest you can get. Put them into a large pot gf water that is boiling hard; and boil them half an hour or more. Then take them out of the shell, pulling off the outer skin and the toe-nails. Remove the sand-bag and the gall, taking care not to break it, or it will render the whole too bitter to be eaten. Take out also the entrails, and throw them away; as the custom of cooking them is now, very properly, exploded. Then cut up all the meat of the terrapins, taking care to save all the liquid that exudes in cutting up, and also the — eggs. Season the whole with pepper, mace, and nutmeg, adding a little salt; and lay among it pieces of fresh butter slightly rolled in flour. Have ready an ample quantity of paste, made in the proportion of a pound of butter to two large quarts (or pounds) of flour, or a pound and a half of butter to three quarts of flour, and rolled out thick. Butter the inside of an iron pot, and line the sides with paste, till it reaches within one-third of the top. Then put in the pieces of terrapin, with the eggs, butter, &c., and with all the liquid. Lay among the terrapin, square pieces of paste. Then pour in sufficient water to stew the whole properly. Next, cover all with a circular lid, or top-crust of paste, BEEF STEAK AND TERRAPIN POT-PIE, ETC. 411 os but do not fit it so closely that the gravy cannot bubble up over the edges while cooking. Cut a slit in the top- crust. Place the pot-pie over a good fire, and boil it till the whole is thoroughly done, which will be from three- quarters to an hour, (after it comes to a boil;) taking care not to let it get too dry, but keeping a kettle of hot water to replenish it if necessary. When done, take it up in a deep dish, and serve it hot. Then let every one add what seasoning they choose. It may be much improved by mixing among the nie of terrapin (before putting them into the pie) some yolks of hard-boiled eggs, grated or minced. They will enrich the gravy. —_¢— A BEEF-STEAK POT-PIE.—Take a sufficiency of tender beef-steaks from the sirloin, removing all the fat and bone.: Season them slightly with pepper and salt; adding also some nutmeg. Put them into a pot with plenty of water, and par-boil them. Meanwhile, make a large portion of paste, (a pot-pie with but little paste is no better than a mere stew,) and roll it out thick. If you use suet for shortening, allow to every two quarts or two pounds of flour a large half-pound of suet, divested of the skin and strings, and minced as finely as possible with a chopping-knife. Sprinkle in a very little salt. Mix the suet with the flour in a large pan, rubbing it fine with your hands, and adding gradually sufficient cold water to make a stiff dough. Then transfer the lump of dough to the paste-board; divide itinto lumps. Roil out each lump of the dough into a sheet ; reserving the largest for the top. Line the sides of a pot with a portion of the dough. © Then putin the beef; adding for gravy the liquid in which it was boiled, and a little hot water. Also, some potatoes sliced or quartered. Inter- aperse the meat with square slices of paste. Finish by 412 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FCR COOKING. covering it with a lid of paste, having a slit in the top: but do not fit the lid too closely. Then placing the pot over the fire, let it boil from @hree-quarters to an hour, (after it comes to a boil,) replenishing it, if necessary, with more hot water. This will be found an excellent family dish. ta" —e— CHICKEN POT-PIE.—Cut up, and par-boil a pair of large fowls, seasoning them with pepper, salt, and nut- meg. You may add some small slices of cold ham; in which case add no salt, as the ham will make it salt enough. Or you may put in some pieces of the lean of fresh pork. You may prepare a suet-paste; but for a chicken pot-pie it is best to make the paste of butter, which should be fresh, and of the best quality. Allow to each quart of flour, a small half-pound of butter. There should be enough for a great deal of paste. Line the sides of the pot, two-thirds up, with paste. Put in the chickens, with the liquor in which they were par- boiled. You may add some sliced potatoes. Intersperse the pieces of chicken with layers of paste in square slices. Then cover the whole with a lid of paste, not fitting very closely. Make a slit in the top, and boil the pie about an hour or more. Instead of ham, you eer add some clams to the chick- en, omitting salt in the seasoning, as the clams will salt it quite enough. ae BROILED MUSHROOMS.—Take the largest and finest fresh mushrooms. Peel them, and cut off the stems as closely as possible. Lay the mushrooms on their backs, upon a large flat dish; and into the hollow or cup of each put a piece of fresh butter, and season it with a little black pepper. Set a clean gridiron over a bed of clear hot coals, and when it is well heated, put on a on HOW TO PICKLE OR BOIL MUSHROOMS, ETc. 413 the mushrooms, and broil them thoroughly. The grid. iron should be one with grooved bars, so as to retain the gravy. When the first gridiron-full of mushrooms is well broiled, put.them with their liquor into a hot dish, and keep them closely covered while the rest are broiling. This is an excellent way of cooking mushrooms. —-— AN EASY WAY TO PICKLE MUSHROOMS.— Take two quarts of small. freshly-gathered mushrooms. With a sharp-pointed knife peel off, carefully, their thin outside skin; and cut off the stalks closely. Prepare eight little bags of very thin clear muslin, and tie up in each bag six blades of mace; six slices of root-ginger ; and a small nutmeg (or half a large one) broken small, but not powdered. Have ready four glass jars, such as ure considered to hold a quart. Lay a bag of spice in the bottom of each; then put in a pint of the mush- roems, laying a second bag of spice on the top. Have ready a sufficiency of the best cider-vinegar, very slightly seasoned with salt; allowing to each quart of vinegar butia salt-spoon of salt. Fill up the jars with the vinegar, finishing at the top with two table-spoonfuls of sweet oil. Immediately close up the jars, corking them tightly; and pasting thick paper, or tying a piece of leather or blad- der closely down over the corks. These mushrooms will be found very fine; and as they require no cooking, are speedily and easily prepared. When a jar is once opened, it will be well to use them fast. They may be put up in small jars, or in glass tumblers, such as hold but a pint altogether; seeing that the proportions of spice in each jar or tumbler are duly divided, as above. Keep them in a very dry place. If you wish the mushrooms to be of a dark colour when pickled, add half a dozen cloves to each bag of 35%* Ad 414 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. CN MRE ‘spice; but the clove-taste will most likely overpower that of the mushrooms. On no account omit the oil. If you cannot obtain button-mushrooms, cut large ones into four quarters, first peeling them and removing the stems. =: sie Sacer | BREAKFAST ROLLS.—These rolls must be mixed the night before, near bed-time. Sift three quarts of flour into a deep pan, and cut up into it a half-pint cup- full (or a quarter of a pound) of fresh butter. Rub the butter with your hands into the flour till thoroughly in- eorporated, and add a very small tea-spoonful of salt. Make a hole in the middle of the flour, and pour in four large table-spoonfuls of excellent yeast. _ Have ready sufficient warm milk; a pint will generally be enough, (heated but not boiling,) to make it into a light dough. - Add the milk gradually ; and then knead the dough. Put it into a pan, cover it with a clean thick cloth, and set it ina warm place. LHarly in the morning, add to the dough a small tea-spoonful of pearl-ash or sal-eratus, or a large tea-spoonful of soda, dissolved in a little warm water. Mix it well in, and knead the dough over again. | Then divide it into equal portions, and make each por- tion into an oval-shaped roll. Draw a deep mark along the top-surface of each with a knife. Put them into a hot oven, and bake them brown.- If intended for tea, mix them in the forenoon; and previous to baking, make out the dough into round cakes, pricking them with a fork. —_o— BUCKWHEAT BATTER PUDDING.—Mix early in the day, a quart of buckwheat meal with a large tea- cup full of Indian meal or of wheat flour; and add a tea- spoonful of salt. Have ready some water, warm but not boiling; and stir it gradually into the pan of meal till it ~ BUCKWHEAT BATTER PUDDING, ETC. 415 makes a thick batter. Then add two large table-spoon- fuls of fresh strong yeast from the brewer’s. Of home- made yeast you will require three or four spoonfuls. Stir the whole very hard; cover the pan and set it near the fire to rise. When quite light, and covered with bubbles, melt a small tea-spoonful of soda or pearl-ash in a little warm water, and stir it into the batter. This, added to the yeast, will make the mixture light enough for a pudding without eggs. Have ready on the fire, a pot of boiling water. Dip in the pudding-cloth, then shake it out, spread it into a bread pan, and dredge it with flour. Pour the batter into the cloth as soon as you have added the soda, and tie it tightly, leaving a vacancy of about one-third, to allow for the swelling of the pudding. Put it into the pot while the water is boil- ing hard, and boil the pudding fast during an hour or more; buckwheat meal requiring much less time than indian or wheat. While boiling, turn the pudding seve- ral times in the water. When done, turn it out on a dish, and send it to table hot. Hat it with butter and sugar, or molasses. This is a good plain pudding; but the batter must be perfectly light before it is tied up in the cloth; and if the water boils away, replenish the pudding-pot with boiling water from a kettle. To put cold water into a boiling pot will most certainly spoil whatever pudding is cooking in it, rendering it heavy, flat, and unfit to eat. If you intend having buckwheat cakes at breakfast, and this pudding at dinner, mix at once suflicient batter for both purposes, adding the soda at the last, just before you put the pudding into the cloth. Yeast-powders will be still better than soda; real yeast having previously been used when first mixing the bat- ter. To use yeast-powders, dissolve the contents of the blue paper (super-carbonate of soda) in a little warm 416 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOK water, and stir it into the batter. Then, directly after, melt in another cup the powder from the white paper, (tartaric - ) and stir that in also BUCKWHEAT PORRIDGE.—Boil a quart of rich milk, and when it has come to a hard boil, stir in, gradu- ally, as much buckwheat meal as will make it of the con- sistence of very thick mush, adding a tea-spoon of salt, (not more,) and a table-spoonful of fresh butter. Five minutes after it is thick enough, remove it from the fire. If the milk is previously boiling hard, and continues to boil while the meal is going in, but little more cooking will be necessary. Send it to table hot, and eat it with butter and sugar, or with molasses and butter. This is sometimes called a Five Minute Pudding, from its being made so soon. It is very good for children, as a plain dessert; or for supper. Before it goes to table, you may season it with he dered ginger, or nutmeg. —— APPLE TAPIOCA.—Take a quart bowl, and half — fill it with tapioca: then fill it very nearly to the top with cold water, allowing a little space for the tapioca to swell in soaking. Cover it, and let it stand all night. In the morning, pare and core six or eight fine pippin or bell-flower apples. Put them into a preserving kettle; — filling up the holes from whence the cores were extracted with powdered sugar, and the grated yellow rind of one large lemon, or two small ones; and also the juice. Stew among the apples additional sugar, so as to make them agreeably sweet. Add about half enough of water to cover them. ‘This will be sufficient to keep them from burning. Stew them gently till about half done; turn- ing them carefully several times. Then put in the tapi 4 -PERRA FIRMA, APPLE TAPIOCA, ETC. 417 oca, and let it simmer with them till perfectly clear, and the apples are tender and well done throughout; but not long enough for them to break and fall to pieces. The tapioca will form a fine clear jelly all round the apples. This is a nice dessert for children. And also, cooling and nourishing for invalids. Quinces may be done in the same manner. They re- quire more cooking than apples. For quinces, it is best to use, as flavouring, the grated yellow rind, and the, juice of very ripe oranges. a TERRA FIRMA.—Take a piece of rennet abcut four inches square, and wash it in two or three cold waters to get off all the salt. Then wipe it dry, put it into a cup, and pour on sufficient lukewarm water to cover it well. Let it stand four or five hours, or all night. Then stir the rennet-water into three pints of rich unskimmed milk, flavoured with rose or peach-water. Cover the pan of milk, and set it on the hearth near, the fire, till it forms a very firm curd. Then take it out, (draining off the whey,) put it into a clean sieve, (under which set a pan to receive the droppings,) and with the back of a broad flat wooden ladle, press all the remaining whey out of the curd. Next put the mass of curd into a deep bowl to mould it; and set it on ice till tea-time. Then transfer it to a deep glass bowl or dish, and pour all round it some cream sweetened well with sugar, and flavoured | with rose or peach like the curd. On the curd lay circles of small sweetmeats, such as preserved strawberries, rasp- berries, or gooseberries. You may add to the cream that is to surround it, white wine and nutmeg. ' + TO USE COLD PUDDING.—If you have a large piece of boiled pudding left after dinner, (such as plum pudding, indian pudding, or batter pudding,) and you 418 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ” wish to cook it next day, tie it up in a cloth, and put it into a pot of boiling water, and keep it boiling hard for half an hour or more. It will be found as good as on the first day, and perhaps rather better ; and it will be far more palatable, as well as more wholesome than. if sliced, and fried, or broiled: Hat it with the same sauce, as on the preceding day. —o—. TO KEEP EGGS.—Break some glue into pieces, and boil it in sufficient water to make a thin solution. While warm, dip a brush into it, and go carefully over every egg. They must all be quite fresh. When the eggs are thoroughly glazed with the glue, spread them out to dry, When quite dry, pack them in kegs or boxes, with dry wood-ashes or saw-dust, (of which there must be a plenti- ful portion,) putting a thick layer of the ashes or saw-dust at the bottom and top of the keg. This is an excellent, way of keeping eggs for sea-voyages, and is well worth the trouble. Before using them, soak them in warm water to get off the coating of glue. | ile Eggs of parrots and other tropical birds preserved in this manner, and the. glue-coating soaked off in cold: water, it is said have afterwards been hatched in the usual way; and the young birds have lived. ‘ —— FINE FRENCH MUSTARD.—Take a sufficient quantity of green tarragon leaves, (picked from the, stalks) and put them into a wide-mouthed glass jar till it is half full; pressing them down hard. Then fill up the jar with the best cider-vinegar, and cork it closely. Let it infuse a week or two. Then pour off the vinegar into a pitcher, remove all the tarragon from the jar, and ‘put in an equal quantity of fresh leaves of the plant, and pour back the same vinegar from the pitcher. Cork it again, and let the last tarragon remain in the jar. In WASHINGTON PUDDING, FRENCH MUSTARD, ETC. 419 another fortnight the vinegar will be sufficiently flavored. with tarragon to use it for French mustard, or for other purposes. Then peel a clove of garlic, (not more than one,) and mince it as fine as possible. Mix into it,ina | deep white pan, a cruet bottle full of freshly made mustard, prepared in the usual manner. Take a jill, or - two large wine-glasses of the tarragon vinegar, (strained from the leaves,) pour it into a mug, and mix with it thoroughly an equal quantity of salad oil. Using a wooden spoon, stir all the ingredients well together. If mixing it affects your eyes, put on spectacles for the time, and wash your eyes when done. Put it into small, clean, white jars, and cork them closely. If you find that the above quantity of oil and vinegar will make the mustard too thin, you need not use the whole of the liquid. If the mustard seems too thick, dilute it gradually with a little more of the oil and vinegar. | | This mustard is very superior to the common prepara- - tion, and is universally liked; particularly with beef and mutton. It must be kept closely corked. It is usual to bring it to table in the little white jar, with a small spoon beside it. The herb tarragon may be-had green and fresh in July and August. It is much used in French cookery, as a seasoning for stews, soups, &c. ’ Tarragon vinegar is very good with boiled cabbage or greens. The tarragon leayes of the second infusion should be kept remaining in the jar, pouring off the vinegar from them as it is wanted. A small quantity may be kept in a cruet; retaining the leaves at the bottom. —_¢—. A WASHINGTON PUDDING.—Pick, and wash clean half a pound of Zante currants; drain them, and wipe them in a towel, and then spread them out on a flat 420 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. dish, and place them before the fire to dry thoroughly. Prepare about a quaricr of a pound or half a pint of finely-grated bread-crumbs. Have ready a heaping tea- spoonful of powdered mace, cinnamon, and nutmeg mixed. When the currants are dry, dredge them thickly on all sides with flour, to prevent their sinking or clodding in the pudding while baking. Cut up in a deep pan half a — pound of the best fresh butter, and add to it half a pound of fine white sugar, powdered. Stir the butter and sugar together, with a wooden spaddle, till they are very light and creamy. ‘Then add a table-spoonful of wine, and a table-spoonful of brandy. Beat in a shallow pan eight eggs till perfectly light, and as thick as a good boiled custard. Afterwards, mix with them, gradually, a pint of rich milk and the grated bread-crumbs, stirred in al- ternately. Next, stir this mixture, by degrees, into the pan of beaten butter and sugar; and add the currants, a few at a time. Finish with a table-spoonful of strong rose-water, or a wine-glass full, if it is not very strong. Stir the whole very hard. Butter a large deep white dish; or two of soup-plate size. Put in the batte?. Set it directly into a brisk oven, and bake it well. When cold, dredge the surface with powdered sugar. Serve it up in the dish in which it was baked. You may orna- ment the top with bits of citron cut into leaves and form- ing a wreath; or with circles of preserved strawberries. This will be found a very fine pudding. It must be haked in time to become quite cold before dinner. For currants, you may substitute raisins of the Dest quality ; seeded, cut in half, and well dredged with flour. Instead of rose-water you may stir in the yellow rind (finely grated) of one large lemon, or two small ones, and their juice also. ' WASHING SILKS, SAVING CARPETS, ETC. 421 NEW WAY OF WASHING SILK.—For ribbons, cravats, and other small articles of silk, put a sufficiency of the best fresh camphine oil into a large basin, and press and squeeze the things well through it, without either soap or water. Then squeeze them till as dry as you can get them: open them out; and having washed the basin, put into it some fresh camphine, and wash the articles through that in the same manner as before. Have hot irons ready, and as the things come out of the second “camphine, (after well squeezing and shaking them, but not rinsing,) spread them open on the ironing-sheet, and iron them smoothly and evenly on the wrong side. Do each article, as soon as it has had the second washing, as they should remain wet as short a time as possible. There is no way of washing silk things that will make them look so well as this. It injures no colour, but rather brightens all, and gives the silk just the right degree of stiffness, besides making it very clean and fresh. When done, hang them in the open air for a while. A silk dress may be washed in this manner, putting the camphine into a large queensware foot-bath. It should not go into a vessel of either wood or metal. The dress must first be taken entirely apart; but it will look so well when washed and ironed, that you will not regret the trouble. Camphine generally sells at about fifty cents a & pala sometimes lower. Se es TO SAVE STAIR-CARPETS.—Stair-carpets always wear out first (and sometimes very soon) at those parts that go against the edges or ledges of the stairs. They will last much longer at the edges, (indeed, as:long as any other part of the carpet,) if the following precaution is taken. Get some old carpeting, (first made very clean,) and cut it into strips just the width of the stair-carpet. 36 422 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. Each strip must be wide enough to put on double. Nail these strips, carefully and smoothly, on the round edge of each stair, so as to cover it entirely, above and below. | Afterwards, put down the stair-carpet. When it is taken up to haye the stairs washed, these strips will be found no inconvenience to the cleaning; taking care, however, if any of the nails or tacks get loosened, to drive them in again tightly; and if bent, to replace them by new ones. The slips must have . time to get quite dry before the carpet is put down again. : Another way to save a stair-carpet, is to pay enough to make it a yard or more too long. Whenever the carpet is put down again, after it has been taken up for the pur- pose of cleaning the stairs, shift its position every time, so that the same places of the carpet may not always go against the ledges of the stairs. The extra length must be folded under, sometimes at the top of the staircase, and sometimes at the bottom. - Both these methods of saving a stair-carpet we know to be good. The first is the least expensive; but it is more trouble to nail on all the double slips of old carpet- ing, than to buy the additional yard of new. | In hotels where there is always plenty of old carpeting, and where there are men who can easily nail on the slips, this is a much better way than to cover the stairs first with oil-cloth, and then with zine to save the oil-cloth; comers of the zinc frequently getting loose and catching and tearing the ladies’ dresses. Oil spilt on a stair-carpet can generally be ini away by immediately wiping off as much as can thus be re- moved, and then directly washing the place with cold water; renewing the water with fresh, till the grease dis- appears. If it will not come out, cover the place tho- roughly with scraped fuller’s earth, Let it rest an hour or two: then brush that off, and put on a fresh layer of # TO EXTRACT SPERMACETI FROM CARPETS, ETC. 423 fuller’s earth ; repeating it till the oil is entirely expelled. Scraped Wilmington clay is still better than fuller’s earth. t oe é SPERMACEHTI, TO EXTRACT FROM CARPETS | OR CLOTHES.—There is no better way of removing spermaceti, than, (after scraping off with a knife as much as you can get from the surface of the spot,) to cover it with a piece of clean blotting papery, or any paper that is soft and thin, and press it witha warm iron. By repeat- ing this, (taking each time a clean part of the paper, ) any spermaceti spot may be removed from carpets, coats, ladies’ dresses, or other similar articles. When spermaceti has been dropped on a table, lay a blotting paper on the spot, and then hold over it, care- fully, at a small distance above, a hot coal in the tongs. Pressing it with a warm iron would mark the mahogany. —_— CHEAP OIL FOR KITCHEN LAMPS.—Let all scraps of fat (including even whatever bits are left on the dinner-plates) and all drippings he carefully saved, and put into an earthen crock, covered, and set in a cold place. When the crock is full, transfer the fat to an iron pot, filling it half-way up with fat; and pour in suffi- cient cold water to reach the top. Set it over the fire, and boil and skim it till all the impurities are removed. Next pour the melted fat into a large broad pan of cold water, and set it away to cool. It will harden into a cake. Then take out the cake, and put it away in a cool place. When wanted for.use, cut off a sufficient quantity, melt it by the fire till it becomes liquid, and then fill the lamp with it, as with lard. It will give a clear bright light, quite equal to that of lard, and better than whale oil; and it costs nothing but the trouble of preparing the fat. We highly recommend this piece of economy. 424 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. RELIEF FOR CORNS.—Experience proves that there is scarcely a possibility of removing corns on the feet, so that they will never return. The following remedy we know to be an excellent palliative; it will for a time diminish their size, and take away their soreness, | and is easily renewed when they again become trouble- some. It is peculiarly excellent for corns between the toes, which, of all others, are the most painful when they — inflame. Get at a druggist’s a sixpenny box of Simple Cerate, (which is made of white wax, spermaceti, and lard, melted together, and stewed to a salve,) and with your finger, apply a small portion of this to each corn, letting it stay on for two or three hours; and then repeat the applica- tion. Do this several times during the day. For corns between the toes, add to the cerate a little soft, open white wool, such as you may pick off the surface of a blanket. Stick this in between the toes—the salve that adheres to it will keep it in its place. Repeat this through the day with fresh cerate and wool; putting on your stockings carefully. At night, before going to bed, wash off the cerate. In the morning renew it, as before. It gives not the least pain, but is soothing and pleasant. Proceed in this manner for a few days or a week, and you will find great relief. Try it, and be convinced. Stockings with toes too narrow or pointed, are just as apt to produce corns, and to increase their pain and in- flammation, as the wearing of narrow-toed shoes.. —_e— BROILED CANVAS BACK DUCKS.—To have these ducks with their flavour and juices in perfection, they should be cooked immediately after killing. If shot early in the morning, let them be broiled for breakfast ; if killed in the forenoon, they should be dressed for that day’s dinner. When they can be obtained quite fresh, PRESERVING AUTUMN LEAVES, ETC. 425 broiling is now considered the best way of cooking them. | As soon as the ducks have been plucked, and drawn, and washed, split them down the back, and lay them, spread open, on a very clean gridiron, set over a bed of clear bright coals. ‘The gridiron should have grooved bars to retain as much as possible of the gravy. Broil them well and thoroughly, so that the flesh may not have the least redness when sent to table. They will generally be done in twenty minutes or more. Serve them up as hot as possible. They will be found full of gravy, and require no sauce when cooked in this manner ; but you may season them as you please when on your plate. ear diy AUTUMN LEAVES.—The autumnal colours of our | American forest trees are justly admired for the bright- ness, richness, and variety of their tints. Some of our fair countrywomen have worn them in Europe, formed into wreaths for the hair, or trimmings for ball-dresses,. and the effect was considered beautiful. They may be preserved for this purpose by the following process. Gather as many varieties of autumn foliage as you can obtain; seeing that every leaf is perfect, and that there is a stem to each. The best time is in the month of October. Include among them those of the crimson maple, the purple beech, the willow oak with its under- side of silvery white, the yellow hickory, the aspen, and any others that are richly tinted by the frost. Also, by way of contrast, some green pine sprigs. Lay them se- parately between the leaves of a large writing-paper book, (an old ledger will do very well,) and do not put tree- leaves between all the book-leaves successively, but alter- nately ; otherwise they will not be smooth and flat when - pressed. That is, put tree-leaves between the second and | 36% 426 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. third pages of the book, and then no more till between the sixth and seventh pages. Lay the next tree-leaves between the tenth and eleventh pages, and so on, till they are all in. Place several other heavy books upon the ledger so as to press well the leaves beneath. Stretch a twine across the room, or from the backs of two chairs, and tie a small twine string to each stem. Have ready some very fine clear varnish, (such as is used for maps, &c.) and with a large camels’ hair brush, go carefully over both sides of the leaves, including the stem. Fasten them all, separately, to the stretched twine ; seeing that none of them are near enough to each other to touch. Then lock the door of the room, that nothing may get in to disturb them, or raise the slightest dust while ‘the varnish is drying. When perfectly dry, and not in the least sticky to the touch of the finger, have ready some sheets of smooth thick white paper. In each sheet cut small double slits to admit the stems, and in this way secure the leaves from slipping about and being injured. Write the name of each leaf above it. Let the other half of the sheet lie upon them. Put these sheets within a double cover of binders-board, (like a port-folio,) which you must then seal up in paper, like a large parcel, and the leaves in all their autumn beauty may be safely trans- ported to any part of the world. They will be found very useful to landscape-painters. We have seen, at a Floral Exhibition, an elephant, about a foot and a half high, ingeniously made of bark, with bead-eyes; and handsomely ornamented with a housing or saddle-cloth of autumn-leaves beautifully atranged ; their varied tints showing to great advan- tage upon the grey imitation of his skin.’ MADEIRA CHARLOTTE RUSSE, ETC. 427 MADEIRA CHARLOTTE RUSSE.—Take one ounce of gelatine, or of the very best Russia isinglass, and soak it, near half an hour, in as much cold water as will barely cover it. It must merely soften, and not dissolve. Then drain off the water, and put the gelatine or isinglass into a pint of rich cream; adding a vanilla bean split, cut to pieces, and tied closely in a very thin muslin bag. Set the cream over.a slow fire in a porcelain preserving-kettle, and let it boil till the gelatine is entirely dissolved, and thoroughly mixed with the cream. Give it a hard stir- ring, down to the bottom, several times while boiling. Have ready the yolks only, of eight eggs, beaten till very light and thick; and then beat, gradually, into the yolk of ege three quarters of a pound of the best powdered loaf-sugar. Then take the cream off the fire, and (having first removed the vanilla) stir into it, by degrees, the mixture of beaten yolk of egg and sugar. Set the kettle again over a.slow fire, and let it simmer till very thick; but do not allow it to boil hard, or too long, lest it should curdle. | When the mixture is sufficiently thick, take it off, and set it away to cool. Have ready the whites of four of the eight eggs beaten to a stiff froth. Then stir two heaping table-spoonfuls of powdered loaf-sugar into half a tum. bler-full of Madeira wine, and beat it slowly into the white of egg; adding a little more powdered sugar if the wine seems likely to curdle the egg. When the yellow or yolk-of-egg mixture is quite cold, stir gradually into it the white mixture, till all is thoroughly amalgamated. Have ready a mould or moulds lined with very thin slices of almond sponge-cake. Fill them up with the mixture, and set them on ice till the charlotte is wanted. Then turn it out. You may cover the top with icing made in the usual way, and flavoured with ex- tract of vanilla, or extract of bitter almond—or peach-water. 428 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. LEMON CHARLOTTE RUSSE.—Is made as in the preceding receipt; substituting for the vanilla and Ma- deira, the yellow rind and’the juice of two large whole lemons, or three if not of the largest size. Rub off the yellow rind (or zest) upon lumps.of loaf-sugar, scraping it off with a knife as you proceed, and saying it on a saucer. Then powder these lumps, and mix them with half the remainder of the three-quarters of a pound of sugar, and the scraped yellow rind. Add it (as above) to the beaten yolk of egg, and boil it slowly with the isinglass and cream. ‘hen cut the lemons, and squeeze their juice into the remaining sugar. . Having beaten the whites of half the eight eggs to a stiff froth, add to it the lemon-juice and sugar; and when the mixture of cream, egg, and isinglass is cold, mix gradually with it the beaten white of egg, &c. Lastly, line the mould with thin slices of lady-cake, or almond sponge-cake; put in the mixture, and set it on ice. Before it goes to table ice the top; flavouring the icing with lemon-juice. % cE aS ORANGE CHARLOTTE RUSSE.—Is made as above —substituting for the lemons three fine large oranges, and flavouring the icing with orange-juice. Line the moulds with almond sponge-cake. Orange cake will be still better | for this purpose. —@o—— ROSE CHARLOTTE RUSSH.—Take an ounce of Russia isinglass or of gelatine, and soften it by soaking a while in cold water. Then boil it slowly in a pint of cream, sweetened with a quarter of a pound of fine loaf- sugar, (adding a handful of fresh rose-leaves tied in a thin muslin bag, ) till itis thoroughly dissolved, and weil mixed. Take it off the fire; set it to cool; and beat together till very light and thick, four whole eggs, and the yolks only ea CHARLOTTE RUSSE OF ALL KINDS. 429 of four others. Stir the beaten eggs gradually into the mixture of cream, sugar and isinglass, and set it again over the fire. Stir it well, and see that it only simmers; taking it off before it comes quite toa boil. Then, while it is warm, stir in sufficient extract of roses, to give it a high rose-flayour and a fragrant smell. Have ready two moulds lined with lady-cake, oralmond sponge-cake. Fill them with the mixture, and set them on ice. Before they go to table, ice the tops of the charlotte, flavouring the icing with rose. CHOCOLATE CHARLOTTE RUSSE.— Having soaked in cold water an ounce of Russia isinglass, or of gelatine, shave down three ounces of the best choco- late, which must have no spice or sugar in it, (Baker’s Prepared Cocoa is excellent for this and all other choco- late purposes, ) and mix it gradually into a pint of cream, adding the soaked isinglass. Set the cream, chocolate, and isinglass over the fire, in a porcelain kettle; and boil it slowly till the isinglass is dissolved thoroughly, and the whole-is well mixed. Then take it off the fire and let it cool. Have ready eight yolks of eggs and four whites, beaten all together till very light; and stir them gradually into the mixture, in turn with half a pound of powdered loaf-sugar. Simmer the whole over the fire, but do not let it quite boil. Then take it off, and with a chocolate- mill, (or with rods,) whip it to a strong froth. Line your moulds with sponge-cake, and set them on ice. If you like a strong chocolate flavour, take four ounces of the cocoa. ——. ALMOND ICE-CREAM.—To every quart of cream, allow two ounces of shelled sweet almonds, and two ounces of shelled bitter almonds. Blanch the almonds in scalding water, and then throw them into cold water ; 430 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. afterwards, put them, one at a time, (bitter and sweet alternately,) into # marble mortar, and pound them to a fine, smooth paste, moistening them with a little cream as you proceed. When the almonds are all done, stir them gradually into the cream you intend to freeze. Set it over a fire, and contiaue to boil it five minutes after it has come to a boil. Then strain it into a freezer, and while it is warm stir in gradually sufficient powdered loaf-sugar to make it very sweet, allowing three-quarters of a pound to every quart of cream. Freeze it in the usual manner. pone ee ALMOND ICE-CREAM—Another way. To each quart of cream, allow three ounces of shelled bitter-almonds, and no sweet ones. Blanch them and break them up slightly. . Put them into a porcelain sauce-pan, and pour on water, allowing half a pint of water to each ounce of almonds. Boil them long and slowly, till the water is highly-flavoured, and so reduced in quantity that it barely ‘covers the almonds. ‘Then strain it off; and when cool, stir the almond water into the cream, adding sugar by degrees; allowing three-quarters of a pound to every quart of cream. Put the mixture into a freezer, and pro- ceed as usual. —o— CHOCOLATE ICE-CREAM.—Chocolate used for this purpose must have neither sugar nor spice in it. Baker's Prepared Cocoa is the best. For each quart of cream, scrape down three large ounces of cocoa or chocolate, put it into a sauce-pan with half a pint of hot water for each ounce, and mix it into a smooth paste with a spoon. Place it over hot coals, and when it has come to a boil, take it off the fire and set it to cool. When it has be- come lukewarm, stir the chocolate into the cream, and strain it. When strained, add gradually, for each quart cf cream, ICE CREAMS OF ALL FLAVORS. 431 three-quarters of a pound of powdered loaf-sugar, and give the whole a boilup. Then put it into a freezer. Another way.—To every quart of cream, allow three ounces of Baker’s Prepared Cocoa, and half a pound of powdered loaf-sugar. Scrape the cocoa very fine, and stir it into the cream, alternately with the sugar, a little of each ata time. Having well mixed the whole, boil and stir it, continuing to do so five or six minutes after it has come to a boil. Then strain it into the freezer. Pd eee ORANGE ICE-CREAM.—To each quart of cream, allow two fine ripe oranges, and three-quarters of a pound of loaf-sugar. Rub the yellow rinds of the oranges upon a large lump of-sugar, and scraping it off as you proceed, transfer it to a saucer. Then powder the lump of sugar, and put it, with the rest, all of which must be powdered. Squeeze the juice of the oranges among the sugar, mixing it well in. Then stir it gradually into the cream. Give it one boil up, and then transfer it to the freezer. pe ea LEMON ICE-CREAM.—May be made as in the above receipt. It will require more sugar, as lemons are more acid than oranges. Never use oil of lemon or essence of lemon for any flavouring. This article is now too generally made of tartaric acid, vitriol, or other drugs that render it unpa- latable and unwholesome. Some of it tastes like pepper- mint. All lemon-flavouring should be obtained from the fruit only. —o—— WINE JELLY.—Take three ounces of Coopeyr’s isin- 3 glass or gelatine, and soak it in cold water during five 432 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. : - =m minutes. Then take it out and put it into a preserving _ kettle, and dissolve it in two quarts of boiling water. Stir into it a pound of loaf-sugar, on part of which has been rubbed off the thin yellow rind of four large lemons. Add two large sticks of cinnamon broken up, and the juice of the lemons mixed with a pint of white wine, (madeira, sherry, or malaga,) and add also the broken shells and beaten whites of four eggs. Having mixed all the ingredi- ents wellin the preserving kettle, put on the cover, set the kettle over the fire, and boil it steadily during twenty minutes. Then take it off, and let it stand five minutes or more, to settle. Pour the whole carefully into a thin flannel bag, and let it run into your jelly moulds. On no account squeeze the bag, as that will injure the clearness of the jelly. mien it This mode of preparing jelly with artificial isinglass saves the trouble of boiling calves’ feet the day before. It can be made in a short time. ¥ —_¢——_- VERY FINE APPLE JELLY.—Having cut out all blemishes, quarter half a bushel of the best pippin or bell- flower apples, without peeling or coring, and as you cut them, throw them into a pan of cold water to preserve the colour. When all the apples have been thus cut up, take them out of the water, but do not wipe or dry them. Then weigh the cut apples, and to each pound, allow a pound of the best loaf-sugar. Put them with the sugar into a large preserving-kettle and barely enough of water to prevent their burning, mixing among them the yellow rind of half a dozen lemons pared off very thin and cut into pieces. Also the juice of the le- mons. When perfectly soft, and boiled to a mash, put the apples, &c., into a large linen jelly-bag, and run the liquid into moulds, if wanted for present use; and into MARMALSDES OF ALL VARIETIES. 433 jars if intended for keeping. Lay brandy paper on the top of each jar, and cover them closely. 4 ee = dm my PEAR MARMALADE.—Take large fine juicy pears. Pare, core, and cut them up into small pieces. Weigh the pieces; and to every two pounds allow a pound and a half of sugar, and the grated peel and juice of a large orange or lemon, adding a tea-spoonful of powdered gin- ger. Put the whole into a preserving-kettle and boil it over a moderate fire, till it becomes a very thick, smooth marmalade, stirring it up from the bottom frequently, and skimming the surface before each stirring. When quite done, put it warm into jars—and cover it. For children, or for common family use, it may be made with large pound pears and/brown sugar; but it always requires the acid of orange or lemon to make it palatable; pears, when cooked, having no acid of their own. . a ; FIG MARMALADE.—Take fine fresh figs that are perfectly ripe, such as can only be obtained in countries where they are cultivated in abundance. Weigh them, and to every two pounds of figs allow a pound and a half of sugar, and the yellow rind of a large orange or lemon, pared very thin. Cut up the figs, and put them into a preserving-kettle with the sugar, and orange or lemon-rind, adding the juice. Boil them till the whole is reduced to a thick, smooth mass, frequently stirring it up from the bottom. When done, put it warm into jars, and cover it closely. ——~—— TOMATA MARMALADE.—This is the best sort of tomata sweetmeat. Take ripe tomatasin the height of the season. In autumn they become watery, and insipid. Weigh them; and to every pound of tomatas allow a pound 37 434 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. 4% ct : ; of sugar. Put the tomatas into a large pan, or a small tub, and scald them with boiling water, so as to make the skin peel off easily. When you have entirely removed the skins, put the tomatas (without any water) into a pre- serving-kettle, mash them, and add the sugar, with spoon- fuls of ground ginger to your taste; also fresh lemon-peel finely grated, and sufficient lemon-juice to give it a fine flayour. Stir up the whole together, and set it over a moderate fire. Boil it gently for two or three hours, till the whole becomes a thick, smooth mass—skimming it well, and stirring it to the bottom after every skimming. When done, put it warm into jars; cover it tightly, (pasting paper over the lids,) and keep it in a dry place. This will be found a very fine sweetmeat. There should be enough of ginger and lemon to overpower the tomata ‘flavour. For children, this sweetmeat is better than any other; and it may be made for them very economically with good brown sugar, (always allowing a pound of sugar to a pound of tomatas,) and with no other flavouring than ginger. The natural taste of the tomatas must not be perceptible, it is their substance only that is wanted, and their whole- some properties. —— fae RED FLUMMERY.—Boil a pound of ground rice in| as much water as will cover it. When it is thoroughly boiled, and very thick and smooth, stir into the rice (while hot) a half pound of powdered white sugar, and about three jills, or six large wine-glasses of fresh currant or cherry juice, that has been pressed through a linen bag. Next replace it on the fire, and boil the whole together for about ten minutes, stirring it well. Then put it into moulds, and set it on ice. When cold, turn it out, and’ cat it with sweetened cream, or with boiled custard. BLANOMANGE, FARINA, FLUMMERY, ETC. 435 “You may use the juice of fresh strawberries or raspber- ries, stirred in while the flummery is hot, but not boiled afterwards. The flavour of strawberries and raspberries is always impaired and weakened by cooking. ee ye RICH BLANCMANGE.—Boil half a pint of whole rice in as little water as possible, till all the grains lose their form and become a soft mass. Next -put it into a sieve, and drain and press out all the water. Then return it to the sauce-pan, and mix with it a large half pint of rich milk, and a quarter of a pound of powdered sugar. Boil it again till the whole is reduced toa pulp. Then remove it from the fire, and stir in, (while hot,) a wine- glass of rose-water. Dip your moulds into cold water, and then fill them with the rice; set them on ice, and when quite firm and cold, turn out the blancmangé> and serve it up on dishes with a sauce-tureen of sweetened cream flavoured with nutmeg. Or you may eat it with a boiled custard, or with wine sauce. — You may mould it in large breakfast cups. Always dip your moulds for a moment in lukewarm water before you turn out their contents. ‘ Shee a FARINA.—Farina is a very fine and delicate prepara- tion made from the inner part of the grain of new wheat. It is exceedingly nutritious, and excellent, either for in- valids or for persons in health. It is now much in use, and is to be had in packages of a pound or half a pound at the best grocers’ and druggists’, or in large quantities at No. 101 South Front Street, Philadelphia; and 201 Cherry Street, New York. It is highly recommended by physicians. ‘ 436 - MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. FARINA GRUEL.—Have some water boiling on the fire, and slowly sprinkle in sufficient farina to thicken it to, the desired consistence. Continue the boiling twenty minutes afterwards. Sweeten it with loaf-sugar. ——~—— FARINA PANADA.—Soak the farina for several hours in milk. Then drain it, and put it into a vessel that has a close lid. Set this vessel in a kettle of water, raising it on a trivet or something similar. Place it over the fire, and make it boil all'round the outside of the inner vessel. This will cook the farina véry nicely. Keep it boiling till it becomes a thick, smooth mass. When done, sweeten it with white sugar; and, if permitted, you may flavour it with a little nutmeg and white wine. Some fresh lemon peel may be boiled with it, to be removed when the farina is taken up. peiey Sa, BAKED FARINA PUDDING.—Boil a quart of milk, gradually stirring into it, while boiling, a quarter of a pound of farina. Then take it up; and, while warm, mix — into it a quarter of a pound of sugar; half a nutmeg grated; and a wine-glass of rose-water, or of white wine, or half a glass of brandy. Then beat four eggs very light, and stir them gradually into the farina mixture. Bake it in a buttered, deep dish, and grate sugar over it when done. 0 FARINA FLUMMERY or BLANCMANGE.— From a quart of rich milk take out a half pint. Put the. half-pint into a small sauce-pan, and add, to it a handful of bitter almonds broken up; or a bunch of fresh peach- leaves; or a vanilla bean split and cut into pieces, and tied up in a bit of thin muslin. Haying boiled the milk till it is very highly-flavoured, strain it, and add it to the FARINA, PLUM PUDDING, ETC. 437 —— pint and a half. Then set it over the fire in a porcelain or delft-lined vessel, and boil it well. When it has come to a boil, begin to sprinkle in gradually a quarter of a pound (or four large heaping table-spoonfuls) of farina, stirring it well. Let it boil a quarter of an hour after all the farina is in. When done, remove it from the fire, and stir in (if you have used bitter almond or peach-leaf flavouring) a wine-glass of rose-water; add four large table- spoonfuls of powdered sugar. Put the flummery into a ‘blanemange mould, set it on ice, and turn it out when wanted for dinner: Have ready to eat with it, a boiled custard, flavoured either with bitter almond or vanilla. Another way.—Grate on a lump of sugar the: yel- low rind of a large lemon or orange, scraping it off with a tea-spoon as you proceed, and saving it on a saucer. Then mix it with a quarter of a pound of powdered loaf- sugar. Boil a quart of water, and when it has come to a boil, stir in alternately the sugar and four large heaping table-spoonfuls of farina. Let it boil a quarter of an hour - longer. Then add the juice of the lemon or orange. Then put it into a mould and set it on ice to congeal. Hat with it boiled custard, flavoured with lemon or orange. Another way.—Mix with a pint of water a pint of ripe currant-juice, stramed through a sieve or bag, and well sweetened. In winter you may substitute the juice of stewed cranberries made very sweet. Boil the water and juice together. Then stir in gradually a quarter of a pound of farina, and boil it fifteen minutes longer. Trans- fer it to a mould, and set it on ice to congeal. Kat it with sweetened ¢ cream. —_e— FARINA PLUM PUDDING.—Having extracted the seeds from half a pound of the best raisins, cut them 37* Pal 438° MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. in half, and dredge them well with sifted flour, to prevent their clodding, or sinking in the pudding. Pick, wash, and dry half a pound of Zante currants, and dredge them also with flour, Prepare a. heaped teaspoonful of powdered spice; nutmeg, mace, and cinnamon, mixed together. Boil three pints of. milk, and while it is boil- ing, sprinkle in a half pound of farina. Next add the spice, and let it boil a quarter of an hour longer. Then take it up, and set it to cool. When it is lukewarm, stir in gradually, six well-beaten eggs, in turn with the raisins and currants; a large piece of fresh butter; and a small glass of brandy. You may add some slips of citron, dredged with flour. Stir the mixture very hard. Put it into a buttered pudding-mould. Tie a double cloth tightly over the top, and place. it in a pot of boiling water. Boil it three or four hours; and then turn it out on a dish. Eat it with wine-sauce; or with cold butter and sugar stirred together to a cream, and flavoured withey nut- meg and lemon. i Pa ROXBURY TEA CAKE.—On bread-making day take a pound or a quart of very light wheaten bread- dough, just before the loaves are put into the oven. Lay it in an earthen pan, and mix in, gradually, and alter- nately, three well-beaten eggs; a half-pint of powdered white sugar; half a pint of rich milk or cream; half a pint or a half-pound of fresh butter; and a teanoctia of mixed spice, powdered mace, nutmeg and cinnamon ; with a wine-glass of rose-water. Mix the whole thoroughly, beating and stirring it well. Lastly, add a yeast powder; dissolving in one cup the portion of soda in a little luke- warm water, and mixing it into the dough; and melting | in another cup the tartaric acid, and then stirring that in. Sprinkle some flour on your paste-board, and make the SPANISH CAKE, THA CAKE, ETC.. 439 — dough into small round cakes. Having pricked the tops with a fork, lay them in a buttered pan, set them imme- diately into the oven, and bake them brown. Lat them fresh, the day they are baked. You may bake the songh all in one loaf. This cake will be frets by the addition of some raisins of the best quality, seeded and cut in half; and well-dredged with flour to prevent their sinking ote a clod. For a larger quantity, you must have two quarts of risen bread-dough; six eggs; a pint of powdered sugar; a pint of milk; a pound of fresh butter; and a table- spoonful of mixed spice; two wine-glasses of rose-water ; and two yeast powders, or a full tea-spoonful of soda, and somewhat eee than a tea-spoon of tartaric acid. 8s Hse ALPISTERAS. (Spanish cakes. \—To one pound of fine flour, (well sifted and dried,) add half a pound of powdered loaf-sugar, (also sifted,) and mix them well to- gether. In a shallow pan beat your eggs very light, and then gradually wet with them the mixed flour and sugar, ‘adding a wine-glass of rose-water, or orange-flower water, “a or else the juice of two large oranges or lemons. Work the whole into a stiff dough, and knead it well. Roll it out into a very thin sheet, and cut it into squares of about five inches in size each way. Divide each square (half way down) into slips, so as to resemble a hand with fin- gers. Then curl or bend up the slips or fingers; or twist and twirl them so as to look like bunches of ribbons. Have ready, in a pot over the fire, a large portion of boil- ing lard. Put the alpisteras carefully into it, a few at a time, and fry them a light brown. Take them up ona _ perforated skimmer, draining back the lard into the pot. Spread them to cool on a large dish; and when cool, sift powdered sugar over them. a 440 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. PISTO OMELETTE.—This is a favourite omelette in Spain. Mince together cold turkey or chicken, and ah équal quantity of cold ham or tongue; adding a chopped onion or two, and sufficient sweet marjoram and sweet basil to season it well: also a little cayenne. No salt, as the ham will render it quite salt enough. Have ready sufficient well-beaten eggs to make it into a good omelette _ mixture; and stir the whole very hard at the last. Have ready over the fire, a broad pan of boiling lard. Put in the mixture with a ladle, and fry it in flat cakes. Serve it up hot. gives GUISADA OR SPANISH STEW.—Take wide rab-_ bit,. partridges, pheasants, or chickens. Cut them ' up as in carving; and save the giblets. Do not wash the pieces, but dry them in a cloth. Put them into a pan in which there is a sufficiency of hot sweet oil, (adding a sliced onion,) and fry them brown. Then teaser them (with the gravy) to an earthen stew-pan or pipkin. Add some bits of cold ham cut thin and small, and a punch of sweet herbs chopped fine; also a little cayenne. Pour in wine and broth in equal oronst sufficient to cover the pieces well; adding the giblets. Let it simmer gently, till thoroughly done, carefully skimming off all the grease, and stirring the meat up from the bottom with a wooden spoon. Serve it hot in a covered dish. It will be improved by the juice of one or two oranges, squeezed in toward the last. —— . POLLO VALENCIANO.—This is also a Spanish dish. Cut up a large fine fowl into pieces. Wipe them clean and dry, but do not wash them or lay them in water. Put into'a broad sauce-pan, a tea-cup of sweet oil, and a bit of bread. Let it fry, (stirring it about with a wooden SPANISH SALAD, GAZPACHO, ETO. 441 spoon,) and when the bread is browned take it out, ana throw it away. Then put in a sliced onion, and fry that; but take care not to let it burn or it will become bitter, and spoil the stew. Then put in the pieces of fowl, and let them brown for a quarter of an hour. Then transfer it to a stew-pan, adding a little bit of chili or red pepper minced small, and some chopped sweet herbs. Also half a dozen large tomatas quartered; and two tea-cups of boiled rice. Add a little salt, and stir the whole well to- gether, having poured on sufficient hot broth to cover it. Place it over the fire, and when it has come to a hard boil, put the lid on the pan and set it aside to simmer till the whole is completely cooked, and the gravy very thick. About ten minutes before the stew goes to table, take off - the lid of the stew-pan, lest the steam should condense on it and clod the rice, or render it watery. Serve it up un- covered. . Coe GAZPACHO.—In Spanish countries this is a common luncheon or supper for working people. Take. onions, cucumbers, and a small chili or red pepper. Peel them, chop them fine, and mix them with plenty of bread crumbs, and a little salt. Mix equal quantities of vinegar ~ and water, and add an ample portion of sweet oil. Put the whole into a pipkin, and stir it well. Set it on hot coals, and simmer it till well cooked. at slices of bread with it. In summer it is usual to serve up this mixture in a large bowl without any cooking. —#— SPANISH SALAD.—A Spanish proverb says that for compounding a good salad, four persons are required— a spendthrift for oil; a miser for vinegar; a counsellor for salt, (or a man of judgment ;) and a madman for stir- 442 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ring up the whole, hard and furiously. Geta very large salad-bowl, that there may be ample room for stirring well. Prepare in separate vessels the lettuce and the seasoning. ‘They should not be put together till a few ‘minutes before the salad is to be eaten; otherwise it will be tough and sodden instead of crisp and fresh. Do not cut it with a knife, but tear or strip off the leaves of the lettuce, and throw all the stalk away. Then wash the leaves through several cold waters, and dry them in a clean napkin. Put them into the large bowl; and ina smaller bowl mix the seasoning, for which you must have equal quantities of mixed vinegar and water; a small tea- spoonful of mixed cayenne and salt; and four times as much sweet oil as the mixed vinegar and water. Mix all the seasoning thoroughly, stirring it very hard. Have © ready on a plate some tarragon finely minced or powdered. Just before the salad is to be eaten, pour the dressing over the lettuce and strew the surface with tarragon. You may decorate the top with nasturtion flowers; they are very nice to eat. ——_9¢——- CAROLINA WAY OF BOILING RICH.—Pick the — rice carefully, and wash it through.two or three cold waters till it is quite clean. ‘Then (having drained off all the water through a cullender) put the rice into a pot of boiling water, with a very little salt ; allowing as much as aquart of water to half a pint of rice. Boil it twenty minutes or more. ‘Then pour off the water, draining the rice as dry as possible. Lastly, set it on hot coals with the lid off, that the steam may not condense upon it and ‘render the rice watery. Keep it drying thus for a quarter of an hour. Put it into a deep dish, and loosen and toss - it up from the bottom with two forks one in each hand, so that the grains may appear to stand alone. ad PE ee a COOKING ASPARAGUS IN VARIOUS wAays.. 448 A NICH WAY OF COOKING ASPARAGUS.— Where asparagus is plenty, there is no better way of cook- ing it than the following. Take it as nearly of a size as possible, wash it, and cut off the stalks very short; leay- ‘ing them not more than half an inch in length. Two quarts of water will be sufficient to boil one quart of as- paragus tops; allgw a tea-spoonful of salt to this quantity of water, and set it over the fire to boil. When the water is boiling hard, putin the asparagus; and boil it fast for at least half an hour. To see if it is done, take up two or three of the largest pieces and taste them. While it is boiling, prepare two slices of bread cut half an inck thick, and (having removed the crust) toast the bread brown on both sides. Have ready a large jill of melted (or drawn) fresh butter. When the asparagus is done, take it up with a perforated skimmer, and lay it on a sieve to drain. Dip the slices of toast (one at a time) first in the hot asparagus liquor, and then in the melted butter. Lay the slices, side by side, in a deep dish and cover it with the asparagus, laid evenly over and round the toast. Then add the remainder of the drawn butter, and send the asparagus to table hot, in a covered dish. This is a much nicer way than that of boiling and serving it up with the long stalks left on. And where you have asparagus in abundance, (for instance in a country garden,) it may always be cooked in this manner. This is from the receipt of Mr. N. Darling of New Haven. . oe FRENCH WAY OF DRESSING ASPARAGUS.— Having boiled the asparagus-tops as above; drain them on a sieve, and put them into a deep dish with a large lump of the best fresh butter. Mix the butter well among the asparagus, till it is melted throughout, and sprinkle a 444 MISS -LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. in (if you like) a very little pepper. Cover the dish, and keep it hot by the fire till it is time to send it to table. You may lay in the bottom of the dish two thin slices of toast, spread oyer with butter, after being first dipped in the asparagus water. Another way is to substitute salad oil for batter, mixed among the asparagus. * = See ONION EGGS.—Boil a dozen eggs quite hard. Slice and fry in fresh butter five or six onions. Slice (whites and yolks together) ten of the eggs, reserving two for the seasoning. Drain the sliced onions, and lay them on a dish with the sliced eggs placed upon them. Cover the dish, and keep it hot. Take the two remaining eggs; grate the yolks; and mix them with cream and grated nutmeg, and a very little cayenne. Put this mixture into a very small sauce-pan; give it one boil up; pour it over the eggs and onions; and send it to table hot. For those who have no objection to onions, this is a nice side dish. —_@——. EGG BALLS.—Boil eight eggs till quite hard; and when done, throw them directly into cold water. Then put the yolks into a mortar, and pound them to a paste, moistening them as you proceed with the beaten yolks of three raw eggs, seasoned with as much. salt as will lie _ fiat upon a shilling, and a little cayenne, and powdered nutmeg and mace. Mix the whole well together, and make it up into small, round balls. Throw them into mock-turtle soup, or into stewed terrapin, about two minutes before you take it up. —¢— CURRY BALLS.—Take a sufficiency of finely-grated bread-crumbs; hard-boiled yolk of egg, grated; fresh TOMATA PASTE, BEEF GUMBO, ETO. 445 butter; and a little curry powder. Pound the whole in a mortar, moistening it with raw yolk of egg (well-beaten) as you proceed. Make it into small balls, and add them to stewed chicken or stewed rabbit, about five minutes before you take it up. x —e—— TOMATA PASTE.—Scald and peel as many ripe to- matas as will fill a large, deep, stone jar. Set them into a warm oven for an hour. Then skim off the watery liquid that has risen to the top, and press and squeeze the tomatas in a sieve. Afterwards add salt, cayenne, pounded mace, and powdered cloves to your taste; and to every quart of tomatas allow a half a pint of cider vinegar. Stew the whole slowly in a porcelain kettle for three hours, (stirring it frequently from the bottom,) till it becomes a smooth, thick paste. Then put it into small jars or glasses, and cover it closely; pasting paper over each. It is an excellent sauce, at the season when fresh tomatas are not to be had, and is very good to thicken soup. : —e— DRIED OCHRAS.—Take fine large fresh ochras; cut them into thin, round slices; string them on threads, and hang them up in festoons to dry in the store-room. Be- fore using; they must be soaked in water during twenty- four hours. ‘ They: will then be good (with the addition of tomata paste) to boil in soup or gumbo. —e— BEEF GUMBO.—Put into a large stew-pan some pieces of the lean of fresh beef, cut up into small bits, and seasoned with a little pepper and salt. Add sliced ochras and tomatas, (either fresh, or dried ochras and to- mata paste.) You may put in some sliced onions. Pour on water enough to cover it well. Let it boil slowly, 38 446 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. (skimming it well,) till every thing is reduced to rags. Then strain and press it through acullender. Have ready a sufficiency of toasted bread, cut into dice. Lay it in the bottom of a tureen, and pour the strained een upon it. . age FRIED CAULIFLOWER.—Having a the cauli- flower in milk till thoroughly done; take it out, drain it, and cut it up into very small pieces, adding a very little — salt and cayenne. Have ready in a frying-pan, sufi- cient fresh butter; and when it comes to a boil and is bubbling all over, put in the cauliflower and fry it, but not till it becomes brown. Make a slice or two of toast, dip it in hot water, butter it; lay it on a dish; and put the fried cauliflower upon it. FRIED CABBAGE.—Parboil a fine cabbage. Then take it out, drain it, and lay it a while in cold water to remove the cabbage smell. Next put it into a clean pot of fresh water, and boil it again till thoroughly done. Afterwards chop it small, season it with a little pepper and salt, and fry it in fresh butter. A less delicate way is to fry it in.boiling lard. Fare ome TO PREPARE LARD.—As soon it is cut off from the newly-killed pork, put the fat into a crock; cover it; and let it stand all night in a cool place. Next day, cut it into small bits, (carefully removing all the fleshy par- ticles of lean,) and put the fat into a pot without either water or salt. The pot should not be more than half-full. Let it boil slowly (stirring it frequently from the bottom lest it burn) till it becomes quite clear, and transparent. Then ladle it out into clean pans. When almost cold, put it into stone jars, which must be closely covered, and ~~ HOG’S HEAD CHEESE, FRIED CABBAGE, ETC. 447 kept in a cool oe if to go to a distance, ne it uP in ‘bladders. , There are two sorts of il fat for lard. The ies fat, which is the best; and the fat that adheres to the entrails. These two fats Should be boiled separately. The entrails, whose skins are to be used for sausage- cases, must be well scraped and cleaned out, and thrown into strong salt and water for two days, and afterwards into strong lye for twenty-four hours. This lye, when strained, will afterwards be good to assist in soap-making. ——-¢-—— BRINE FOR HAM OR BACON.—To every four gallons of water, allow four pounds of salt; two ounces of salt-petre; three pounds of sugar, and two quarts of molasses. Boil the whole together; skimming it well. When clear, let it cool. Rub the meat all over with ground red pepper. Then put as much meat into the pickling tub as can be very well covered by the brine, - which must be poured on cold. Let it remain six weeks in the pickle, turning each piece every day. Afterwards, smoke it well for a fortnight, hanging the large end down- ward. ‘The fire in the smoke-house should be well kept up. Hickory or oak is the best wood for this purpose. On no account use pine, spruce, fir, or hemlock. Corn. cobs are excellent for smoking meat. Sew up the hams closely in thick cotton cloth—or canvas covers, and then white-wash them. Tongues may be pickled and smoked as above. Also beef, fgg“ ts," —o— HOG’S. HEAD CHEESE.—Hog’s head cheese is always made at what is called “killing-time.” To make four cheeses of moderate size, take one large hog’s head, two sets of feety and the noses of all the pigs that have 448 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. been killed that day. Clean them well, and then boil them fe rags. Having drained off the liquid through a cullender, spread out the things in a large dish, and care- fully remove all the bones, even to the smallest pieces. With a chopper, mince the meat as small as possible, and season it to your taste with pepper, salt, powdered cloves, and some chopped sage or sweet marjoram. Having ~ divided the meat into four equal parts, tie up each portion tightly in a clean coarse towel, and press it into a compact cake, by putting on heavy weights. It will be fit for use next day. Ina cool dry place it will keepall winter. It requires no farther cooking, and is eaten sliced at break- fast, or luncheon. —_@— FRYING FISH.—Fish should be fried in fresh butter or lard; a large allowance of which must be put by itself into the frying-pan, and held over a clear fire till it be- comes so hot as to boil hard in the pan. ‘Till it bubbles, the fish must not be putin. They must first be dried separately, in a clean cloth, and then scored on the back, and slightly dredged with flour. Unless the butter or lard for frying is sufficient in quantity to cover the fish well, and bear them up, they will sink heavily to the bot- tom of the pan, and perhaps stick there and burn. Also, if there is not fat enough, the fish will absorb all of what there is, and be disagreeably greasy. ese AXJAR PICKLES.—Take a variety of young fruits or vegetables, and put them into strong salt and water for three days; stirring them well, night and morning. Then take them out, and spread them on trays, or old servers, or large flat dishes; taking care that they do not touch each other. Set them out in the sun every fine morning, and let them remain till sunget; but not if it f n —— a _ PEACH MANGOES, FRYING FISH, ETC. 449 becomes damp, or even cloudy. Do this till they are perfectly dry. Then wash them well in cold water, drain them, and wipe them separately with a coarse cloth. Put them into large jars. To a three gallon jar, put in half a pound of horse-radish, sliced, and two cloves of garlic; half a hundred small white onions; two ounces of mace; one ounce of cloves; two nutmegs powdered; two pounds of the best crushed sugar; half a bottle of the best ground - mustard; one pound of yellow mustard seed; and half a pound of green ginger, sliced or scraped. Then take half an ounce of turmeric powder; mix it with sufficient vinegar to render it liquid, and pour it over the pickles in the jar, which must not be more than half full of them. Have teady some boiling vinegar of the best cider kind, and pour it scalding hot into the jar, till it is three parts full. The pickles will expand to their natural size. When they are perfectly cold, cork the jar tightly, and seal the cork. These pickles will be fit for use in a month; but they improve by keeping. For this pickle you may use plums, small peaches; grapes picked from the stems; cherries; barberries; nas- turtion seeds; button tomatas; radish-pods; beans, cauli- flowers sliced; white cabbages sliced, small cucumbers ; and limes or small lemons—mixed together in any pro- portion you like. The turmeric powder gives the whole a yellow tinge, and is indispensable to this pickle. Axjar is an Hast Indian word. oo FINE PEACH MANGOES.—Take fine, large, free- stone peaches. They should be ripe, but not the least bruised. The best for this purpose are the large white free-stones. Having rubbed off the down with a clean flannel, cut the peaches in half, and remove the stones Prepare a mixture, in equal portions, of mace, nutmeg, 38* 450 MIS3 LESLI£’S NEW RECEIPTS FOK COOKING. 1 - ‘ and root-ginger; all broken up small, hut not powdered. Fill with this the cavities of the peaches whence the stones were extracted. Then put together the two halves of each peach, (making them fit exactly,) and tie them round with coarse thread or fine twine. If you choose, you may stick the outside of the peaches all over with cloves. Put them into stone jars, filling each jar rather more than three-quarters full; and laying among them little thin muslin bags of turmeric to colour them yellow. If you prefer to colour them red, tie up some cochineal in thin muslin. bags. Fill up the jars to the top with cold vinegar of the best quality—real white wine vinegar, if you are sure it ds real. If the pickles are to be sent to a distant place, or to a warmer climate, boil the vinegar, and pour it on, scalding hot. Close the jars immediately; sealing the corks with red cement, and tie a bladder tightly over the top of each. These peach mangoes will be fit for use in two months. ——— ae TO PICKLE PEPPERS, SMALL CUCUMBERS, AND BEANS.—Put all these vegetables together into a brine strong enough to bear up an egg to the surface; and let them stay in it for three days. Then take fhe out, and lay them in cold water for an hour. Change that water for fresh, and let them remain another hour. Do this a third or fourth time. | : Having washed them well in a fresh water, put them into a preserving-kettle, (one lined with delft-porcelain is best,) and surround and cover them with fresh cabbage leaves, or vine-leaves. Fill up the kettle with cider. vinegar mixed with an equal quantity of water; and during four hours let them simmer without boiling. Then take them off the fire; take them out of the kettle, transfer them to broad pans, and pour the vinegar over them. When they are cold, return the pickles to the PICKLING ONIONS, PEPPERS, PLUMS, ETC. 451 kettle, (having first washed it out clean,) and scald them four times with fresh vinegar boiled for the purpose in another vessel. When cold, put them into jars, (three parts full,) and pour on fresh vinegar till it reaches the top. Lay among the pickles, mace; nutmegs broken small; mustard seed; and whole white-pepper-coms, tied up in this white seieitin bags. pedo | PICKLED ONIONS.—Take small button-onions; remove the outer skin, and lay the onions in dry salt for twenty-four hours. Then soak off the salt, in several waters; wash them well; and put them into a porcelain kettle, with equal quantities of vinegar and water. Sim- mer them till tender. Then take them out; drain them; and, returning them to the kettle, scald them with fresh vinegar boiled in another vessel. When cold, take them out, drain them again; put them into wide-mouthed jars, and fill up with cold vinegar. Place among them thin muslin bags with mace and broken nutmegs. On the top of each jar, put a table-spoonful of sweet oil.. Cover them tightly. 5 EE eee PICKLED PLUMS or DAMSONS.—The fruit must ‘ be large, fine, fully ripe, and with no blemishes. To every quart of plums allow a quarter of a pound of loaf-sugar powdered, and a pint of the best cider vinegar. Damsons being more acid will require half a pound of sugar. Put the fruit with the sugar and vinegar into a. preserving kettle, adding little bags with some broken pieces of cin- namon and some blades of mace, and, if you choose, a few cloves. Give them one boil up, and skim them well. Put _ . them warm into stone jars, and cover them closely at once. By winter they will be fit for use. Another way.—lIs to pack a jar more than three-fourths full with layers of ripe plums or damsons, and thick layers 452 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. of powdered sugar between. Fill up with cold vinegar, and cover them tightly. a PICKLED CHERRIES.—Take large, fine, red cherries, perfectly ripe, and cut the stems about an inch long. Put the cherries into jars with layers of powdered sugar be- tween each layer of fruit, interspersmg them with little, thin muslin bags of broken cinnamon, mace, and nutmeg. The jars should be three-quarters full of cherries and sugar. Fill up with cold vinegar, and cover them closely. P 3 a ” TO KEEP STRING BEANS AND GREEN PEAS. —String the beans, (which should be full grown but not old,) and cut them into three pieces—not more. Pack them in wide-mouthed stone-jars; a layer of beans and a thin layer of fine salt. The day before they are to be cooked, take out a sufficient quantity, and soak them at least twenty-four hours in a pan of cold water, changing the water several times, till it no longer tastes salt. Having drained them well, boil the beans till quite tender. | Then. take them up, drain off the water thoroughly, so as to have the beans as dry as possible. Next put them into a sauce-pan, with a plece of fresh butter and a little black pepper. Cover the pan, and stew them in the butter till they almost come to a boil. Green peas may “be kept i in a similar manner. They should be fresh and young. When you take them out of the salt, soak them, as above, for twenty-four hours or more; changing the water till it tastes quite fresh. Boil them. Lobis then drain Hae and stew them a while with butter and pepper. You may, while boiling, add a very little soda to the peas or beans. This will green and soften them. Too much soda will give them a disagreeable taste, and render them unfit to eat.- SCOTCH SHORT-CAKE, ETC. 453 —— SCOTCH SHORT-CAKE.*—Take a pound of Zante currants; and, after they are well picked and washed, dry them on a large dish before the fire, or on the top of a stove. Instead of currants, you may use sultana or seedless raisins cut in half. When well dried, dredge the fruit profusely with flour to prevent its clodding while baking. Have ready a tea-spoonful of mixed spice, powdered mace, nutmeg, and cinnamon. Sift two quarts of flour, and spread it to dry at the fire. Cut up a pound of the best fresh butter; put it into a clean sauce-pan, and melt it over the fire; shaking it round and taking care that it does not burn. Put the'flour into a large pan, and mix with it a pound of powdered white sugar. Pour the melted butter warm into the midst of the flour and sugar; and with a large spoon or/a broad knife mix the whole thoroughly into a soft dough or paste, without using a drop of water. Next sprinkle in the fruit, a handful at a time, (stirring hard between each handful) and finish with a heaped tea-spoonful of spice, mixed in a large glass of brandy. Strew some flour on your paste-board; lay the lump of dough upon it, flour your hands, and knead it a while on all sides. Then cut it in half, and roll out each sheet about an inch thick. With a jagging-iron cut it into large squares, ovals, triangles, or any form you please, and prick the surface handsomely, with a fork. Butter some square pans, put in the cakes, and bake them brown. For currants and raisins, you may substitute citron cut into slips and floured. This cake will be found very fine if the receipt is exactly followed. In cold weather it keeps well; and packed in a tin or wooden box, may be sent many hundred miles, for Thanksgiving-day, Christ- mas, or New Year’s. * This receipt, though inserted somewhat out of place, ‘is too good to be omitted. 454 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RE ;OEIPTS FOR COOKING. This cake will be greatly improved by adding to the other ingredients the grated yellow rind of two lemons, and their juice. For the brandy you may substitute a wine- glass of rose-water. — -o—— RICE WAFFLES.—Take a tea-cup and a half, or a common sized tumbler-full and a half, of rice that has been well boiled, and warm it in a pint of rich milk, stir- ring it till smooth and thoroughly mixed. Then remove it from the fire, and stir in a pint of cold milk and a small teaspoonful of salt. Beat four eggs very light, and stir them into the mixture, in turn with sufficient rice flour to make a thick batter. . Bake it in a waffle-iron. Send them to table hot; butter’ them; and eat them with powdered sugar and cn naeh prepared ina small bowl for the purpose. oS ~CORN-STARCH PUDDING.—Take four heaped table-spoonfuls of corn-starch, (to be had of most grocers, ) and mix it with cold milk to a thin smooth paste. Then set on the fire a quart of rich unskimmed milk, and, while it is heating, beat two eggs, and add them to the -corn-starch paste. When the milk boils, remove it from the fire, and stir in two table-spoonfuls of sugar, and add, gradually, the eggs and starch. It will stiffen as you stir. Put it immediately into moulds, and set it to cool till dinner-time. at it cold, with rich milk or cream: INDIAN MEAL PREPARATIONS OF ALL KINDS. 454 INDIAN MEAL. PREPARATIONS, &. HINTS ON HEATING OVENS, AND BAKING.— Brick ovens are generally heated with dry fagots or small branches, or with light split wood. For baking bread, the oven-wood must be heavier than for pies. A heap of wood should be placed in the centre of the oven on the brick floor, and then set on fire. While the wood is burning, the door of the oven must be left open. When the wood is all. burnt down, and reduced to a mass of small red coals, the oven will be very hot. Then shovel out all the coals and sweep the oven floor with a broom, till it is perfectly clean, and entirely free from ashes. Try the heat within. For baking bread, the floor of the oven should look red; and a little flour thrown in should urn brown immediately. If you can hold your hand within the mouth of the oven as long as you can dis- tinctly count twenty, the heat is about right. Pies, pud- dings, &c., require less heat. When a brick oven is used, a peel, or large broad-bladed, long-handled wooden shovel is necessary for putting in the bread, pies, &c., placing them on the broad or shovel-end of the peel, and then de- positing them on the oven floor. Then close up the door of the oven, and leave the things to bake. When done, slip the peel beneath them, and hand them out on it. To bake in an iron Dutch oven, (a large deep, cast-iron pan, with a handle, a close-fitting lid, and standing on three or four feet,) you must first stand the lid upright before a clear fire to heat the inside; and it will be best if the oven itself is also stood up before the fire for the same purpose. This should be done while the article to be baked is preparing, that it may be put in as soon as it is ; = 456 456 MISS LESL{2’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ready. The oven may be suspended to the crane, and hung over the fire, or it may be set on a bed of hot wood- coals in the corner of the hearth. As soon as the loaf,or pie is in, put on the lid of the oven, and cover it all over with hot coals, replenishing it with more live coals as the baking proceeds. If you find it too hot on the top, deaden it with ashes. If the oven stands on the hearth, keep up the heat at the bottom, by additional live coals placed — beneath it. Whether the oven is hung over the fire, or stood on the hearth, there must always be hot coals all over the lid, the hottest near the edge. To bake on a griddle, you may either hang it over the fire, or set it over hot coals on the hearth. Most griddles have feet. The fire must be quite clear and bright, and free from smoke, or the cakes will be blackened, and have a disagreeable taste. The griddle must be perfectly clean ; and while you are baking, it will require frequent scrap- ing, with a broad knife. If it is well scraped after every cake is taken off, it will not want greasing, as there will be no stickiness. Otherwise, some butter tied up in a clean rag and laid on a saucer, must be kept at hand all the time, to rub over the griddle between the baking of each cake; for butter, lard, or nice beef or veal-dripping may be substituted, but it will not be so fine. Never grease with mutton-fat, as it will communicate the taste of tallow. _~— EXCELLENT BUCK WHEAT CAKES.—A quart of buckwheat meal, sifted.—A level tea-spoonful of salt. —A small half-pint, or a large handful of Indian meal.—Two large table-spoonfuls of strong fresh brewer’s yeast, or four table-spoonfuls of home-made yeast.—Sufficient luke- warm water to make a moderate batter. Mix together” the buckwheat and Indian meal, and add the salt. Make a hole in the centre of the meal, and pour in the yeast. Then stir in gradually, from a kettle, sufficient tepid or lukewarm water to make a moderately thick batter when united with the yeast. Cover the pan, set-it in a warm place, and leave it to rise. It should be light in about three hours. When it has risen high and is covered with bubbles, it is fit to bake. Have ready a clean griddle well heated over the fire. Grease it well with a bit of fresh butter tied in a clean white rag, and kept on a saucer near you. ‘Then dip outa large ladle-full of the batter, and bake it on the griddle; turning it when brown, with the cake-turner, and baking it brown on the other side. Grease the griddle slightly between baking each cake; or scrape it smooth with a broad knife. As fast as you bake the cakes, lay them, several in a pile, on a hot plate. Butter them, and if of large size cut them across into four pieces. Or send them to table to be buttered there. Trim off the ed; es before they go in. If your batter has been mixed over night, and is found sour in the morning, dissolve a salt-spoon of pearlash or #sal-eratus in a little lukewarm water, stir it into the batter, ict it stand a quarter of an hour, and then bake it. The alkali will remove the acidity, and increase the lightness RYE, AND INDIAN BATTER CAKES, ETC. 477 of the batter. If you use soda for this purpose it will require a tea-spoonful. If the batter is kept at night in so cold a place as to freeze, it will be unfit for use. Do not grease the griddle with meat-fat of any sort. : —_o—. NICE RYE BATTER CAKES.—A quart of luke- warm milk.—Two eggs.—A large table-spoonful of fresh brewer’s yeast, or two of home-made yeast.—Sufficient sifted rye meal to make a moderate batter.—A salt-spoon of salt. Having warmed the milk, beat the eggs very light, and stir them gradually into it, alternately with the rye meal, adding the salt. Put in the meal, a handful at a time, till you have the batter about as thick as for buck- wheat cakes. Then stir in the yeast, and give the batter a hard beating, seeing that it is smooth and free from lumps. Cover the pan, and set it in a warm place to rise. When risen high, and covered with bubbles, the batter is fit to bake. Have ready over the fire a hot griddle, and bake the cakes in the manner of buckwheat. Send them to table hot, and eat them with butter, molasses, or honey. Yeast powders, used according to the directions that accompany them, and put in at the last, just before bak- ing, are an improvement to the lightness of all batter cakes, provided that real yeast or eggs are also in the mixture. But it is not well to depend on the powders exclusively, particularly when’ real yeast is to be had. The lightness produced by yeast powders alone, is not the right sort; and though the cakes are eatable, they are too tough and leathery to be wholesome. As auciliaries ta genuine yeast, and to beaten eggs, yeast powders are excellent. 5 Indian batter cakes may be made as above—or rye and Indian may be mixed in equal proportions. 473 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. INDIAN LIGHT BISCUIT.—A quart of sifted In- dian meal.—A pint of sifted wheat flour—A very small tea-spoonful of salt.—Three pints of milk.—Four eggs. Sift the Indian and wheat meal into a pan, and add the . salt. Mix them well. Beat the whites and the yolks of the eggs separately in two pans. The yolks must be beaten till very thick and smooth; the whites to a stiff froth that will stand alone of itself. Then stir the yolks gradually, (a little at a time,) into the milk. Add by degrees the meal. Lastly, stir in the beaten white of egg, and give the whole a long and hard stirring. Butter a sufficient number of cups, er small, deep tins—nearly fill them with the batter. Set them immediately into a hot oven, and bake them fast. Turn them out of the cups. Send.them warm to table, pull them open, and eat them with butter. | They will puff up finely if, at the last, you stir in a level tea-spoonful of soda, melted in a little warm water. oe . INDIAN CUPCAKES.—A pint anda half of yellow In- dian meal.—Halfa pint of wheat flour.—A pint and a half of sour milk ; buttermilk is best—A small tea-spoonful of sal-eratus or soda, dissolved in warm water.—Two eggs.— A level tea-spoonful of salt. Sift the Indian and wheat meal into a pan and mix them well, adding the salt. If you haye no butter-milk or other sour milk at hand, turn some sweet milk sour by setting a pan of it in the sun, or stirring in a spoonful of vinegar. Take out a small teacupful of the sour milk, and reserye it to be put in at the last. Beat the eggs very light, and then stir them, gradually, into the milk, alternately with the meal, a little at a time of each. Lastly, dissolve the soda or sal-eratus, and stir it into the cup of sour milk that has been reserved for the purpose. It will effervesce; stir it while foaming into the mixture, which should be a thick batter. Have KENTUCKY SWEET CAKE, CUP CAKES, ETO. 479 ~ ready some teacups, or little deep tins. Butter them well; nearly fill them with the batter, and set them immediately into a rather brisk oven. The cakes must be thoroughly baked all through. When done, turn them out on large plates, and send them hot to the breakfast or tea-table. Split them into three pieces, and eat them with butter. The soda will entirely remove the acidity of the milk, which. will effervesce the better for being sour at first, adding therefore to the lightness of the cake. Taste the milk, and if you find that the slightest sourness remains, add a little more dissolved soda. All the alkalies, pearlash, sal-eratus, soda, and sal-vola- tile, will remove acidity, and incfease lightness; but if too much is used they will impart a disagreeable taste. It is useless to put lemon or orange juice into any mixture that is afterwards to have one of these alkalies, as they will entirely destroy the flavour of the fruit. —_¢— KENTUCKY SWEET CAKE.—A pint of fine yellow Indian meal, sifted.—Half a pint of wheat flour.—Half a pound of powdered white sugar.—-Half a pound of fresh butter.—Hight eggs.—A powdered nutmeg.—A large tea- spoonful of powdered cinnamon.—A glass of white wine.— A glass of brandy. Having powdered the spice, and mixed together the wine and brandy, put the spice to steep in - the liquor. Mix well the Indian meal and the wheat flour, putting them into a broad pan. In another pan, stir together the butter and sugar (as for a pound cake) till they are very light and creamy. Break the eggs into a shallow earthen pan, and beat them till very thick and light. Then, by degrees, stir into the beaten butter and sugar, the spice and the liquor, a little at a time of each. Afterwards, add alternately the meal and the beaten egg, also a little of each at atime. Stir the whole very hard when all the ingredients are in. Bvtter a straight-sided ay “ a . iB: — LESLIB’ 8 NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. : bis see ee tin pan, pe the mixture into it; set it immediately inte- . rather brisk oven; and bake it well for three. or and hours or more, in ibe ah to its thickness. oa ae This is a very nice cake. It should be eaten the same day that it is baked ; as when stale (even one Ayal a all Indian cakes iome dry, hard, and rough. — It will be improved by the addition of a a pound of raisins, stoned, cut in half, and well dredged with wheat flour to ) prevent their sinking to the bottom. Sultana or seedless raisins are best. for all sorts of cakes and pad dings. cae ‘ee mw - CAROLIN A RICE CAKES.—Having i ckeed an _ washed half a pint of rice, boil it by itself till the grains lose all form and are dissolved into a thick mass, or jelly. While warm, mix into ita large lump of the best fresh butter, and a salt-spoonful of salt. Pour into a bowl, a moderate sized teacupful of ground rice-flour; and add to it-as much milk.as will make a tolerably stiff batter. Stix. it till it is quite smooth, and free from lumps. Then mix it thoroughly with the boiled rice. Beat six eggs as light as possible, and stir them, gradually, into the steer Bake it on a griddle, in cakes about as. large round as. saucer. Hat them warm with bt ter ; and have on ‘the meg, se those who like it. Pt % CAROLINA CORN CAKES.—™ a a, pint and a half of sifted corn meal, and a half pigt of wheat flour, adding a heaped saltticptien of salt. Beat three eggs very light. Have ready a quart of sour milk. (You can turn sweet milk sour by stirring into it a very little vinegar.) Put into a teacup a small tea-spoonful of carbonate of soda, and dissolve it in a little lukewarm water. In another teacup melt a salt‘spoonfal of tartaric 3 ix nibpeition’? ina pan, &, table, in a small bowl, some powdered Sha sugar and nut e : > i MADISON, pons RICE CAKES, ETC.) 481 acid. Add, alternately, to the milk, the beaten eggs and the mixed meal, a little at a time of each; stirring very hard. . Then stir in the melted soda, tia lastly the dis- solved tartaric acid. Having stirred the whole well together, butter some square pans; fill them with the batter ; set them immediately into a hot oven; and bake them eel af Serve them up hot, and eat them with butter or molasses, or both. These cakes may be baked in muf- fin rings. All hot cakes in the form of mtflins should be pulled open with the fingers when about to be eaten; and not split with a knife, the pressure of the knife tending __ to Inake them heavy. | ee By Se: 36 MADISON CAKE.—A pint and a half of sifted yel+ low corn meal.—Half a pint of wheat flour.—Half a pint of sour milk.—Half a pint of powéered white sugar.— Half ‘a pound of fresh butter.—Six eggs.—A gill, or two wine-glasses of brandy.—A pound of raisins of the best quality.—A large tea-spoonful of mixed spice, powdered mace, nutmeg, and cinnamon.—A large salt- -spoon of sal- eratus, or a small tea-spoonful of soda. If you have no. ~ gsour milk at hand, turn half a pint of rich milk sour by | setting it in the sun, or stirring in.a tea-spoonful of vine- gar. For this cake the milk must be sour, that the sal-_ eratus or r soda may act more powerfully by coming in contact with an acid. The acidity will then be entirely # removed by the effervescence, and the cake will be ren- ~ dered very light, and perfectly sweet. Having powdered the spice, put it into the brandy, and let it infuse till wanted. Prepare the raisins by stoning them, and cutting them in half; dredging them well with flour. They should be muscadel, or bloom raisins, or sultana; if the » latter, they will require no seeding. Low-priced raisins, of inferior quality, should never be used for cooking or for any purpose, as they are unwholesome. 41 iv 4 Re See ra Y M ‘ A “ o aie "i x ¥ bal MISS S LESLIN’s '$ NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ‘Sift the corn Teal a the wheat flour into a , pan, wee J mix them well. In another pan mix < the butter and sugar, a and stir them together with a hickory spaddlé (which i ig * . like a short mu&h-stick, only broader ‘at the flattened énd) still they are light and creamy.» Then add the. brandy and spice. In a broad, shallow r pan, b be at the eggs till very thick and smooth. Then stir them gradually into the butter and sugar in tum with the meal. Dissolve the sal-eratus or soda in a very little lukewarm. water, and stir it*into the sour milk. “Then, while foaming, add the milk to the rest of the mixture, and stir’ very hard. Lastly, - throw i in the raisins, a few at a wees and give the 2 whidle é a hard stirring. Ph: eos ae, ; Ee « Butter 2 deep square pan ‘or a turban-mould. Put in 3 “ the mixture. Set it directly into a brisk oven, andgbake #. e it at least three hours; or four if in a turban-mould. When half done, the leat should be increased. «This - eake should be eaten the day it is baked. ut at Se aS if a 3 x; f y “a ee “A quarter of a pound of fresh butter.—A quarter of a Pond of sugar.—Four eggs.- *Halt a nutmeg grated, and, ~ *S the corn for a quarter of an hour, grate the grains off the ---- eob with a coarse grater. Then add adittle bits) and the sugar. Having stixred them well into the*corn, thinit with milk. Beat the eggs very light, and add them to the mixture, a little at @ time, and finish -. with the spice. Stir the whole very hard. Butter a deep 3 “white dish, put in the pudding, set it directly into the » oven, and bake it twohours. Send it to.table warm, and’ eat it with butter and sugar, or molasses... It is not good cold, What. is left may be put into a small dish, and ie 4 Z i ay Co 4. © NANTUCKET PUDDING!—Six large ears of Indian : corn; full grown, but young and soft.—A pint of milki— ” has . five or six blades“of mace powdered. —Having first oiled | _ the butter (cut into — « % : rs s we oa —- & . . baked over again next day, for half an a "3 OF tied i in a cloth, and sage a wate. * ore SAMP PUDDING. —A pint of samp that has Boas boiled, and grown cold.—A’ pint of milk. —Three large tahlé-spétngals of fresh butter.- —Three large table-spoon- a fuls of sugar, or half a pint of West India molasses— ~ we Six eggs.—A table-spoonful: of powdered cinnamon and nutmeg mixed, or a table-spoonful of ground ginger. Boil: the milk; and just after you take ‘it from the fire’ stir in the butter and sugar; or instead of the sugar half a pint 0 of West India molasses. Then add ‘the spice, and set the milk 0; to cool. — Beat the eges till thick and smooth. ‘Then stir them, gradually, into the _ mixture, a little at a time, in turn with the samp. But- ter a deep dish; put in the mixture, and bake it well. Eat\it warm, with butter, sugar, and nutmeg beaten to- gether to a cream; or with molasses and butter. A rice pudding may be made as above; the ride) being : P eviously boiled by itself, and well drained. wi samp pudding may be tied ina cloth and boiled. = ee ' A FARMER'S IN DIAN PUDDIN G. Eas Cat pints of sifted Indian meal, the yellow sort—_A quetiggs rich milk.—A pint of West India molasses. ro. table a 6 ¢ spoonful of ground cinnamon, or ginger. Before you. begin, set over the fire a a large pot filled with water, which ‘must boil hard by the time the pudding i is mixed. Put the milk by itself, into another pot or ‘sauce-pan, and give it a boil. When it has come to a boil, pour it into a deep pan, and stir into it a pint of the best West India » molasses. Then add, by degrees, the Indian meal, a hand- ful at a time ; and lastly, the spice. » Stir the whole very hard. Have ready a square pudding-cloth ; dip it in boil- ing water; shake it out; dredge it with abit and spread # 4 - * INDIAN AND NANTUCKET PUDDING, a, mic. “488 it ae a, 8 pan. -bat gee * _ into ae and, leaving near, one-third sae it; as . 2. room, for it 2 aiall tie it firmly with tape. “Make a a morsel of stiff. Sich with flour and a little water, and. with it stop closely the little aperture at the tying-place, cm . to prevent water from getting ig. ther Plaster it on well. aaa ~ Put the pudding into the large pot of. boilifig 1 swater ¢ « ss - cover it closely with the lid; and let it boil : steadily fo or at least th ree hours; ' four will ap be too long. ~ While * poiling, tuin it frequently. As the water boils awayy re “ plenish: it with some more water, kept boiling hard f a ‘this purpose, in. a kettle. On no account pour in cold fs water, as ‘that will render. the udding heavy. ‘urn it. al _ out of the. cloth immediately before it goes to table e,and ~ .* “eat, it wile putter and molasses. “Tt will be found éxeel- eo k nt. ‘The West India eee will make it as light as OS i if it had eggs. - ae r —--- You may add with the spice, | the yellow gine of a large > lee SiN finely ‘grated. ie es a ge ae ge S| eels 3 Re oe % vA VERY NICE BOILED INDIAN PUDDIN Gee a Three pints.of sifted Indian meal. —Half a pound . of beef 4 “suet minced as fine as possible.— —A quart of imilk. —_ “Half a pint of West India molasses. —Six eggs ne Pa . “Oba 3 sticks of cinnamon, broken small. he grated 1 nut- meg. ‘Having cleared the suet fromte the skin. and strings, chop it as fine as possible, and mix it with the Indiang « bs meal: Boil thé cinnamon in the milk till it i ishighly flavoured. Then ‘strain the milk, (boiling hot) into the _pan of Indian meal and suet, andvadd’the molasses. Stir. the mixture very hard. Cover it and set it away ina cool place. Beat the eggs. till a and:add them, *. © gradually, to the mixture as soon is quite cold. Then : grate in the nutmeg. Dip a thick square cloth into boil- © - 4 Kee » & ¥ % ahs . “ty oe a + < : - Ps ts, 4 7 es Y % | * poses . BAKED CORN : ae PUDDING, ETC, Pr ing water, shake it out, dredge it with ‘flour, and then spread it open: in a deep pan, : and pour in the mixture. . Leaving one-third of the space vacant allowing for the pudding to swell, tie the cloth very securely, and to guard against water getting into it, plug up the little erack at the tying place by ‘plastering on a bit of dough made of % flour and water. Be ing water, (having an old plate in the hottom,) and boil it six” hours or more, turning it often, and n eplenishing - the: o pot, when nécessary, with boiling water from a kettle. meer you dine early,.the pudding should be mixed before we breakfast. ‘Serve it up hot. oi Hat it “with wine sauce, with butter icc or «- «with a sauce of butter, sugar, lemon-juice and nutmeg, ' beaten, together to a cream. What is left of the pudding, . may u next day ‘be tied i ina agp and oiled over again for , oe *, x * BAKED CORN MEAL PUDDIN G. 4 pint of sifted » ~Mndian meal.—Half a pint of West India molasses.—A. _quarter of a pound of fresh butter: —A pint of milk.— ut the pudding into a large pot of boil- 1 Wee . « .Four eggs.—The yellow rind of a large fresh, orange or : % > > DOr, grated. —A tea-spoonful of powdered cinnamon and. .. “nutme ‘mixed. Boil the milk. Sift the Indian meal into # ‘an éarthen pan, pour the boiling milk over it, and stir © *. theny-well together. Cut up the butter into a small sauce- ~ Pan; pour the molasses over it; set it on the fire, and let % ” hent warm m together till the Peele is soft, but not oiled. Stir them well, andy mix them with the milk and Indian meal. . Set the pan in a cool place. In a separate pan beat the eggs very light, and when the mixture has be- come cold, add the eggs to it, gradually. Then stir in the spice, and crated orange or lemon peel. Stir the whole very hard. Put the mixture into a buttered white dish ' 41% nw De ar aes e * 3 ‘ ? . ; “3 Pe wt : ie] ” a. ~ te > ae ee © ‘ae fess: ee ee ; 7 — e * ee Pa “ - 486. , MISS LESLIE fe NEW. RECEIPTS FOR COOKING, : > and bake it ane Serve. iteup hot, and eat it with asauce = made of ‘powdered white sugar, and fresh h butter seasoned with nutmeg and lemon or orange juice, and stirred to- . gether to a cream; or witha liquid sa sauce pus augieee + 4 ine and nutmeg. " A @.25 This quantity of BS aint af: make a » small aan : Sg os For’ a large’ one, allow a ad portion of a. Sali and @ sD ; ~ bake it i longer. » § * 4 a It will be improved by ney in at the'last, if a pound of Zante currants or 0 sultana raisins, ai ~ drageagy with figp. “Re ag i é ‘ ) fe + pore? Fe a g ) ? , ae” eg * “e © i f PUMPKIN Sil PUDDING. —Take a pint and. a half of cold stewed pumpkin, and mix into it a pintand a a half of Indian meal, adding a table-spoonfal of gape ee ginger. Boil a _quart ofmilk, and.ag soon as - you tak es from the fire, stir into it a pint of West India : “i am cag Then add to it gradually the mixture of pumpkin and » corn meal, and stir the whole very hard. It will be much i improved - by adding the grated yellow rind of a large - . « orange or ‘Temon,, Have ready over the fire a large pot. of boiling. water. Dip your pudding-cloth into it; shakes ic 3 it out; spread: out the cloth in a broad pan "dredge ite Sul * “with flow: pour the mixture into it, and-tie it fa a; , ing: about one-third of the space for the pudding to swell. pi . Boil it three hours or more—four hours will not be too ? 4 ~ long. Turn it several times while “boiling, © “Replenish . _ the pot as it boils, with hot water from a kettle kept boil- @ ing for the purpose. Take up the pudding immediately before it is wanted for table—dip it a moment in cold water, and turn it out into a dish. Hat, it with butter ‘ and molasses. *. . %* This pudding requires no eves in the “mixture, # The molasses, if West India, will make it. sufficiently fight. _ x 2 a BS # ? * - a my rs tie, * co _BACKWOODS POT-PIE, PUDDING, ETO. 487 What is left may be tied in a cloth, and re-boiled next day Diy on | the ——— ge ie mn BACKWOODS POT-PIE.—Put a large portion of yellow Indian meal, (with a very little salt,) into a deep pan, and pour on scalding water, (stirring itm asyou pro: © « * ceed,) till you have a soft, dough. Beat and stir it long » © and hard, adding more corn meal, till the dough becomes stiff It will be improved by mixing in a little wheat “te flour. When it is cool enough tg handle, knead it a while a with your hands. ‘Take off portions of the dough or paste, é ‘ . and form them into flat, square cakes. Take a largepot; a grease the sides with a little good dripping or lard, and rl - line them with the cakes ofcorn meal. Have ready some 4 fresh venison cut into pieces, and seasoned with a little aca . salt'and pepper.” Put Bpmageot it into the pot, (adding oy oF some water to assist in the gravy,) and cover it witha a -. layer of corn cakes. Then more venison, and then more cakes, till the pot is nearly full. The last layer must be . ‘ _2 large cake with a slit in the middle. Set it over the “fire, and let it boil steadily 1 till the whole is thoroughly done. Then take it up, and dish it together, meat and ‘ ~ paste. = ~~ © The paste that is to line the sides of the pot should be e * Tint: than that which is to be laid among the ne wi Put no paste at the bottom. | If you have any cold drippings of roast venison, you * © may mix some of it with the corn meal, as shortening. ’ ~ Sweet potatoes sliced, and laid a the meat, will ~ 4 Bae ein ite pies " ET: PuRETS TO BOIL INDIAN CORN.—Corn for boiling should be full grown, but young and tender, and the grains soft and milky. If its grains are becoming hard and yellow, itis too old for boiling. Strip the ears of their leaves & a, : fi ’ 4 a" - * oh, 488 MISS LESLIE'S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. and the silk. * Put them into a large pot of boiling water, and boil it gather fast for half an hour or more, in propor- tion to its size and age. When done, take it up, drain it, dish it under a cover, or napkin, and serve it up hot. Before eating it, rub each ear with salt and pepper, and then spread it with butter. Epicures in corn consider it sweetest when eaten off the cob. And 80 itis; but, be- Sore company 1 few persons like to hold an ear of Indian corn in their hands, and bite the grains off the cob with | their teath Therefore, it is more » frequently cut off the cob into a dish; mixed with salt, pepper, and butter, and helped with a spoon, = = It is said that young green corn will boil sufficiently in ten minutes, (putting it of ec course anip a pot: of boiling water.) Try it. ie we oy de ‘Another way. —Having pulled off the silk, boil the corn, without removing the leaves ‘that enclose. the cob. With the leaves or husk on, ‘it will require a longer time to cook, but is sweeter and more nutritious. or - rn -" a @ Sail : - ¢ GREEN CORN: DUMPLINGS.—A quart of young corn grated from the cob.—Half a pint of wheat flour, — sifted.—Half a pint of milk. —Six table-spoonfuls of but- ter.—Two eggs. —A salt-spoonful of salt.—A salt-spoon- fal of pepper.—Butter for frying. Having grated as _ fine as possible, sufficient young fresh corn to make a quart, ~ mix with it the wheat flour, and add the salt and pepper. Warm the milk in a small saucepan, and soften thé butter init. Then add them gradually to the pan of corn, stir- ring very hard; and set it away to cool. Beat the’ “£888 light, and stir fe into the mixture when ‘it has cooled. Flour your hands and make it into little dumplings. Put into a frying-pan a sufficiency of fresh butter, (or lard and butter in equal proportions,) and when it is boiling hot, % : cal " *v ae ¥ * 2 CORN PORRIDGE, OYSTERS, SACCATASH, ETC. 489 and has been skimmed, put in the dumplings; and fry them ten minutes or more, in proportion to their thick- ness. Then drain them, and send them hot to the dinner- ~ table. c —$—~ CORN PORRIDGEH.—Take young corn, and cut the grains from the cob. Measure it, and to each heaping pint of corn, allow not quite a quart of milk. Put the corn and milk into a pot; stir them well together: and boil them till the corn is perfectly soft. Then add some bits of fresh butter dredged with flour, and let it boil five minutes longer. Stir in at the last, some beaten yolk of egg; and in three minutes remove itfrom the fire. Take up the porridge, and send it to table hot, and stir some fresh butter into it. You may add sugar and nutmeg. | —¢#——. CORN OYSTERS.—Three dozen ears of large young fndian corn.—Six eggs.—Lard and butter in equal por- ‘tions for frying. The corn must be young and soft. Grate it from the cob as fine as possible, and dredge it with wheat flour. Beat very light the six eggs, and mix them gradually with the corn. Then let the whole be well in- corporated by hard beating. Add a salt-spoon of salt. Have ready, in a frying pan, a sufficient quantity of lard and fresh butter mixed together. Set it over the fire till it is boiling hot, and then put in portions of the corn- mixture, so as to form oval cakes about three inches long, and nearly an inch thick. Fry them brown, and send them to table hot. In taste they will be found to have a singular resemblance to fried oysters, and are universally liked if properly done. They make nice side-dishes at dinner, and are very good at breakfast. —_¢— SUMMER SACCATASH.—Siring a quarter of a peck of young green beans, and cut each bean into three pieces J ’ 490 MISS LESLIN’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. (not more) and do not split them. Have by you a pan of cold water, and throw the beans into it as you cut them. Have ready over the fire a pot or saucepan of boiling water, put in the beans, and boil them hard near twenty minutes. Afterwards take them up, and drain them well through a cullender. ‘ake half a dozen ears of young but full-grown Indian corn (or eight or nine if they are not all large) and cut the grains down from the cob. Mix together the corn and the beans, adding a very small tea- spoonful of salt, and boil them about twenty minutes. Then take up the saccatash, drain it well through a sieve, put it into a deep dish, and while hot mix in a large piece of butter, (at least the size of an egg,) add some pepper, - and send it to table. It is generally eaten with salted or smoked meat. ' Fresh Lima beans are excellent cooked in this manner, with green corn. ‘They must be boiled for half an hour or more before they are cooked with the corn. Dried beans and dried corn will do very well for sacca- tash, but they must be soked all night before boiling. The water poured on them for soaking should be hot. —— oe ' WINTER SACCATASH.—This is made of dried shelled beans, and hard corn. Take equal quantities of shelled beans and corn; put them over night into separate pans, and pour boiling water over them. Let them soak till morning. Then pour off that water, and scald them again. first boil the beans by themselves. When they are soft, add the eorn, and let them boil together till the corn is quite soft, which will require at least an hour. Take them up, drain them in a sieve; then put them into a deep dish, and mix in a large piece of fresh butter, and a little pepper and salt. | This is an excellent accompaniment to pickled pork, X SS ae * HOMINY, CAROLINA GRITS, SAMPS, ETC. 491 a bacon, or corned beef. The meat must be boiled by itself . Ina separate pot. peat Se HOMINY.—Hominy is white Indian corn, shelled from the cob, divested of the outer skin by scalding in hot’ lye, and then winnowed and dried. It is perfectly white. Having washed it through two or three waters, pour boiling water on it, cover it, and let it soak all night, or for several hours. Then put it into a pot or saucepan, allow two quarts of water to each quart of hominy, and boil it till perfectly soft. Then drain it, put it into a deep - dish, add some butter to it, and send it to table hot, (and uncovered,) to eat with any sort of meat; but particularly with corned beef or pork. What is left may be made next day into thick cakes, and fried in butter. To be very good, hominy should boil four or five hours. “is —_o— CAROLINA GRITS, or SMALL HOMINY.—The small-grained hominy must be washed and boiled in the same manner as the large, only allow rather less water for boiling. For instance, put 4 pint and a half of water to a quart of small hominy. Drain it well, send it to table in a deep dish without a cover, and eat it with butter and » sugar, or molasses, If covered after boiling, the vapour will condense within the lid, and make the hominy thin and watery. — je SAMP.—This is Indian corn skinned, and then pounded or ground till it is still smaller and finer than the Carolina grits. It must be cooked and used in the same manner. Ii is very nice eaten with cream and sugar. For invalids it may be made thin, and eaten as gruel. HOMINY CAKES.—A pint of small hominy, or Caro- lina grits.—A pint of white Indian meal, sifted.——A salt 492 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. boca spoonful of salt.—Three large table-spoonfuls of fresh butter.—Three eggs, or three table-spoonfuls of strong yeast.—A quart of milk. Having washed the small hominy, and left it soaking all night, boil it soft, drain it, and while hot, mix it with the Indian meal; adding the salt, and the butter. Then mix it gradually with the milk, and set it away to cool. Beat the eggs very light, and add them, gradually, to the mixture. The whole should make a thick batter. Then bake them on a griddle, in the manner of buckwheat cakes, greasing or scraping the griddle, always before you put ona fresh cake. Trim — off their edges nicely, and send them to table hot. Hat them with butter. Or you may bake them in muffin rings. If you prefer making these cakes with yeast, you must begin them earlier, as they will require time to rise. The yeast should be strong and fresh. If not very strong, use four table-spoonfuls instead of two. Cover the pan, set it in a warm place; and do not begin to bake till it is well risen, and the surface of the mixture is covered with bubbles. ° hee” PS 6. TO KEEP INDIAN CORN FOR COOKING.— Take the corn when it is young and tender, and barely full-grown. Let it remain on the cob till you have boiled it ten or fifteen minutes (not more) in a large pot of slightly-salted water that must be boiling hard when the corn is put in. When thus parboiled, take it out, and when cool enough to handle, cut down the grains from the cob, into a deep pan, with a knife. Then spread out the grains in large flat dishes or shallow pans, and set them in an oven, after the bread, pies, &c., are done, and have been taken out. Let the corn remain in the oven till it is all well dried. If your oven is heated every day, EXCELLENT RECEIPT FOR PORK*AND BEANS. 493 you may put the corn into it a second time. When quite dry, and after it has cooled, put it into a large thick bag ; tie the bag tightly, and hang it up in a cool store-room. When wanted for use, corn thus prepared will be found excellent for boiling in winter soup ; or boiled by itself and drained, and sent to table in a vegetable-dish to eat with » meat; first mixing with it some butter, and a little pepper and salt. It will boil as soft, and taste as well as when fresh from the garden. It will be better for soaking all ‘night in water, before-cooking. Bakers who heat their ovens every day, would find it profitable to buy Indian corn in large quantities, and pre- pare it as above, to sell afterwards for table use. If the corn is not young and fresh, it will require half an hour’s boiling before it is dried in the oven. What is called sweet corn is excellent for this purpose. =o ° EXCELLENT RECEIPT FOR PORK AND BEANS.—Take a good piece of pickled pork (not very fat) and to each pound of pork allow a quart of diied " white beans. The bone should be removed from the pork, and the beans well picked and washed. ‘The evening before they are wanted for cooking, put the beans and pork to soak in separate pans; and just before bed-time, drain off the water, and.replace it with fresh. Let them soak all night. arly in the morning, drain them well from the water, and wash first the beans, and then the pork in a cullender. Having scored the skin in stripes or diamonds, put the pork into a pot with fresh cold water, and the beans into another pot with sufficient cold water to cook them well. Season the pork with a little pepper, but of course no salt. Boil them separately and slowly till the pork is thoroughly done (skimming it well) and till the beans have all burst open. Afterwards take them 42 Se es wr, 4°74 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. ae out, and drain them well from the water. Then lay the pork in the middle of a tin pan, (there must be no liquid fat about it) and the beans round it, and over it, so as nearly to bury it from sight. Pour in a very little water, | and set the dish into a hot oven, to bake or brown for half an hour. If kept too long in the oven'the beans will — become dry and hard. If sufficiently boiled when separ- ate, half an hour will be long enough for thepork and _ beans to bake together: Carefully skim off any liquid fat that may rise to the surface. Cover the dish, and send it to table hot. | For a small dish, two quarts of beans and two pounds of pork will be enough. To this quantity when put to bake in the oven you may allow half a pint of water. This is a good plain dish, very popular in New Eng- land, and generally liked in other parts of the country. —_e— AUNT LYDIA’S. CORN CAKE.—Sift into a large pan a quart of indian meal. Add a salt-spoon of salt. Have ready a pint of boiling milk, sufficient to make a soft dough. Mix the milk hot with the meal, and add a quarter of a pound of fresh butter. Stir all very hard, and set-it to cool. Beat four or five eges very light, and when the mixture is cool stir them gradually into it. Butter some square or oblong tins, _ and fill them with the mixture. Set them into a mode- ~» rate oven, and bake them well. Serve them up hot; and eat them with butter or molasses, or both. No indian breakfast-cakes are better than these. They are called after a coloured woman cook. NEW RECEIPTS, PLUM-PUDDING, ETC. 405 NEW RECEIPTS. ICED PLUM-PUDDING.—Take two dozen sweet and two dozen bitter almonds. Blanch them in seald- "ing water; and then throw them into a bowl of cold water. Pound them, one at a time, in a mortar, till they become a smooth paste, free from the smallest lumps; pounding a bitter and a sweet one alternately, that they may be well mixed. As you proceed, add frequently a few drops of rose-water or lemon-juice, to make them light, and prevent their oiling. Seed, and cut in half, a quarter of a pound of the best bloom raisins. Mix with them a quarter of a pound of Zante currants, picked, washed, and. dried; and add to the raisins and currants, three ounces of citron cut into dice. Mix the citron with the raisins and currants, and dredge them all with flour, to prevent their sinking or clodding. Take a half-pint of very rich milk. Split a vanilla bean, and cut it into pieces two or three inches long, and boil it in the milk till the flavour of the vanilla is well extracted; then strain it out, and mix the vanilla-milk with a pint of rich eream, and stir in, gradually, a quarter of a pound of pow- dered loaf-sugar, and a small nutmeg grated. Then add the pounded almonds, and a large wine-glass of either marasquino, noyau, curagoa, or the very best brandy. Beat, in a shallow pan, the yolks of eight eggs till very light, thick, and smooth; and stir them gradually into the mixture. Simmer it over the fire, (stirring it all the time,) but take it off just as it is about to come to a boil; ctherwise it will curdle. Then, while the mixture is hot, _ stir in the raisins, currants, and citron. Set it to cool; and * then add a large teacup-full of preserved strawberries or - yaspberries, half a dozen preserved apricots, or peaches, We 496 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. half a dozen preserved green limes, and any other very nice and delicate sweetmeats. Then whip to a stiff froth another pint of cream, and add it lightly to the mixture. Put the whole into a large melon-mould, that opens in the middle, and freeze it in the usual way.’- It will take four hours to freeze it well. Do not turn it out till just before it is wanted. Then send it to table. on a glass dish. It will be found delicious. Iced puddings are now considered indispensable on fashionable supper-tables or at dinner-parties. There is no flour in this pudding. The freezing will keep it together. —o—— FINE PUDDING-SAUCH.—Take a large half-pint cup of the best fresh butter, and the same quantity of . powdered loaf-sugar. Put them together into a pan, and beat them to a light thick cream. Then mixa wine-glass full of boiling water, and a wine-glass full of the best brandy, with the juice of a large lemon or orange, and. half a large nutmeg, or a small one, grated. Mix these ingredients, gradually, with the beaten butter and sugar, and transfer the sauce to a small tureen, with a spoon or ladle in it. = ee SES _ICED PINE-APPLE PUDDING.—Take two find ripe pine-apples, of the largest size. Cut off and throw away the points or withered blossoms from the surface of the outside. Then pare off the rind, and cut the paring into small pieces. Cut the flesh of the pine-apples into thick slices first, and then cut the slices into dice, omit- ting the hard core. Boil the dice in water enough to cover them; when quite soft, take them out, and spread them to cool. Then pour the pine-apple water upon a pound of the finest loaf-sugar, and boil and skim it till ales 4 TANSEY AND PINE APPLE PUDDING. 497 the scum ceases to rise. ‘Next, put in the bits of pine- apple, give them one boil-up in the syrup, and then set them away to cool in it. In another sauce-pan, boil a pint of cream with the bits of ' pine- -apple rind, till the cream is well flavoured. Then strain it out, and when cool, mix with it, gradually, the beaten yolks of ten eggs, and simmer this custard over the fire, (stirring it all the time,) hut do not let it come quite to a boil, or it, will: cardle. Afterwards, mix together the custard, the syrup, and the bits of pine- -apple. Take another pint of cream, whip it to a stiff froth, and make it very sweet with white sugar, and add it to the whole mixture ; stirring it well in. Transfer the whole to\a large melon-mould, that opens in the middle, and freeze it in the usual manner. 2 . To freeze it well, will require near four hours. “Turn it , out on'@ glass dish immediately before it is sent to table. You may give this pudding a ‘ae green colour, by , adding to the mixture a sufficiency of pistachio-nuts, shelled, and pounded to a green paste. ~~ : . ; URRY ah TANSEY PUDDING.—Take a quarter of a pound of stale sponge-cake, (almond sponge-cake is best,) and _ grate it finely. Pound, ina mortar, sufficient fresh spinach to yield a half-pint, or a large teacup-full of juice. Then - Clear out the mortar and pound a handful of tansey-leaves, _ (or more,) till you have two table-spoonfuls of liquid. Mix the grated sponge-cake with a pint of cream (or of rich unskimmed milk) and four heaping table-spoonfuls of powdered white sugar. If you use milk instead of cream, mix with the grated sponge-cake two large spoonfuls of fresh butter. Add a wine-glass of brandy or madeira, ‘in which you have steeped a heaping tea-spoonful of mixed . 4 spice, nutmeg, mace, and cinnamon. Stir the whole hard. Beat six eggs. till very smooth and light, and stir them 40% om *% “his 5 of se ~_ “Done we pepe a bl eal “ a iss fie ’ ° dial = e * - 49% MISS LESLIN’S NEW jive sy FOR COOKING. ae gradually into the mixture. Lastly, add sufficient of the ad . spinach-juice to rendefiit a very fine green, and finish with a a two -table- spoonfuls (not more of the tansey-juice. Too i much tansey will make, the pudding bitter. ” Stir ‘the whole very hard. Butter a deep dish. ‘Put in . the ‘mix- ae a Se tate, ,and bake it about three- quarters of an hour. When | Be i, done, set it in’a cool place, “Serve it up cold, having “ ‘sifted sugar over the surfac * 4 ‘This pudding, may ] be boi nel in a mould. . aes a A Be eaten warm with wine-sauce. ey: Eee a" 4 _- * ee % Be, : - ie , VICTORTA PUDDING.—Take a large pint of stewed » , apple oma quart of stewed gooseberries, made very sweet » with plenty of sugar mixed in after it is stewed. ,If the «sugar is put in at first, along with the fruit, it will render the fruit tough, hard, and dry ; ; also much of the strength of the sugar will go off in stewing. © Every sort of fruit should be stewed. without sugar, and with a very little water, barely enough to prevent its. burning. As soon as it'is stewed quite soft, so that you can mash it to a jam, take it from the fire, wn while hot, stir in sufficient sugar to sweeten it well. Stewed apple should “be flavoured, while hot, with lemon-juice or > scleiente | -gooseberries, (which should be pressed through a oath fender, using only the pulp) with grated nutmeg. When the stewed fruit is quite cool, beat, in a shallow pan, the yolks of five eg ggs, and the whites of two, and when quite light and smooth, mix them, gradually, with the stewed fruit. Having buttered a deep dish, transfer the mix-’ ture to it, and sift sugar over the surface. Next, beat as will make a thick icing, adding, as you proceed, sufli- eient lemon-juice or rose-water to flavourat well. Put a % .* i _the three remaining whites of eggs to a stiff froth, and _ then, gradually, beat into it as much powdered loaf-sugar ‘) > & a _ ee ar) fo , a oo Lee tin. 7 ila * Z ~ ae wee? oe bile * r * 2 . oe pact MAIDS OF HONOUR, VICTORIA PUDDING. 499 ne ; f tee the icing into a china pot or pitcher, that has a lidsand a spout; and holding it high, pour it all over the surface. of the pudding, piling it in round bubbles, and making it rather highest in the centre. Then set the pudding into a brisk’oven, and bake it ten minutes. “When done, sot it on ice, and ‘send it to table cold. & we 3 This pudding is very fine made of fresh quinces, cut up » * and stewed to a jam; and sweetened while hot. For quinces, the icing should be avoured with orange-juice. In stewing apple, you may put i in with the fruit the grated yellow rind of a lemon, or a few unblown rose- buds, picked out of their ereen sheaths, and cut vp small. ; % is gas . ae .~ =: ‘MAIDS OF ‘HONOUR. The. night previous to. making these “cakes, cut a piece of rennet: about for.” . inches square, wash of carefully a: the’ salt, from the af outside, wipe the rennet dry, and put it into a cup to goak, with sufficient warm water (not boiling hot) to cover Me it well. ‘Harly in the morning, stir the rennet-water into © % pan containing a quart of rich milk. Cover the pan, | oe and seb it in a warm place till the milk becomes a firm curd and the liquid looks-greenish. Then place it on ice - ill wanted.© When quite cold, put the curd into a sieve epend: drain it dry ; breaking it up small, and crumbling it ‘ fine in your hands. Have ready two ounces of sweet» almonds, and two ounces of bitter almonds, blanched and pounded in a marble mortar to a. smooth paste, and mixed, as you proceed, with rose-water, to prevent their oiling. Grate, upon lumps of loaf-s sugar, the yellow rind of three lemons, scraping it off the sugar, and transferring it to a saucer. Then squeeze the juice of the lemons over the stigar, and let it dissolve. \ Mix, in a deep pan, the crum- bled curd, with three-quarters of a pound of the best fresh ° butter, cut up} and three-quarters of a pope of powdered * Py y ie shat ¥r. Po Be ie Sa. & oe zi cam , . a 500 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. loaf. ugar. Stir the curd, the. butter, and the sugar to- es gether, till very light, adding a wine-glass of brandy, the pounded almonds, (the bitter and sweet well- mized to- gether,) and the lemon- “grate mixed with, the juice ; “also > grate in a small nutmeg 0 or half a large one. Beat, i ima. ite, i shallow pan, ‘the yolks of eighteggs, till perfectly light, Pi “and add them gradually'to the other ingredients, finish- ae ing with a ‘table-spoonful of farina, or of potato-flour or “4 _ Yice-flour ; and beat the whole very hard. Have ready sufficient ‘puff. “paste, made*with the best butter. Butter some small tartlet pans, and dine thom with paste. “Then i . fill them up with the above mixture, “and sift powdered loaf- ee é sugar over the strface of each.cake. Set them immediately © ~ “into a brisk oven, and bake, them well.” When done, turn ’ ~* them ott’ of the pans, and s ‘them to ¢ jool. If properly | .. "made; they | will be found yery fine. * = & = ox: ss The prepatation of these cakes is said to have been one : - cap the occupations ueen whlinabet ts maids of honour. fe ‘" EX Fee .. _ . A CHARLOTTE MERINGUE—Take half . _ of the best maccaroons, (such as are made with both sweet and bitter almonds,) lay them in the bottom of a en dish, sprinkle them well with powdered loaf-sugar, . pour on sufficient white wine (or wine | and brandy mixe to ‘dissolve them completely. Fine, clear, bottled cide will be still better. Beat to a.stiff froth six whites of egg, » and then beat in, gradually,” enou h of powdered loaf- me ». sugar to make a very thick icing’or —— flavouring ae it well with lemon-juice, or rose or orange-j Then cover the dissolved cake very thichely, and evenly with the meringue, which should be put on two or three inches thick. Smooth its surface with a broads knife dipped in cold water. You may ornament it with réd.sugar-sand, yut on, in a handsome pattern. Setit ima warm, dry f a _— P a ’ ters of a pound. Warm two quarts of rich milk, and "pour it hot over the bread, in a deep pan. ~ Cover it, and - when it has soaked’ quite soft, so as’ to have dissolved, set “melting the tartaric acid (or the contents of the white , cup. Stir them’s separately, into the batter, the e, ? cooking, « ” ae un You ney calislitrte.. almond 1 sponge-ake for the mac- _ caroons.. < : eo a we Os -. me 2 ‘ ~~ * : 2 & * ‘very hard, till it becomes a smooth batter. ‘Lastly, melt, ve place to harden, and serve ™ up ata any or “eyen- ing party. “It will be found very nice, ancgresites no BURLIN GTON CAKES. — Take: is “aes sliced tae? bread (after. removing the crust) as will weigh three-quar- it to cool. Have ready. fiveveggs, beaten in a shallow, pan till very. thick and - Then mix. te eggs, gradually, into th bread and milk ; sprinkling i in, by | des**°, grees, a small half-pint of wheat flour. * Beat all together, * ben e in as much warm water as will, cover it, a small toa-$poon- ful of sal-aratus or soda, and stir it into the mixture. — Bake it on a griddle, in the usual manner of buckwheat - + Se i send them to table hot, and eat them with butter. | ior sal-aratus, you may substitute a yeast-powder ; ae paper) in ong, cup, and the soda (from the blue paper) in a first. Then stir the whole very hard at the last. © "PRE SERVED ORANGE Take a sufficiency of large ripe sweet oranges, with ‘thin smooth rinds. Roll each © orange under your_hand, upon a table, to increase the juice. Cut a large slit in the side, and squeeze them through a strainer into a pitcher, till you have a quart of juice. Cut twelve other oranges into eight pieces each. And, having carefully removed the strings and seeds, : . “ ~ A ale ep the sweetmeat to a glass di -: * # 7. 502 MISS LESLIE’S NEW RECEIPTS FOR COOKING. od * peel off the rind very nicely, so as not to break or dis- : figure the pieces. ~ Weigh four pounds of the best double- refined loaf.suizar, brokéa up, and put it into a proserving- kettle. Jn a smaller kettle, boil.a quart of clear water, with the thin yellow rind of six of the oranges ‘that have ', been cut in pieces. Let it boil moderately for aguarter of an hour. The remove the orange-rind, and pour the ' utes on the sugar, in th preserving kettle, and stir it #, about. .. When melted, set it over - theifire add the quart of orangejuice, and boil it slowly a har a an hour. : Lastly, put in the pieces of orange, and let them boil about five minutes. Transfer the ithe to a large tureen, and, when cold, put the swéetmeat ir in glass j jars ; securing ra _the lids well, by tying a Pigge. of bladder cover each, or . pasting "paper closely over them: ©". ig i oe ee “¢ For immediate use, you may make 'this sweetmeat 1 in a. ; Petane quantity ; for instance, a pint of orange-juice; two pounds of sugar melted inva pint of water; and six large oranges, each cut into eight Best When cool, transfer 1 set it on ice, ant ‘serve it “up with the pec Sa ine. " In a similar manner may be eee Pty the very small sweet oranges that, when full- -grown, are not so gice as a common-sized peach. Peel gf all the rind, and, ha ng | made the syrup as-above, put in the little Oren ECs who and boil them ten minutes. . re ¢ - eee 2 PHARLED FRUIT. “orice faci of fine ripe ian or large currants, either red or “white. Beat, in a broad pan, some white of egg, With one- -thirdaits quantity of cold water. Dip the fruit into this, so-as to wet it well all . over. Then, for a minute or two, lay it to drain onan , inverted sieve. Have ready a dish of finely- -powdered — and sifted loaf-sugar, and roll init the bunches of fruit & Sis. & “? = ee ee " ’ &, ® >, Pe POUND PEARS, PEARLED FRUIT, ETC, 503 till thoroughly covered. Giye it a gentle shake, and then lay it lightly on sheets of white paper to dry, which it will in the course of three or four hours, 1 in a warm room or near’ a’ sunny window. Serve i it utp “in glass dishes, at dinner or evening parties. . In the same manner, you may pearl ripe strawberries - raspberries, gooseberries, cherries, or lums. : Instead of white of egg, you may. dip the fruit into thin Grp sicbicaratan, 3 afterwards rolling it in sugar. ‘ ie Beoksellers, and all ethers, will be supplied at very Low Rates. %q PPPP APP A NAPA LP EVA ANA A AOA LA AD MRS, SOUTH WORTHS’. Vivia ; bi 2 The Secret of Pow India. The Pearl of Pearl River, - The Missing Bride, The Lost Heiress, Deserted Wife, - Wife’s Victory, - Curse of Clifton, Discarded Daughter, Retribution, . Initials, - Kate ‘Agdesford: | Mabel, - 1 00 The above are alsa puablighed in cloth, price $1.25 each. MRS. HENT2Z’S WORKS. The Planter’s Northern Bride, - - - 1.00 Linda, - - - 100 Robert Graham, - 100 Courtship and Marriage 1 ‘Rena ; or the Snow Bird 1 Marcus Warland, - 1 00 Love after Saige - 100 Eoline, - 100 The Banished Son, - 100 Helen and Arthur, - 1 00 Aunt Patty’s Scrap Bag, 1 00 The above are also published in cloth, price $1.25 each. ELLEN PICKERING’S. Orphan Niece. - =e 25 Kate Walsingham, - 25 Poor Cousin. : - 25 Ellen Wareham, - 25 Who Shall be Heir? - 25 Secret Foe, . 25 Expectant, : > 25 Hright,). > - 75 The Iron Hand, - 50 Forty-Five Guardsmen, 75 Memoirs of a Marquis, 1 00 Andree de Taverney, -. 1 00 Countess of Charny, - 1 00 The Iron Mask, - 100 Louise La Valliere, - 1 00 Memoirs of a Physician, 1 00 Queen’s Necklace, - 1 00 Diana of Meridor, - 1 00 Six Years Later, - 100 Felina de Chambure, 50 Genevieve, : - 50 Sketches in France, - 50 isabel of Bavaria, <- 50 Edmond Dantes, : 50 Corsican Brothers, - 25 LIPPARD’S WORKS. Washington & Generals, 1 00 Quaker City, - - 100 Paul Ardenheim, - 100 Blanche of Brandywine, 1 00. 50 The Nazarene, - ° Legends of Mexico, - Ladye of Alburone, - 25 i CHARLES DICKENS’, . David Copperfield, - 50 Dombey and Son, = 60 Nicholas Nickleby, = 50 Pickwick Papers, - 50 Christmas Stories, - 50 Martin Chuzzlewit, - 50 Barnaby Rudge, . 50 Dickens’ New Stories, 50 Bleak House, - 50 Old Curiosity Shop, - 50 Sketches by “Boz,” 50 Oliver Twist, - 50 A complete sett of the above will be sold for $5; also, bound in five vols., black cloth, for $7.50. Scarlet cloth, for $8.50. Law Li- brary Sheep, for $9.00. The Illustrated edition is $1.56 a@ volume, or $18 for the complete sett of 12 volumes. FRANK FAIRLEGH’S, Frank Fairlegh, - 50 Lewis Arundel, ° 15 cat ry Coverdale’s Coe ip, 1 Lorrimer Littlegood, 1.00 Fortunes and * Misfor- tunes of Harry Racke eit Scapegrace, - ¢ BOOKS OF FUN, Major Jones’ Courtship and Travels. Cloth, 1.25 Simon Suggs’ Adventures and Travels. Cloth, 1 25 Major Jones’ Scenesin Georgia. Cloth, - 125 Humors of Faleonbridgel 00 Frank Forester’s Sport- ing Scenes and Cha- racters. 2 vols., cloth, 2 50 Dow's Patent Sermons. By Dow, Jr. 3 vols., 60 each, - - %5 ‘Piney Woods Tavern, 1.00 Adventures of Captain Priest, - - - 96 Amerigan Joe Miller, 25 2 | T. B. PETERSON'S LIST OF PUBLICATIONS. —_— HUMOROUS WORKS. BEAUTIFULLY ILLUSTRATED. Major Jones’ Courtship, 50 Major Jones’ Sketches of Travel, - - 50 Simon Suggs’ Adventures, 50 Major Jones’ Chronicles of Pineville, - - 50 Polly Peablossom’s Wedding, - - 50 Widow Rugby’s Husband, 50 Big Bear of Arkansas, 50 Streaks of Squatter Life, 50 Pickings from Picayune; 50 Stray Subjects arrested and Bound Over, - 50 Louisiana Swamp Doctor, 50 Charcoal Sketches, - 50 Misfortunes of Peter Faber,50 Peter Ploddy, - - 50 Yankee among Mermaids, 50 New Orleans Sketch Book, 50 Drama in Pokerville, - The Charms of Paris,- 50 The Quorndon Hounds, My Shooting Box, - Warwick Woodlands, The Deer Stalkers, - 50 Adventures of gs pei Farrago. 50 Major 0° Regan’s Aa- ventures, Sol. Smith’s rheaneteal Apprenticeship, - Sol. Smith’s Theatrica] Journey-Work, - Quarter Race bari oie Rival Belles, - Life of Col. Yanderbomis, Life and Adventures of Percival Mayberry, 59 Yankee Yerns and Yankee Letters, - 50 MRS. GREY’S. Gipsey’s Daughter, - 25 Lena Cameron, - 25 Belleof the Family, - 25 Sybil Lennard, snr 25 Duke and Cousin, ~- 25 The Little Wife, - 25 Manceuvring Mother, ‘Baronet’s Daughters, - Young Prima Donna, 25 Old Dower House, - 25 Hyacinthe, - - 25 Alice Seymour, - . 25 Mary Seaham, - - 50 Passion and Principle, 50 D'ISRAELI’S WORKS. Henrietta Temple, - 40 Vivian Grey, - -. 650 Venetia, - - 50 Young Duke, - - 38 Miriam Alroy, - - 38 Contarini Fleming, - 38 LANGUAGES. French without a Master, 25 Spanish without a Master, 25 German without a Master, 25 Italian without a Master, 25 Latin without a Master, 25 REYNOLDS’ WORKS. Mysteries of the Court of London. 2 yols., Rose Foster. 3 vols., Caroline of Brunswick. - Venetia Trelawney, - Lord Saxondale, - “Count Christoval, - Rosa Lambert, - Mary Priee, - Eustace Quentin, - 1 00 50 Joseph Wilmot, Banker’s Daugiiter, Kenneth, - The Rye- “House Plot, Isabella Vincent, - Vivian Bertram, - Countess of Lascelles, Pest el ed ed el fd ed fees ed et pd (=) S Duke of Marchmont, - 50 The Necromancer, = 75 The Soldier’s Wife, - 50 May Middleton, - 650 Massacre of Glencoe, - 50 The Court of Naples, 50 Loves of the Harem, - 50 Ellen Percy, - - 50 Agnes Evelyn, - - 50 Edgar Montrose, - 25 Parricide, - - 50 Life in Paris, - 50 CAPT. MARRYATT'S. Jacob Faithful, - - Japhet Search of Father, Phantom Ship, - - Midshipman Easy, - Pacha of Many Tale Naval Officer, - Snarleyow, * - Newton Foster, - King’s Own, - Pirate & Three Cutters, 5 Peter Simple, - - Percival Keene, - 50 Poor Jack, - oe 50 Sea King, - 50 Valerie, = 50 AINSWORTH’S, Jack Sheppard, - 50 Tower of London, - 1 00 Guy Fawkes, - - 50 The Star Chamber, - 50 Newgate Calendar, = 50 Old St. Paul’s, - - 50 Mysteries of the Court of Queep Anne, Mysteries of the Court of the Stuarts, Life of Davy Crockett, Life of Henry ees 25 Dick Turpin, - Desperadoes New World, 25 Ninon De L’Enclos, - 25 Life of Arthur Spring, 25 Life of Grace O’Malley, 38 Windsor Castle, - 60 GREEN ON GAMBLING Gambling Exposed, - 1 00 Gambling Unmasked, 1 00 Secret Band of Brothers, 1 00 The Reforined Gambler, 1 00 Above in cloth, $1.25 each. HIGHWAYMEN. Life of John A. Marrel, 25 Life of Joseph T. Hare, 25 Life of Monroe Edwards, 25 Life of Helen Jewett, 25 Life of Jack Rann, - 25 Kit Clayton, - - 25 Lives of the Felons, - 25 Tom Waters, - -.. 28 Nat Blake, Rn. ote Ses Bill Horton, - - 25 Galloping Gus, - - 25 Ned Hastings, - - 26 Biddy Woodhull, - 25 Eveleen Wilson, - 25 Diary of a Pawnbroker, 25 Silver and Pewter, - 25 Sweeney Todd, -,; - 25 TALES OF THE SEA. Adventures of Ben Brace, 50 Jack Adams,the Mutineer, The Spitfire, © - - The Petrel, ° - 20 The Pirate's s Son, . 25 The Doomed Ship, - 25 The Three Pirates, - 25 The Flying Dutchman, 25 Life of AlexanderTardy, 25 The Flying Yankee, - 25 The Yankee Middy, 25 The Gold Seekers, - 25 The River Pirates, ~ 25 Dark Shades of City Life, 25 The Rats of the Seine, 25 Yankees in Japan, - 25 Red King, - - 25 Morgan, the Buccaneer, 25 Jack Junk, - - ~25 Davis, the Pirate, - 25 Valdez, the Pirate, . 25 Jack Ariel, - - 25 Gallant Tom, - 25 Yankee J: ack, - - 25 Harry Helm, - - 25 Harry Tempest, - 25 REVOLUTION TALES, Seven Bros. of bad bes) Wau-nan-gee, - The Guerilla Chief, < MAITLAND’S. WORKS, The Watchman, - 1 The Wanderer,- - 16 Diary of an Old Doctor, 1 00 The Lawyer’s Story,- 1 00 Above in cloth, $1.25 each. EUGENE SUE’S. Martin, the Foundling, 4 Wandering Jew, : The Brigand, - 25 The Rebel Rride, - 25 Ralph Runnion, . = 25 The Flying ceelionay 25 Old Put, - oom 25 25 50 Mysteries of Paris, - 1-00 First Love, - ° 25 Woman’s Love, - + 25 Man-of-War’s-Man, + 25 Female Bluebeard, - 25 Raoul de Survillee + 2 T. B. PETERSON’S LIST OF PUBLICATIONS. COOK BOOKS. Miss Leslie’s New _ Cookery Book, - Widdifield’s New Cook Book, - Mrs. Hale’ 8 Liar Thou- sand & Five Receipts, 1 00 Miss Leslie’s New Re- eeipts for Cooking, - 1 00 Mrs. Hale’s New Cook Biv Oe L090 ARTHUR’S WORKS. 1 25 2.00 The Two Brides, - 25 Love in a Cottage, - 25 Love in High Life, _ - 25 Year after Marriage, - 25 The Lady at Home, - = 25 Cecilia Howard, - 25 Orphan Children, - 25 Debtor’s Daughter, - 25 Mary Moreton, - 25 The Divorced Wife, - 25 Pride and Prudence, - 25 Agnes, or the Possessed, 25 Lucy Sandford, - 25 The Banker’s Wife, - 25 The Two Merchants, < 25 Insubordination, - 25 Triai and ‘l'riumph, - 25 The Iron Rule, - 25 The Qld Astrologer, - \ 25 The Seamstress, - 25 USEFUL BOOKS. Lardner’s One Thon- sand and Ten Things Worth Knowing, - How to get Rieh, = - 25 Etiquette for All. Cloth, 75 Five Languages with- out a Master. Cloth, 1 Pocket Library of Use~ ful Knowledge, = = Lady’s Work Table Book, Gentlemen’s Etiquette, Ladies’ Etiquette, —- Kitchen Gardener, + Complete Florist, - 25 Knowlson’s Horse Doctor, 25 Knowlson’s Cow Doctor, 25 Arthur’s Receipts for Putting up Fruits and Vegetables in Summer to Keep, - EMERSON BENNETT’S. The Rorder Rover, - 1 00 Kate Clarendon, Pioneer’s Daughter, Heiress of Bellefonte; and Walde-Warren, 50 BULWER’S aU ELS. Clara Moreland, seh ID _ Viola, - - 50 Bride of Wilderness, - 6 Ellen Norbury, - 50 Forged Will, CA em . DO The Roue. 25 Falkland, a _ The Oxoniar 3 Calderon. the Vourtier 3 12: 50.) America’s Mission, ‘- —_—_—_,_ BY BEST AUTHORS. | Currer Lyle, = 1W Moderna Chivalry, cloth i 25 Columbia, the Beauti- ful Blonde, is 190 Life and Beauties of Fanny Fern, - - 100 The Pride of Life, - Autobiography of an _ Orphan Girl, The Student, - - Adelaide Waldgrave, Greatest Plague of Life, Uncle Tom’s Cabin as it Is, - - --1 Tom Racquet, - - Mysteries of Three Cities, Red Indians of New- foundland, - - 50 Roman Traitor,- - 1.00 Salathielyby Croley, - 50 Aristocracy, - - 50 Inquisition in Spain, - 50 Flirtations in.America, 50 The Coquette, - - 50 Arrah Neil, by James, Life inthe South, °*- Sketches in Ireland, Whitehall, - : 50 Whitefriars, - - 50 Wild Sports of West, - 50 Cabin and Parlor, - 50 Romish Confessional, 50 Father Clement, . 50 Fortune Hunter, oe 88 Gerevra, - - . 50 Miser’s Heir, - 7s Victims of Amusements, Henry Clay’s Portrait, 1 Siege of Londonderry, Adventures:in Africa, 1 Adventures of Ned Lorn,1 Don Quixotte, - 4 Life and Adventures of Paul Periwinkle, - GHORGE SANDS’ First and True LOva Indiana, - 50 The Corsair, - - C. J. PETERSON’S. Mabel; or, Darkness .and Dawn, - - i Kate Aylesford, ~ 1 Cruising in Last War, Grace Dudley, - 5 Valley Farm, - . SERMONS. Thankfulness and Cha- vacter, - - - Politics in Religion, DR. HOLLICK’S., Anatomy & Physiology, 1 Dr. Hollick’s Family Physician, —_- : The Orphan Sisters, - 38 Two Lovers, - - 50 ADVENTURES. 00 00 00 Wild Oats Sown Abroad, 50 ee QUARTER BOOKS. Mysteries of a.Convent, 25 , Female Lifein New babies’ 25 Agnes Grey, - 25 _ Eva St-Clair, - - 25 Diary of a Physician, © 24 Emigrant Squire, = 25 Monk, by Lewis, - 25 Beautiful French Girl, Mysteries of Bedlam, 25 Abednego, by Mrs. Gora, 25 The Orphan Child, - 25 Ghost Stories, -° - 95 Madison’s Exposition of Odd Fellowship,- /2 Abbey of Innismoyle, 25 Gliddon’s Ancient Egypt “ Josephine, - Bell Brandon, - ° 3 Philip in Search of a Wits, 25 Admiral’s Daughter, - 25 Rody the Rover, : 25 Jenny Ambrose, - 25 Moreton Hall, - : 25 Agricultural Chemistry, 25 Animal Chemistry, - 25 Liebig’s Potato Disease, 25 Rose “Warrington, - 25 Lady Altamont, dig 25 The Defor med, and Charity Sister, - 25 Ryan’s piv sicHes of Marriage, - 25 Uncle Toi in England, 25 CHRISTY & WHITE’S SONG BOOKS. Christy and Wood’s Complete Songster, 12 Melodecn Song Book, 12 Plantation Melodies, = 12 Ethiopian Song Book, 12 Serenader’s Song Book, 12 Complete Ethiopian Me- lodies, by Christy and =~ White. Cloth, - 7 12 CENT BOOKS. . Seven Poor Travelers, ° 12 The Schoolboy, - 12 Lizzie Leigh, - - 12 Christmas Carol, - 12 The Chimes, - - 12 Cricket on the Hearth, 12 Battle of Life, - ~ - 12 Haunted Man, = + 12 Sister Rose, ° - 12 Yellow Mask, «+ - 12 Mother & Step Mother, 12 A Wife’s Story, - ~ 12 Odd Fellowship Exposed, 12 Mormonism Exposed, 12 Duties of Woman, by Lucretia Moit, - 12 The Holly-Tree Inn,- 1% Life of John Maffit, - 12 Euchre and its Laws, 12 Throne of Iniquity, - 12 Dr. Berg on Jesuits, 13 Dr. Berg’s Answer to Archuishog Uvghea, 12 T. B: PETERSON 102 Chestnut Street, Philadelphia HAS JUST PUBLISHED AND FOR SALE STEREOTYPE EDITIONS OF THE FOLLOWING WORKS, Which will be found to be the Best and Latest Publications, by the Most Popular and Celebrated Writers in the World. Every work published for Sale here, either at Wholesale or Retail. All Books in this Catalogue will be sent to any one to any place, Ber: mail, free of postage, on receipt of the price. J MRS. SOUTHWORTH’S Celebrated WORKS. With a beautiful Illustration in each volume. RETRIBUTION. A TALE OF*PASSION. By Mrs. Emma D. E. N. . Southworth. Complete in two volumes, paper cover. Price One Dollar ; or bound in one volume, cloth, for $1.25. INDIA. THE PEARL OF PEARL RIVER. By Mrs. Euma D. f. N. Southworth. Complete in two large volumes, paper cover. Price One Dollar; or bound in one volume, cloth, for $1.25. THE MISSING BRIDE; OR, MIRIAM THE AVENGER. By Mrs. Emma D. EH. N. Southworth. Complete in two volumes, paper cover. Price One Dollar; or bound-in one volume, cloth, for $1.25. THE LOST HEIRESS. By Mrs. Emma D, E. N. Southworth. Being a work of powerful interest. Complete in two volumes, paper cover. - Price One Dollar; or bound in one volume, cloth, for $1.25. THE WIFE'S VICTORY; AND NINE OTHER NOUVELLETTES, By Mrs. Emma D. E. N. ’ Southworth. Complete in two volumes, paper cover. Price One Dollar; or bound in one volume, cloth, for $1.25. THE CURSE OF CLIFTON. By Mrs. Emma D. E. N. Southworth. - Complete in two volumes, paper cover. Price One Dollar; or bound in one volume, cloth, for One Dollar and Twenty-five cents. , HE DISCARDED DAUGHTER. By Mrs. Emma D. E. N. Southworth. Complete in two volumes, paper cover. Price One Dollar; or bound in _ one volume, cloth, for One Dollar and Twenty-five cents. THE DESERTED WIFE. By Mrs. Emma D. E. N. Southworth. Com- plete in two volumes, paper cover. Price One Dollar; or bound in one volume, cloth, for One Dollar and Twenty-five cents. THE INITIALS. A LOVE STORY OF MODERN LIFE. Bya daugh ter of the celebrated Lord Erskine, formerly Lord High Chancellor of England. It will be read for generations to come, and rank by the side of Sir Walter Scott’s celebrated novels. Two volumes, paper cover. Price One Dollar; or bound in one volume, cloth, for $1.25. The whole of the above are also published in a very fine style, beuna _ _ ‘Ww full Crimson, gilt edges, gilt sides, full gilt backs, etc., and make very slegant and beautiful presentation books. Price Two Dollars a copy. (2) 2h) ie 4 ‘, B. PETERSON’S LIST OF PUBuICATIONS. ~ ILLUSTRATED EDITION OF DICKENS’ WORKS. his edition is printed on very thick and fine white paper, and is pro« fusely illustrated, with all the original illustrations by Cruikshank, Alfred Crowquill, Phiz, etc., from the original London edition, on copper, steel, ,sud weod. Each volume contains a novel complete, and may be had in complete setts, beautifully bound in cloth, for Highteen Dollars for the sett in twelve volumes, or any volume will be sold separately, as follows: BLE/K HOUSE, Price, $1 50 NICHOLAS NICKLEBY, $1 50 PICKWICK PAPERS, 1 50 MARTIN CHUZZLEWIT, 1 50 OLD CURIOSITY SHOP, 1 50 DAVID COPPERFIELD, 1 50 OLIVER TWIST, ~~ 1 50 DOMBEY AND SON, 1 50 SKETCHES BY “BOZ,” 1 50 CHRISTMAS STORIES, 1 50 BARNABY RUDGE, 1 50 DICKENS’ NEW STORIES, 1 50 Price of a complete sett of the Illustrated Edition, in twelve yols., in black elath, gilt back, $18,00 Price of a complete sett of the MIlustrated Edition, in twelve yols., in full law library sheep, $24,00 Price of a complete sett of the Llustrated edition, in twelve vols., in half turkey Morocco, $27,00 Price of a complete sett of the Ilustrated Edition, in twalve vols., in half calf, antique, $36,00 All subsequent works by Charles Dickens will be tsaued in uniform style with all the previous ten different editions. CAPTAIN MARRYATT’S WORKS. Hither of which can be had separately. Price of all except the four last 4s 25 cents each. They are printed on the finest white paper, and each forms one large octavo volume, complete in itself. PETER SIMPLE. NAVAL OFFICER. TACOB FAITHFUL. PIRATE AND THREE CUTTERS. . THE PHANTOM SHIP. SNARLEYYOW ; or, the Dog-Fiend. MIDSHIPMAN EASY. PERCIVAL KEENE. Price 50 cts. KING’S OWN. POOR JACK. Price 50 cents. EWTON FORSTER. SEA KING. 200 pages. Price 50 JAPHET IN SEARCH OF cents. A FATHER. VALERIE. His last Novel. Price PACHA OF MANY TALES. 50 cents. - ELLEN PICKERING’S NOVELS. Hither of which can be had separately. Price 25 cents each. They are printed on the finest white paper, and each forms one large octavo volume, eomplete in itself, neatly bound in a strong paper cover. THE ORPHAN NIECE. THE HEIRESS. KATE WALSINGHAM, PRINCE AND PEDLER. THE POOR COUSIN. MERCHANT’S DAUGHTER ELLEN WAREHAM. THE FRIGHT. — THE QUIET HUSBAND. NAN DARRELL. WHO SHALL BE HEIR? THE SQUIRE. THE SECKET FOR, “ THE EXPECTANT. .AGNSS SERLE. THE GRUMBLAR, 50 eta. CHARLES DICKENS’ WORKS. : The best and most popular in the world. Ten different editions. ‘Ro . Library can be complete without a Sett of these Works. Reprinted from the Author’s last Editions. _. ®PETERSON’S” is the only complete and uniform edition of Charlee Dickens’ works published in America; they are reprinted from the origina} London editions, and are now the only edition published in this country. No library, either public or private, can be complete without having in ig a complete sett of the works of this, the greatest of all living authors. Every family should possess a sett of one of the editions. The cheap edition is complete in Twelve Volumes, paper cover; either or all of which can be had separately. Price MRE cents each. The following are their names. DAVID COPPERFIELD, DICKENS’ NEW STORIES. Con- NICHOLAS N ICKLEBY, ~- taining The Seven Poor Travellers. PICKWICK PAPERS, . Nine New Stories by the Christmas | DOMBEY AND SON, Fire. Hard Times. Lizzie Leigh. MARTIN CHUZZLEWIT, The Miner’s Daughters, etc. BARNABY RUDGE, CHRISTMAS STORIES. Contain- OLD CURIOSITY SHOP, - ing—A Christmas Carol. The SKETCHES BY “BOZ,” Chimes. Cricket on the Hearth. OLIVER TWIST Battle of Life. Haunted Man, and BLEAK HOUSE, Pictures from Italy. A complete sett of the above edition, twelve volumes in all, will be sent to any one to any place, free of postage, for Five Dollars. COMPLETE LIBRARY EDITION. In FIVE large octavo volumes, with a Portrait, on Steel, of Charles Dickens, containing over Four Thousand very large pages, handsomely printed, and bound in various styles. Volume 1 contains Pickwick Papers and Curiosity Shop. “ 2 do. Oliver Twist, Sketches by “ Boz,” and Barnaby Rudge. « 3 do. Nicholas Nickleby and Martin Chuzzlewit. * 4 do. David Copperfield, Dombey and Son, Christmas Stories, 4 and Pictures from Italy. 5 do. Bleak House, and Dickens’ New Stories. Containing —The Seven Poor Travellers. Nine New Stories by the Christmas Fire. Hard Times. Lizzie Leign. The Miner’s Daughters, and Fortune Wildred, etc. Price of a complete sett. Bound in Black cloth, full gilt back, $7 50 ~ om & “ scarlet cloth, extra, 8 50 a ‘ “ “ library sheep, ; 9 00 i Z ‘ «“ half turkey morocco, 11 06 és eg « —halfvalf, antique, 15 06 B® Mustrared Edition ie described on next page. “Ca T. B. PETERSON'S LIST OF PUBLICATIONS. 3. so thal OE ain nd a eT 6 TT. B. PETERSON’S LIST OF PUBLICATIONS. = CHARLES LEVER’S NOVELS, CHARLES O’MALLEY, the Irish Dragoon. By Charles Lever. ane plete in one large octavo volume of 324 pages. Price Fifty cents; or an edition on finer paper, bound in cloth, illustrated. Price One Dollar. THE KNIGHT OF GWYNNE. Atale of the time of the Union. By Charles Lever. Complete in one fine octayo volume. Price Fifty cents; or an edition on finer paper, bound in cloth, illustrated. ' Price One Dollar. - JACK HINTON, the Guardsman. By Charles Lever. Complete in one large octavo volume of 400 pages. Price Fifty cents; or an edition on finer paper, bound in cloth, illustrated. Price One Dollar. TOM BURKE OF OURS. By Charles Lever. Complete in one large octavo volume of 300 pages. Price Fifty cents; or an edition on finer paper, bound in cloth, illustrated. Price One Dollar. ARTHUR O LEARY. By Charles Lever. Complete in one large octavo volume. Price Fifty cents; or an edition on finer paper, bound in cloth, illustrated. Price One Dollar. KATE O'DONOGHUE. A Tale of Ireland. By Charles Lever. “Com- plete in one large octavo volume. Price Fifty cents; or an edition on finer paper, bound in cloth, illustrated. Price One Dollar. HORACE TEMPLETON. By Charles Lever. ‘This is Lever’s New Book. Complete in one large octavo volume. Price Fifty cents; or an edition on finer paper, bound in cloth, illustrated. Price One Dollar. HARRY LORREQUER. By Charles Lever, author of the above seven. works. Complete in one octavo volume of 402 pages. Price Fifty cents; or an edition on finer ‘paper, bound in cloth, illustrated. Price — One Dollar. VALENTINE VOX.—LIFE AND ADVENTURES OF VALENTINE VOX, the Ventriloquist. By Henry Cockton. One of the most humorous books ever published.. Price Fifty cents; or an edition on finer paper, bound in cloth. Price One Dollar. PERCY EFFINGHAM. By Henry Cockton, author of “ Valentine Vox, the Ventriloquist.” One large octavo volume. Price 50 cents. WEN THOUSAND A YEAR. By Samuel C. Warren. With Portraits of Snap, Quirk, Gammon, and Tittlebat Titmouse, Esq. Two large octavo vols., of 547 pages. Price One Dollar; or an edition on finer paper, bound in cloth, $1,50. CHARLES J. PETERSON’S WORKS. KATE AYLESFORD. A story of the Refugees. One of the most popu- lar books ever printed. Complete i in two large volumes, paper cover, Price One Dollar; or bound in one volume, cloth, gilt. Price $1 25. CRUISING IN THE LAST WAR. A Naval Story of the War of 1812. First and Second Series. Being the complete work, unabridged. By Charles J. Peterson. 228 octavo pages. Price 50 cents. GRACE DUDLEY; OR, ARNOLD AT SARATOGA. By Charles J. Peterson. Iliustrated. Price 25 cents. TH VALLEY FARM; OR, the AUTOBIOGRAPHY OF AN OR PHAN. A companion to Jane Eyre. Price 25 cents. ISN E TIME TO GET UP CLUBS. 2221 ERSON'S MAGAZINE THE BEST IN THE WORLD FOR LADIES! _ | [SF"ONLY TWO DOLLARS A YEAR. _Z=] This popular monthly Magazine will be greatly improved, as well as enlarged for 1858. ~ It will contain over 900 pages yearly; from 25 to 30 Steel Plates; and 600 Wood En- gravings. This is more, proportionately, than any periodical gives. The News- paper Press calls this Magazine ‘‘ THE CHEAPEST IN THE WORLD.” _ ITS THRILLING ORIGINAL STORIES. The editors are Mrs. Ann §, Stephens, author of ‘‘The Old Homestead,’’ ‘‘Fashion | and Famine,” and Charles J. Peterson, author of ‘‘Kate Aylesford,’ ‘“‘The Valley Farm,”’ etc., etc. ; and they are assisted by Mrs. E. D. E. N. Southworth, autborof ‘*The | Lost Heiress,’’ ‘‘ Vivia,’’ ‘‘Retribution,”’ ete., etc. ; by Alice Carey, Mrs, Denison, Miss Townsend, Miss Fairfield, Carry Stanley, Clara Moreton, Hetty Holyoke, and by all the most popular female writers of America. New talent is continually being added, regard- less of expense, so as to keep ‘‘ Peterson’s Magazine” unapproachable in merit. Mo- rality agd virtue are always inculcated. ITS SUPERB MEZZOTINTS, AND OTHER STEEL ENGRAVINGS, Are the best published anywhere; and at the end of each year are alone worth the subscription price. COLORED FASHION PLATES IN ADVANCE. Each number contains a Fashion Plate, engraved on Steel, and colored; also a dozen or more New Styles, engraved on Wood; also, a Pattern, from which a Dress, Mantilla, or Child’s Costume, can be cut, without the aid of a mantua-maker, so that each “| Number, in this way, will save a@ year’s subscription.: The Paris, London, Philadel- s| phia, and New York Fashions are described at length, each month. Patterns of Caps, Bonnets, Head-dresses, etc., given; in short, of every article of female dress. Colored Patterns for Embroidery, efc.. Embroidery Patterns engraved for every Number, with instructions how to work them ; also, Patterns in Knitting, Inserting, Broiderie Anglaise, Netting, Frivolite, Lace- making, etc., etc. Also, Patterns for Sleeves, Collars, and Chemisettes; Patterns in Bead-work, Hair-work, Shell-work; Handkerchief Corners; Names for Marking and Initials. Occasionally, SUPERB COLORED PATTERNS FOR EMBROIDERY, ETC., are given, each of which, at a retail store, would cost Fifty.Cents. A piece of fashionable Music is published every month. Also, New Receipts for Cooking, the Sick-room, the Toilet, Nursery, etc., etc.; and everything required in the Household. TERMS :—ALWAYS LW ADV.AVCE. One Copy for One Year, - - $2.00 | Eight Copies for One Year, - $10.00 Three Copies for One Year, - 5.00 | Twelve Copies for One Year, 15.00 Five Copies for One Year, - 17.50 | Sixteen Copies for One Year, 20.00 PREMIUMS FOR MAKING UP CLUBS.—Three, Five, Eight, Twelve, or Sixteen copies make a Club. To every person getting up a Club of Three, and remit- ting Five Dollars; ora Club of Five, and remitting Seven Dollarsand a Half; or a Club of Eight, and remitting Ten Dollars; we will send, gratis, a copy of our ‘‘Casket for 1858,’’ a book of costly Engravings, 40in number. To.every person getting up a Club” of Twelve, and remitting Fifteen Dollars; we will send either an extra copy of the Ma- gazine for 1858, or a “Casket,” as the remitter may pre*er. To every person getting up a Club of Sixteen, and remitting Twenty Dollars, we will send both the ‘Casket’ and an extra copy for 1858. Ortoany person getting up.a Club, and entitled tothe ‘‘ Casket,” we will send, if preferred, a copy of the Magazine for 1857. 7 Ag Any person may get up a Club. Specimens sent gratuitously, if written for, post-paid. Address, post-paid, : CHARLES J. PETERSON, W888 OHRSTNUT ST PHILADELPHIA, ae eS %; % i eA RR Me Se eae ea Setesiecr repairs ott ate tea aaron erg foc ae estes ence ER NET "ante vat te ek mn tle c 4 J Pe Pliers bi te hp wit Sos rt 5 zs e ; ‘ ata? pin ore > SO ee ir fra aN, —tentt eae Nw ee ae ee - ee nal an Dea : So et + re - << > ao 2 —. oN a - - rs mae ete heed ~ FO et EE ore ~ a lh a al peep item os tyrone Ah =e. it ~ ; Cae FRE Sop nn ane mn i SO cganierier ciate! cola - = See & : gl hoe eee, ae ek ee ae a, ee Se bene sd Shae che ee ad ae es tnd = gee ~ pats peer Fale wrens jere mht ca a ec contacoo elege - Le Serine Pr a